04.09.2013 Views

diplomatic and consular practice in contemporary - University of Jos ...

diplomatic and consular practice in contemporary - University of Jos ...

diplomatic and consular practice in contemporary - University of Jos ...

SHOW MORE
SHOW LESS

You also want an ePaper? Increase the reach of your titles

YUMPU automatically turns print PDFs into web optimized ePapers that Google loves.

TITLE PAGE<br />

DIPLOMATIC AND CONSULAR PRACTICE IN CONTEMPORARY<br />

INTERNATIONAL LAW: PROBLEMS AND PROSPECTS<br />

BY<br />

BARNABAS AONDOHEMBAFAN ANGER<br />

B.Sc, M.A.<br />

PGLAW/ UJ/10141/97<br />

A Thesis <strong>in</strong> the DEPARTMENT OF INTERNATIONAL LAW AND<br />

JURISPRUDENCE, FACULTY OF LAW,<br />

submitted to the School <strong>of</strong> Postgraduate Studies, <strong>University</strong> <strong>of</strong> <strong>Jos</strong>,<br />

<strong>in</strong> partial fulfillment <strong>of</strong> the requirements for the award <strong>of</strong> DOCTOR<br />

OF PHILOSOPHY <strong>in</strong> INTERNATIONAL LAW AND DIPLOMACY <strong>of</strong> the<br />

UNIVERSITY OF JOS.<br />

JANURY, 2008.


ii<br />

DECLARATION PAGE<br />

I hereby declare that this work is the product <strong>of</strong> my own research<br />

effort; undertaken under the supervision <strong>of</strong> Pr<strong>of</strong>essor F.C. Nwoke<br />

<strong>and</strong> has not been presented elsewhere for the award <strong>of</strong> a degree or<br />

certificate. All sources have been duly dist<strong>in</strong>guished <strong>and</strong><br />

appropriately acknowledged.<br />

BARNABAS AONDOHEMBAFAN ANGER<br />

PGLAW/ UJ/10141/97


iii<br />

CERTIFICATION


iv<br />

ACKNOWLEDGEMENT<br />

It is <strong>of</strong>ten a mammoth task to acknowledge the assistance <strong>of</strong><br />

all to a major work such as this one. This work is however<br />

<strong>in</strong>complete if this is not done. Worthy <strong>of</strong> first mention is the Lord <strong>of</strong><br />

Host whose victorious h<strong>and</strong> has helped me not to fear the awesome<br />

challenges that this programme presented. No words can exhaust<br />

the strength, encouragement, direction <strong>and</strong> wisdom the Holy One <strong>of</strong><br />

Israel provided throughout this period.<br />

I could never forget to acknowledge my wonderful supervisor:<br />

Pr<strong>of</strong>essor Nwoke F.C. who, despite his numerous <strong>and</strong> press<strong>in</strong>g<br />

academic <strong>and</strong> adm<strong>in</strong>istrative commitments, spared the time, most<br />

<strong>of</strong>ten, at his <strong>in</strong>convenience to direct the analysis <strong>of</strong> this work, so as<br />

to make it possible for me to present an orderly <strong>and</strong> comprehensive<br />

work that this is.<br />

My appreciation also goes to the Dean <strong>of</strong> Law, pr<strong>of</strong>essor Nasir<br />

for hav<strong>in</strong>g be<strong>in</strong>g so encourag<strong>in</strong>g. To Dr. Patrick Oche, my Internal<br />

Exam<strong>in</strong>er, whose moral <strong>and</strong> academic contributions are <strong>in</strong>valuable.<br />

My good friends, Dr. Bem Angwe <strong>and</strong> Dr. Alubo are highly<br />

appreciated for be<strong>in</strong>g such warm friends.


v<br />

To my wife, Martha Barnes Anger, <strong>and</strong> sons, Jeph <strong>and</strong> Jesse,<br />

<strong>and</strong> my daughter, Shiphrah, thank you for putt<strong>in</strong>g up with those<br />

lonely nights just to see me through this turbulent task. You have<br />

this work to show for it.<br />

My friends Mr. <strong>and</strong> Dr. (Mrs) Sonnie Reng are acknowledged<br />

for all the spiritual, moral <strong>and</strong> f<strong>in</strong>ancial support.<br />

I appreciate my Godmother, Ruth Mohammed, for the<br />

motherly care <strong>and</strong> f<strong>in</strong>ancial support.<br />

I appreciate my long time friends Rev. <strong>and</strong> Mrs. Bamidele<br />

Anthony, for all the hard times <strong>and</strong> love we shared.<br />

I warmly acknowledge my uncle <strong>and</strong> wife Mr. And (Hon.) Mrs.<br />

B.T. Anger, for afford<strong>in</strong>g me the warmth <strong>of</strong> family particularly after<br />

I lost my beloved mother dur<strong>in</strong>g the course <strong>of</strong> this programme.<br />

I appreciate Pr<strong>of</strong>. Akase Sorkaa, Pr<strong>of</strong>essor Tony Edoh, Mr.<br />

David Utume <strong>and</strong> Dr. Adagba Okpaga for lett<strong>in</strong>g me go to <strong>Jos</strong> each<br />

time I had to go.<br />

I acknowledge my fatherly Godfather Engr. Hulugh, S.T. who<br />

saw this challenge also as his.<br />

I am <strong>in</strong>debted to Mr. Jimmy Onyilokwu who allowed his wife<br />

to keep my family company each time I had to dash to <strong>Jos</strong>. This<br />

debt I also owe Mr. <strong>and</strong> Mrs. Robert Ahor, my friends.


vi<br />

I thank most pr<strong>of</strong>oundly my beloved Father, Ikpor Anger who<br />

most times denied himself so as to give me quality education. I am<br />

glad he did not <strong>in</strong>vest <strong>in</strong> va<strong>in</strong>.<br />

I am also highly <strong>in</strong>debted to my Father <strong>and</strong> Mother-<strong>in</strong>-law Mr.<br />

And Mrs. William Kor<strong>in</strong>ya for all the support <strong>and</strong> sound advice.<br />

I am thankful to my colleagues especially Simon “Yappy” Ya-<br />

apera, Jacob “Omencus” Omenka, James Apam, Chief John Enyi,<br />

Ahen “Akakky” Akaakuma, Iveren “Miss Agood” Ug<strong>and</strong>en, Paul<strong>in</strong>e<br />

Akpa, Member „W<strong>and</strong>eakaa‟ Genyi, Bob Echikwonye, Akuul<br />

„„Timf<strong>in</strong>ish‟‟ Timbee, Franc Ter Abagen, John Tsuwa, Felicia Ayatse,<br />

for all the chats <strong>and</strong> challenges.<br />

Also to my warm friends especially Barrister Gab J<strong>and</strong>e, Dr.<br />

Tyoor F.M.T., Fidelis Orga, for all the good times <strong>and</strong> support we<br />

have shared.<br />

To my special friends Franc Ter Abagen, Joy Idankpo <strong>and</strong><br />

Tersoo Iorember who persevered with me dur<strong>in</strong>g this period.<br />

My friends <strong>in</strong> the Air Force Group Capta<strong>in</strong> Bala Adamu, Group<br />

Capta<strong>in</strong> Israel Olosope, Group Capta<strong>in</strong> Orjiude <strong>and</strong> Group Capta<strong>in</strong><br />

Adeleke. My friends <strong>in</strong> the Army, Brig. General C. Duke (Rtd.), Lt.<br />

Col. A. T. Ali, Col. Abel Umahi, Col Awotoye, Col. Shodunke, Col.


vii<br />

Cole <strong>and</strong> Lt. Col. Barnabas Sakaba. It has been fun <strong>and</strong><br />

accomplish<strong>in</strong>g know<strong>in</strong>g you all.<br />

I also appreciate my Tennis Mates especially Peter Adzongo,<br />

Msugh „The Cat‟ Akume, Emmanuel Allagh Jr., Hemen Ajogo,<br />

Tivlumun Kor<strong>in</strong>ya, John „Bob Sessions‟ Asan Tom Ikpa, <strong>and</strong> Dr.<br />

Damien Bai. My coaches, Oswald Agayo, Jack War <strong>and</strong> J. J. Bulya<br />

are also appreciated. Thank you for all those times we shared.<br />

To my Cous<strong>in</strong>s <strong>of</strong> Honour: Dr. Eugene Aliegba, Mr. Robert<br />

Anger, Dr. Damien Anweh <strong>and</strong> Basil Anweh. Your academic<br />

achievements are encourag<strong>in</strong>g to us all.<br />

My trusted <strong>and</strong> endur<strong>in</strong>g friend, Engr. Dan I. Sugh is also<br />

highly appreciated. Thank you for be<strong>in</strong>g there.<br />

Tivlumun Ge, Okpe Godw<strong>in</strong>, <strong>and</strong> the ladies <strong>in</strong> the computer<br />

room also deserve my recognition for typ<strong>in</strong>g the draft <strong>and</strong> ensur<strong>in</strong>g<br />

proper arrangement <strong>of</strong> this work.<br />

Notwithst<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g the enormous contributions made by the<br />

above-mentioned persons, I rema<strong>in</strong> wholly responsible for any<br />

defects or mistakes which may <strong>in</strong>advertently be found <strong>in</strong> this work.<br />

ANGER BARNABAS A.<br />

January, 2008.


viii<br />

DEDICATION<br />

To my wife, Martha, <strong>and</strong> sons, Jeph <strong>and</strong> Jesse,<br />

<strong>and</strong> my daughter Shiphrah, for their support even<br />

when they had to put up with several days <strong>of</strong> my<br />

absence.


ix<br />

TABLE OF CONTENTS<br />

TITLE PAGE . . . . . .. i<br />

DECLARATION . . . . . .. ii<br />

CERTIFICATION . . . . . .. iii<br />

ACKNOWLEDGEMENT. . . . .. iv<br />

DEDICATION . . . . . .. viii<br />

TABLE OF CONTENTS. . . . .. ix<br />

TABLE OF CASES. . . . . .. xvii<br />

TABLE OF STATUTES . . . . .. xx<br />

ABBREVIATIONS. . . . .. . xxiii<br />

ABSTRACT . . . . . . .. xxiv<br />

CHAPTER ONE<br />

INTRODUCTION<br />

1.1 BACKGROUND TO THE STUDY . .. .. 1<br />

1.2 STATEMENT OF THE PROBLEM . .. .. 5<br />

1.3 LITERATURE REVIEW . . ... .. .. 6<br />

1.4 AIMS OF THE STUDY . . ... .. .. 29<br />

1.5 SIGNIFICANCE OF THE PROJECT ... .. .. 29<br />

1.6 METHODOLOGY . . . ... .. .. 30<br />

1.7 SCOPE AND LIMITATIONS OF THE STUDY .. 31


1.8 THEORETICAL BASIS OF PRIVILEGES AND<br />

IMMUNITIES . . .. .. .. 31<br />

1.8.1 The Theory <strong>of</strong> Extra-territoriality .. .. .. 33<br />

1.8.2 The Theory <strong>of</strong> Representation .. .. .. 35<br />

1.8.3 The Theory <strong>of</strong> Functional Necessity .. .. 36<br />

1.9 CONCEPTUAL CLARIFICATIONS .. .. .. 37<br />

1.9.1 Privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunities .. .. .. .. 37<br />

1.9.2 Diplomatic Agent .. .. .. .. 42<br />

1.9.3 Consular Officer .. .. .. .. 42<br />

1.9.4 Conundrum .. .. .. .. .. 42<br />

x<br />

CHAPTER TWO<br />

EVOLUTION OF DIPLOMACY<br />

2.1 INTRODUCTION . . . .. .. .. 43<br />

2.2 THE ORIGIN OF DIPLOMACY .. .. .. 44<br />

CHAPTER THREE<br />

ACTORS ON THE DIPLOMATIC STAGE<br />

3.1 INTRODUCTION . . . . .. .. 66<br />

3.2 ACTORS ON DIPLOMATIC STAGE .. .. 66<br />

3.3 ROLES OF ACTORS ON DIPLOMATIC STAGE.. 75<br />

3.4 METHOD EMPLOYED ON DIPLOMATIC STAGE.. 77<br />

3.4.1 Treaties . . . . . .. .. 77<br />

3.4.2 Negotiation . . . . . .. .. 98


xi<br />

3.5 AN ANALYSIS OF FUNCTIONS OF<br />

DIPLOMATIC AGENTS .. .. .. .. .. 100<br />

3.5.1 Represent<strong>in</strong>g the Send<strong>in</strong>g State <strong>in</strong> the<br />

Receiv<strong>in</strong>g State . . . . .. .. 103<br />

3.5.2 Negotiation with the Government <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Receiv<strong>in</strong>g State . . . . .. .. 104<br />

3.5.3 Protect<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g State the Interests<br />

<strong>of</strong> the Send<strong>in</strong>g State <strong>and</strong> its Nationals . .. .. 107<br />

3.5.4 Ascerta<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g by all Lawful means Conditions<br />

<strong>and</strong> Developments <strong>in</strong> the Receiv<strong>in</strong>g State <strong>and</strong><br />

Report<strong>in</strong>g thereon to the Government <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Send<strong>in</strong>g States. . . . . .. .. 111<br />

3.5.5 Promot<strong>in</strong>g Friendly Relations Between the<br />

Send<strong>in</strong>g State <strong>and</strong> the Receiv<strong>in</strong>g State, <strong>and</strong><br />

Develop<strong>in</strong>g their Economic, cultural, <strong>and</strong><br />

Scientific Relations .. . . . .. .. 114<br />

3.6 AN APPRAISAL OF FUNCTIONS OF<br />

CONSULAR OFFICERS .. .. .. .. 118<br />

3.6.1 Appo<strong>in</strong>tment, Classification <strong>and</strong> Status <strong>of</strong><br />

Consuls . . . . . . .. .. 118<br />

3.6.2 Functions . . . . . . .. 121<br />

3.7 FACTORS THAT ENGENDER THE VIOLATION<br />

OF DIPLOMATIC IMMUNITIES .. .. .. 126<br />

3.7.1 State Responsibilities . . . .. 137<br />

3.8 STATUS OF DIPLOMATS IN NIGERIA .. .. 155<br />

3.8.1 Inherent Limitations . . . .. .. 161


xii<br />

CHAPTER FOUR<br />

SOURCES OF DIPLOMATIC AND CONSULAR LAW<br />

4.1 INTRODUCTION . . . . .. .. 165<br />

4.2 SCOPE OF THE ACT . . . .. 166<br />

4.2.1 Immunities <strong>of</strong> Foreign Envoys <strong>and</strong> Consular<br />

Agents .. .. .. .. .. 166<br />

4.2.2 Immunities <strong>of</strong> Chief Representative <strong>of</strong> a<br />

Commonwealth Country . . . 169<br />

4.2.3 Immunities <strong>of</strong> Members <strong>of</strong> Staff <strong>and</strong><br />

Families . . . . . .. .. 170<br />

4.2.4 Consular Immunity . . . .. .. 171<br />

4.2.5 Immunities <strong>of</strong> Commonwealth<br />

Representatives . . . . .. .. 172<br />

4.2.6 Honorary Consuls . . . .. .. 173<br />

4.2.7 Immunities <strong>of</strong> International Organisations .. 174<br />

4.2.8 Immunities <strong>and</strong> Privileges <strong>of</strong> Representatives,<br />

Members <strong>of</strong> Committees, Senior <strong>and</strong> Persons<br />

on Missions . . . . .. .. 175<br />

4.2.9 Immunities <strong>and</strong> Privileges <strong>of</strong> Official Staff<br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong> Senior Officers‟ Families . .. .. 176<br />

4.2.10 Immunities <strong>and</strong> Privileges <strong>of</strong> Other Classes<br />

<strong>of</strong> Officers <strong>and</strong> Servants . . .. .. 176


xiii<br />

4.2.11 Immunities <strong>of</strong> Judges <strong>and</strong> Registrars <strong>of</strong> the<br />

ICJ. . . . . . . 177<br />

4.3 GENERAL SOURCES OF DIPLOMATIC AND<br />

CONSULAR LAW .. . . . . . 183<br />

4.4 THE CONCEPT OF SOURCES OF DIPLOMATIC AND<br />

CONSULAR LAW . . . . . . .. 185<br />

4.5 SOURCES OF GENERAL INTERNATIONAL LAW. 187<br />

4.5.1 Treaties . . . . . . .. .. 191<br />

4.5.2 Custom . . . . . .. .. 193<br />

4.5.3 Elements <strong>of</strong> Custom . . . .. .. 197<br />

4.5.4 General Pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> Law Recognized by<br />

Civilized Nations . . . .. 202<br />

4.5.5 Judicial Decisions . . . .. 204<br />

4.5.6 Writ<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> Em<strong>in</strong>ent Jurists . . .. .. 205<br />

4.5.7 Equity <strong>and</strong> Natural Justice . . .. .. 205<br />

4.5.8 Hierarchy <strong>of</strong> Sources . . . .. .. 206<br />

4.5.9 Peremptory Norms <strong>of</strong> International Law:<br />

Jus cogens . . . . . .. 208<br />

4.5.10 Resolutions <strong>of</strong> International Organizations .. 211<br />

4.5.11 Non b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g St<strong>and</strong>ards: S<strong>of</strong>t Law . .. 213<br />

4.6 INTERNATIONAL CONVENTIONS (TREATIES)<br />

AS SOURCES OF DIPLOMATIC AND CONSULAR<br />

LAW .. . . . . . 214


xiv<br />

4.6.1 Basic treaties on <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> Consular Law: 217<br />

4.7 INTERNATIONAL CUSTOM AS SOURCE OF<br />

DIPLOMATIC AND CONSULAR LAW .. .. 219<br />

4.8 GENERAL PRINCIPLES OF LAW AS SOURCE<br />

OF DIPLOMATIC AND CONSULAR LAW .. .. 222<br />

4.9 Judicial Decisions <strong>and</strong> Teach<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>of</strong><br />

the Most Highly Qualified Publicists<br />

as Sources <strong>of</strong> Diplomatic <strong>and</strong> Consular Law .. 224<br />

CHAPTER FIVE<br />

INTERNATIONALLY PROTECTED PERSONS<br />

5.1 INTRODUCTION . . . .. .. 230<br />

5.2 INTERNATIONALLY PROTECTED PERSONS.. 234<br />

5.3 SCOPE OF PROTECTION. . .. .. 238<br />

5.3.1 Diplomatic Agents . . . .. 239<br />

5.3.2 Legal Implications <strong>of</strong> the violation <strong>of</strong><br />

Premises <strong>of</strong> Diplomatic Missions . .. 248<br />

5.3.3 Measures taken aga<strong>in</strong>st the violation <strong>of</strong><br />

Diplomatic Immunities . . . .. 255<br />

5.3.4 Consular Officers . . . . .. 256<br />

5.3.5 Special Missions . . . . .. 260<br />

5.3.6 Heads <strong>of</strong> State <strong>and</strong> Heads <strong>of</strong> Government .. 262<br />

5.3.7 Representatives to Intergovernmental<br />

Organizations . . . . .. .. 264


5.3.8 International Officials . . . .. .. 265<br />

xv<br />

5.4 OTHER PERSONS BENEFITING FROM<br />

PRIVILEGES AND IMMUNITIES. .. .. .. 270<br />

5.4.1 Non-Diplomatic Members <strong>of</strong> the Staff .. .. 271<br />

5.4.2 Persons Connected with members <strong>of</strong> the Staff 274<br />

5.4.3 Nationals <strong>of</strong>, or those permanently resident <strong>in</strong>,<br />

the receiv<strong>in</strong>g State . . . .. 277<br />

5.5 EXCEPTIONS FROM IMMUNITY FROM CIVIL<br />

AND ADMINISTRATIVE JURISDICTION.. .. 280<br />

5.6 RECOGNITION AND INTERNATIONAL<br />

PROTECTION .. .. .. .. … .. 284<br />

5.6.1 Theories <strong>of</strong> Recognition . . . .. 288<br />

5.6.2 The Constitutive Theory. . . .. 288<br />

5.6.3 Declaratory Theory . . . .. .. 289<br />

5.6.4 Conditions for Recognition . . .. .. 290<br />

5.6.5 Methods <strong>of</strong> accord<strong>in</strong>g recognition . .. .. 295<br />

5.6.6 Forms <strong>of</strong> Recognition: De Facto Recognition 299<br />

5.6.7 De Jure Recognition . . . . .. .. 300<br />

5.6.8 Legal Consequences <strong>of</strong> Recognition . .. 300<br />

5.6.9 Problems <strong>of</strong> Recognition . . .. .. 301<br />

5.7 SOVEREIGN IMMUNITY AND INTERNATIONAL<br />

PROTECTION . . . . . .. 307


xvi<br />

CHAPTER SIX<br />

TECHNICAL CONSIDERATIONS<br />

6.1 APPOINTMENT AND COMMENCEMENT<br />

OF PRIVILEGES AND IMMUNITIES . .. 316<br />

6.2 DURATION OF PROTECTION . . .. 325<br />

6.2.1 Term<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> Diplomatic Missions . .. 326<br />

6.2.2 Break <strong>of</strong> Diplomatic Relations . .. 330<br />

6.2.3 Waivers . . . . . .. .. 333<br />

6.2.4 Other Instances . . . . .. .. 338<br />

6.3 ENFORCEMENT OF PRIVILEGES<br />

AND IMMUNITIES .. .. .. .. 341<br />

CHAPTER SEVEN<br />

ABUSE OF PRIVILEGES AND IMMUNITIES<br />

7.1 SCOPE AND WHAT CONSTITUTES ABUSE .. 353<br />

7.2 EXTENT AND REASONS FOR ABUSE .. .. 360<br />

7.3 DEALING WITH ABUSE . . .. 369<br />

CHAPTER EIGHT<br />

SUMMARY AND CONCLUSION<br />

8.1 OBSERVATIONS AND RECOMMENDATIONS. 377<br />

8.2 CONTRIBUTION TO KNOWLEDGE.. .. .. 395<br />

8.3 AREAS FOR FURTHER RESEARCH.. .. .. 396<br />

REFERENCES. . . . . .. .. .. 398


xvii<br />

TABLE OF CASES<br />

Alhaji A.G. Ishola Noah V. His Excellency the British<br />

High Commissioner to Nigeria (1980)<br />

12 N.S.C.C. 25 . . . . . .. 40,167<br />

Anglo-Iranian Co. Case (1952) ICJ Reports<br />

93 at 112 . . . . . .. 79<br />

Anglo-Norwegian Fisheries Case (1951)<br />

ICJ Reports P. 116 . . . .. 199,225,260<br />

Asylum Case: Columbia V. Peru (1950)<br />

ICJ Reports P. 266. . . . . .. 189, 197<br />

Barcelona Traction case ICJ Reports<br />

(1970) P. 3 . . . . . ... 149<br />

Bergman V. Desieyes U.S. District <strong>of</strong> Southern<br />

District <strong>of</strong> New York, 1946, 30 . . . 40<br />

Chorzow Factory (Indemnity) case PCIJ<br />

Reports (1928) P. 29 . . . . .. 141, 174<br />

Corfu Channel Case(1949)ICJ Reports p.4 . .. 147<br />

Chorzow Factory (Jurisdiction) case PCIJ<br />

Reports (1927) P. 21. . . . . .. 86,151<br />

Duterai <strong>and</strong> Co. V. Pokerdam Mergra (1952) .. 309<br />

Re: Commissioner for workmen‟s compensation<br />

(1951) 38 AIR p. 880 . . . .. 309<br />

Engelke V. Musmann (1928) A.C. 433 at 450 .. 337<br />

Fisher V. Begrez (1883) 2CR. M240 E.R. 750 .. 39<br />

Free Zones Case PCIJ Reports (1932) P. 1.. 83<br />

I’m Alone case(1935)3RIAA1609 . . .. 150-151


xviii<br />

Leevwen V. City <strong>of</strong> Rotterdam (1968) 14 Recueil de la<br />

Jurisprudence P.63 . . . . .. 268,<br />

Kramer Italy V. Government <strong>of</strong> Belgium suit<br />

No. CA/L/244/84 . . . ... 350<br />

Kahan V. Pakistan Federation (1951) 2KB 1003:<br />

18 ILR P 210 . . . . . .. 337<br />

The Lotus Case PCIJ Reports (1927)<br />

Serie A No 10 . . . . .. 200<br />

Mavrommatis Palest<strong>in</strong>e Concession case<br />

ICJ Reports (1942) P. 12 . . . .. 88,148<br />

Nottebohm case ICJ Reports (1955) P. 15 .. 150<br />

Nicaragua Case (1986) ICJ Reports P. 16 ... 206,212<br />

North Sea Cont<strong>in</strong>ental Shelf Cases (1969)<br />

ICJ Reports P.1 . . . . .. 201<br />

Parliament Bekge (1878) 4 P.D 129 . ... 309<br />

Thai-Europe Tapioca Service ltd V. Government<br />

Of Pakistan(1975)1WLR1485; 64ILR 81 ... 311<br />

The Paquette Habana (1900) 175 US 677 ... 194<br />

Ransome Kuti V. Attorney General <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Federation(1985)2NWLR211at 230 . .. 383<br />

The Scotia (1871) 14 Wallace 170 . ... 195<br />

Re: Crist<strong>in</strong>a (1938) ACP485 . . . .. 349<br />

R. V. A.B (1914) IKB 454 . . . .. 241,244<br />

R. V. keyn(1876)2EXD63 . . . .. 195


xix<br />

Re Suarez (1917) 2Ch. 131 . . . .. 337<br />

Re: Commissioner for Workmen‟s Compensation<br />

(1951)38AIR P.880 . . . .. 349<br />

Schooner Exchange V. Mc Faden (1812)<br />

7 Granch 116 . . . . . .. 309<br />

The Asylum Case ICJ Reports (1970) 276 ... 229<br />

The Pesaro (1926) 271 U.S. 562 . . .. 309<br />

The Reparation Case (1949) ICJ Reports P. 174.. 37,226<br />

The Schotia(1871)14Wallace 170 . . .. 226<br />

Trendtex Trad<strong>in</strong>g Corporation V. Central Bank<br />

<strong>of</strong> Nigeria (1977) Q.B. 529 . . . .. 310<br />

U.A.R. V. Mirza Ali Kasham (1962) 49 AIR p. 38.. 309<br />

Youman‟s case(1925-26)Annual Digest <strong>of</strong> International<br />

Law cases, p.223. . . . .. 145


xx<br />

TABLE OF STATUTES<br />

Statute Of The International Court Of Justice<br />

The U.S Foreign Sovereign Immunity Act, 1976<br />

The British State Immunity Act, 1978<br />

The S<strong>in</strong>gapore State Immunity Act, 1981<br />

The South African Foreign State Immunity Act, 1982<br />

Diplomatic Privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunities Act, Cap 99 Laws Of The<br />

Federation Of Nigeria, 1990<br />

Charter Of The United Nations.<br />

Convention On Privileges And Immunities Of The United<br />

Nations 1946.<br />

Convention On The Prevention And Punishment Of Crimes Aga<strong>in</strong>st<br />

Internationally Protected Persons, Includ<strong>in</strong>g Diplomatic Agents<br />

1973.<br />

Convention On Special Missions 1969.<br />

Draft Declaration On The Rights And Duties Of States, 1949.<br />

European Convention On Immunity And Protocol, 1972.<br />

The American Convention On Human Rights.<br />

The European Convention On Human Rights.<br />

The Department Of State Bullet<strong>in</strong>, 1952.<br />

The Nigerian Constitution, 1999.<br />

Universal Declaration Of Human Rights, 1948.<br />

Covenant On Economic, Social And Cultural Rights, 1966.


xxi<br />

Vienna Convention On The Law Of Treaties, 1969.<br />

Charter Of The United Nations.<br />

Convention On Privileges And Immunities Of The United<br />

Nations 1946.<br />

Convention On The Prevention And Punishment Of Crimes Aga<strong>in</strong>st<br />

Internationally Protected Persons, Includ<strong>in</strong>g Diplomatic Agents<br />

1973.<br />

Convention On Special Missions 1969.<br />

Diplomatic Privileges And Immunity Act, CAP 99, Laws Of The<br />

Federation Of Nigeria, 1990.<br />

Draft Declaration On The Rights And Duties Of States, 1949.<br />

European Convention On Immunity And Protocol, 1972.<br />

The British State Immunity Act, 1978.<br />

The S<strong>in</strong>gapore State Immunity Act, 1981.<br />

The South African Foreign State Immunity Act, 1982.<br />

The U.S. Foreign Sovereign Immunity Act, 1976.<br />

The American Convention On Human Rights.<br />

The European Convention On Human Rights.<br />

The Department Of State Bullet<strong>in</strong>, 1952.<br />

The Nigerian Constitution, 1999.<br />

Universal Declaration Of Human Rights, 1948.<br />

Covenant On Economic, Social And Cultural Rights, 1966.<br />

International Law Commission On State Responsibility


xxii<br />

Vienna Convention On Consular Relations 1963.<br />

Vienna Convention On Diplomatic Relations 1961.<br />

Vienna Convention On The Law Of Treaties, 1969.<br />

Convention On Privileges And Immunities Of The United<br />

Nations 1946.<br />

Convention On The Prevention And Punishment Of Crimes Aga<strong>in</strong>st<br />

Internationally Protected Persons, Includ<strong>in</strong>g Diplomatic Agents<br />

1973.<br />

Convention On Special Missions 1969.<br />

Diplomatic Privileges And Immunity Act, CAP 99, Laws Of The<br />

Federation Of Nigeria, 1990.<br />

Draft Declaration On The Rights And Duties Of States, 1949.<br />

European Convention On Immunity And Protocol, 1972.<br />

International Arbitrations, New York, Vol. 1, 1898.<br />

The British State Immunity Act, 1978.<br />

The S<strong>in</strong>gapore State Immunity Act, 1981.<br />

The South African Foreign State Immunity Act, 1982.<br />

The American Convention On Human Rights.<br />

The European Convention On Human Rights.<br />

The Department Of State Bullet<strong>in</strong>, 1952.<br />

Covenant On Economic, Social And Cultural Rights, 1966.<br />

International Law Commission On State Responsibility


A.C. Appeal Cases<br />

xxiii<br />

ABBREVIATIONS<br />

A.D. After the Death <strong>of</strong> Christ<br />

B.C. Before Christ<br />

CBN Central Bank <strong>of</strong> Nigeria<br />

Ch. Law Repots, Chancery<br />

E.R. English Reports.<br />

EEC European Economic Community<br />

GAR General Assembly Resolution<br />

ICAO International Civil Aviation Organisation<br />

ICJ International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice<br />

ILC International Law Commission<br />

K.B. K<strong>in</strong>gs Bench<br />

NPFL National Patriotic Front <strong>of</strong> Liberia<br />

NSCC Nigerian Supreme Court Cases<br />

Pg. Page<br />

Q.B. Queens Bench<br />

Rtd Retired<br />

U.S United States<br />

UN United Nations<br />

Vol. Volume


xxiv<br />

ABSTRACT<br />

The say<strong>in</strong>g that no nation is an isl<strong>and</strong> is true <strong>in</strong>deed. Nations<br />

necessarily must <strong>in</strong>teract with others with<strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational system.<br />

Accord<strong>in</strong>gly, the development <strong>of</strong> socio-political <strong>and</strong> economic relations<br />

among nations also necessitated the emergence <strong>of</strong> appropriate laws <strong>and</strong><br />

regulations to guide the actions <strong>of</strong> representatives <strong>of</strong> these nations <strong>and</strong><br />

the host states. This research work has therefore assessed <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>practice</strong> not only <strong>in</strong> <strong>contemporary</strong> times but also <strong>in</strong><br />

antiquity. The objectives <strong>of</strong> this research work are to assess the role <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>practice</strong> <strong>in</strong> <strong>contemporary</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law; to<br />

exam<strong>in</strong>e the effectiveness <strong>of</strong> the law govern<strong>in</strong>g <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong><br />

<strong>practice</strong> <strong>in</strong> <strong>contemporary</strong> times; to exam<strong>in</strong>e privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities<br />

<strong>and</strong> how these <strong>in</strong>crease the effectiveness <strong>of</strong> diplomats; to identify actors<br />

on the <strong>diplomatic</strong> stage <strong>and</strong> their scope <strong>of</strong> production; to exam<strong>in</strong>e causes<br />

<strong>and</strong> cases <strong>of</strong> abuse <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities; <strong>and</strong> to determ<strong>in</strong>e <strong>and</strong><br />

address the conundrums that exist <strong>in</strong> the law govern<strong>in</strong>g <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>consular</strong> <strong>practice</strong> today. It has made use <strong>of</strong> secondary sources <strong>of</strong> data<br />

which <strong>in</strong>clude the published texts for the historical <strong>and</strong> theoretical<br />

analysis <strong>of</strong> this research work. It has exam<strong>in</strong>ed the performance <strong>of</strong> the<br />

law govern<strong>in</strong>g <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>practice</strong> particularly <strong>in</strong><br />

<strong>contemporary</strong> times. Gaps such as relat<strong>in</strong>g to the ambiguous def<strong>in</strong>ition<br />

<strong>of</strong> diplomacy by some scholars <strong>and</strong> consequently the difficulty <strong>in</strong> hav<strong>in</strong>g<br />

a universally accepted def<strong>in</strong>ition <strong>of</strong> same. The failure <strong>of</strong> the conventions<br />

to deal with emergency situations such as the outbreak <strong>of</strong> fire <strong>and</strong> issues<br />

relat<strong>in</strong>g to abuses <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities by diplomats that may<br />

require prompt action by the receiv<strong>in</strong>g states is another loose end or gap<br />

created by the exist<strong>in</strong>g conventions <strong>in</strong> this field. The work recommends<br />

that Article 27 <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations 1961 be<br />

reviewed to <strong>in</strong>corporate the def<strong>in</strong>ition <strong>of</strong> the size <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag.<br />

This makes it easier to determ<strong>in</strong>e abuse <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities<br />

us<strong>in</strong>g the <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag. Privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities should not be denied<br />

the wife <strong>of</strong> a diplomat on the ground <strong>of</strong> permanent residence or<br />

nationality as this underm<strong>in</strong>es the immunity <strong>of</strong> the diplomat. Lastly, the<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> premises should be entered <strong>in</strong>to by authorities <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state <strong>in</strong> cases requir<strong>in</strong>g prompt protective action, without an <strong>in</strong>sistence<br />

on the consent <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the mission if he cannot be easily<br />

contacted. The major contribution <strong>of</strong> this work to knowledge is that it<br />

has been able to po<strong>in</strong>t out the crucial fact that the conventions have<br />

failed to def<strong>in</strong>e the size <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag <strong>and</strong> this work has shown<br />

that this def<strong>in</strong>ition helps to create suspicion which necessitate check<strong>in</strong>g,<br />

<strong>and</strong> this is one sure way <strong>of</strong> check<strong>in</strong>g the importation <strong>of</strong> even fire arms <strong>in</strong><br />

the <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises <strong>and</strong> used <strong>in</strong> a manner that violates or attempt to<br />

violate world peace.


1<br />

CHAPTER ONE<br />

INTRODUCTION<br />

1.1 BACKGROUND TO THE STUDY<br />

Diplomatic <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> representation <strong>of</strong> States is<br />

governed by International law. In <strong>contemporary</strong> times the task <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law is quite mammoth. In recent times the world is<br />

seen to be a global village where actions <strong>of</strong> States affect others<br />

<strong>and</strong> this makes it <strong>in</strong>creas<strong>in</strong>gly difficult to see what really falls<br />

with<strong>in</strong> the domestic jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> States 1. The end <strong>of</strong> the cold<br />

war <strong>and</strong> a resultant emergence <strong>of</strong> new autonomous states <strong>in</strong> the<br />

former Soviet Union <strong>and</strong> other socialist states appear to create<br />

new challenges for <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law. The renewed<br />

desire <strong>of</strong> Western capitalist nations to <strong>in</strong>vest <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>terchangeably carry out <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> relations with<br />

these new states, is feared to cause a shift<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> attention from<br />

the south to the East by the East, this aga<strong>in</strong> on the face <strong>of</strong> it<br />

appears to create new challenges for <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong><br />

law.<br />

Indeed <strong>in</strong> the words <strong>of</strong> the South Commission:<br />

1 Charter <strong>of</strong> the United Nations Organisation, Article 2 Paragraph 7.<br />

It is quite likely the changes <strong>in</strong> East-West<br />

relations <strong>and</strong> with<strong>in</strong> the countries <strong>of</strong><br />

Eastern Europe …may cause the North to<br />

divert attention <strong>and</strong> resources away from


2<br />

the South, at least <strong>in</strong> the short term. In<br />

the period immediately ahead, the South<br />

may well have to face a more homogenous<br />

<strong>and</strong> confident North preoccupied with its<br />

own problems <strong>and</strong> opportunities. 2<br />

Pr<strong>of</strong>essors Claude Ake <strong>and</strong> Ibrahim Gambari 3 share the<br />

view above. The Shift<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> „big power‟ attention from the South<br />

(Africa, <strong>in</strong> this case) is likely to <strong>in</strong>troduce more vigorous <strong>in</strong>tra-<br />

African relations, which may create self-sufficiency <strong>in</strong> political<br />

<strong>and</strong> economic matters. This is however doubtful ow<strong>in</strong>g to the<br />

high levels <strong>of</strong> poverty, backwardness, <strong>and</strong> dependence <strong>of</strong> African<br />

states on the West.<br />

In addition to the above, the end <strong>of</strong> the cold war made<br />

possible by the collapse <strong>of</strong> the Soviet bloc has left scholars like<br />

Miller with the stance that:<br />

At this po<strong>in</strong>t <strong>in</strong> history, there is but<br />

one centre - the United States. The<br />

United States st<strong>and</strong>s alone <strong>in</strong> both<br />

global reach <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>fluence dom<strong>in</strong>ant<br />

<strong>and</strong> seem<strong>in</strong>gly more able to impose its<br />

will than any period <strong>in</strong> its history. 4<br />

He goes on to assert that America is not just another<br />

country, it is the centre <strong>of</strong> power <strong>in</strong> a world look<strong>in</strong>g forward to<br />

2 The South Commission, the Challenges <strong>of</strong> the South : The Report <strong>of</strong> the South Commission<br />

(Oxford <strong>University</strong> Press : 1990) p.158<br />

3 As cited by Utume, D. A. <strong>in</strong> Journal <strong>of</strong> Politics <strong>and</strong> Adm<strong>in</strong>istrative Studies Vol.1 No.1, 1999, p. 15.<br />

4 Miller, P.D. (Admiral) „In the Absence <strong>of</strong> War employ<strong>in</strong>g Military Capabilities <strong>in</strong> the‟ 90‟s‟ teh<br />

Fletcher Forum, Volume 198, Number 1, W<strong>in</strong>ter/Spr<strong>in</strong>g, 1995, p.5


3<br />

moral, political <strong>and</strong> military leadership, 5 a view shared by<br />

Admiral Howe who advocates not only a leadership role for the<br />

US but also emphasizes her dom<strong>in</strong>ance. 6<br />

American Supremacy <strong>in</strong> world politics entails a very<br />

decisive foreign policy aga<strong>in</strong>st anti-American sentiments all over<br />

the world, with m<strong>in</strong>imal opposition. When states relate or<br />

negotiate their national <strong>in</strong>terest is uppermost. The present global<br />

trend will take diplomacy to a very sophisticated level. Though<br />

this is an acceptable trend <strong>in</strong> diplomacy, <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>consular</strong> <strong>practice</strong> will not significantly change because the laws<br />

govern<strong>in</strong>g these <strong>practice</strong>s have not changed, theoretically<br />

speak<strong>in</strong>g.<br />

In <strong>practice</strong> however, the <strong>in</strong>terpretation <strong>and</strong> <strong>practice</strong> <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law will no doubt tilt <strong>in</strong> favour <strong>of</strong> the<br />

superpower nations. This is ow<strong>in</strong>g to the lopsided trend <strong>in</strong><br />

resources allocation <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational system. The <strong>practice</strong> <strong>of</strong><br />

law, municipal or <strong>in</strong>ternational, has shown that law does not<br />

protect or apply to everyone on the same level. The powers that<br />

be always <strong>in</strong>terpret <strong>and</strong> apply the law <strong>in</strong> a manner favourable to<br />

them. For <strong>in</strong>stance, the annexation <strong>of</strong> Kuwait by Iraq <strong>in</strong> 1989<br />

did not receive the same <strong>in</strong>terpretation as the American<br />

<strong>in</strong>volvement <strong>in</strong> the arrest <strong>of</strong> the Panama leader, Antonio Manuel<br />

5 Ibid. P.1<br />

6 Howe, J.T. (Admiral Ret.) « Will America lead a new World Order » ? The Fletcher Forum, Volume<br />

18, Number 1 W<strong>in</strong>ter/Spr<strong>in</strong>g, 1994.


4<br />

Noriega. The American military <strong>and</strong> paramilitary actions aga<strong>in</strong>st<br />

Nicaragua around 1979 were not <strong>in</strong>terpreted the same way as<br />

the attack <strong>of</strong> North Korea aga<strong>in</strong>st South Korea dur<strong>in</strong>g the cold<br />

war. Examples abound.<br />

In municipal sett<strong>in</strong>gs also, the huge leadership <strong>in</strong>eptitude<br />

<strong>in</strong> Africa does not receive the same <strong>in</strong>terpretation as actions by<br />

the ord<strong>in</strong>ary person to get his due.<br />

In spite <strong>of</strong> the above, focus must not be lost on the<br />

<strong>in</strong>evitability <strong>of</strong> relations with<strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational system.<br />

Indeed it is a common say<strong>in</strong>g that no man is an isl<strong>and</strong>. It<br />

is therefore true <strong>in</strong> the same ve<strong>in</strong>, that no nation is an isl<strong>and</strong>.<br />

From these two symbolical assertions, it can easily be seen why<br />

<strong>in</strong>teractions among nations, just like <strong>in</strong>terpersonal <strong>in</strong>teractions,<br />

are <strong>in</strong>dispensable to human existence. It is this underst<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g<br />

that <strong>in</strong>formed the establishment <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong><br />

relations among nations. This art <strong>of</strong> representation <strong>and</strong><br />

negotiation is therefore, as old as social relations which, <strong>in</strong> fact<br />

started as soon as families, clans, tribes <strong>and</strong> people came <strong>in</strong>to<br />

contact with one another <strong>and</strong> sought to regulate marriage<br />

customs <strong>and</strong> contracts, hunt<strong>in</strong>g, trade, navigation,<br />

communications, disagreements <strong>and</strong> wars. 7<br />

7 Nascimento do e Silva, Diplomacy <strong>in</strong> International Law (India:A.W. Sijth<strong>of</strong>f-leiden 1972) p.


5<br />

The development <strong>of</strong> socio-political <strong>and</strong> economic relations<br />

among nations also necessitated the emergence <strong>of</strong> appropriate<br />

law <strong>and</strong> regulations to guide the actions <strong>of</strong> diplomats <strong>and</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g States.<br />

The guid<strong>in</strong>g laws <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> relations<br />

clearly def<strong>in</strong>e, among others, what constitutes immunities <strong>and</strong><br />

privileges <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers, as well as<br />

their obligation to the receiv<strong>in</strong>g states. These immunities <strong>and</strong><br />

privileges <strong>in</strong>clude personal <strong>in</strong>violability, immunity from civil <strong>and</strong><br />

crim<strong>in</strong>al jurisdiction, <strong>and</strong> immunity from taxation <strong>and</strong> custom<br />

duties, among others.<br />

1.2 STATEMENT OF THE PROBLEM<br />

The basic problems that this study sets out to unravel are<br />

rooted <strong>in</strong> the conundrums <strong>in</strong> Diplomatic <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law.<br />

Notable <strong>of</strong> these is the question <strong>of</strong> abuse <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities by <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers, which<br />

the exist<strong>in</strong>g <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law has not sufficiently<br />

addressed. In the same ve<strong>in</strong> is the <strong>in</strong>ability <strong>of</strong> the smaller<br />

nations <strong>of</strong> the world, to cope with the challenges <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>practice</strong> today. Added to these are other<br />

conundrums relat<strong>in</strong>g to issues <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>violabilities, privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities <strong>of</strong> diplomats.


This quickly br<strong>in</strong>gs to m<strong>in</strong>d the follow<strong>in</strong>g questions:<br />

6<br />

(i) Look<strong>in</strong>g at the sophisticated nature <strong>of</strong> <strong>contemporary</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational system, has <strong>in</strong>ternational law provided<br />

enough for the sustenance <strong>of</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

<strong>practice</strong>?<br />

(ii) Look<strong>in</strong>g at the peculiar problems <strong>of</strong> our world, especially<br />

the lopsided style <strong>of</strong> resources allocation with<strong>in</strong> the system,<br />

can smaller nations <strong>of</strong> the world cope with the challenges<br />

<strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law?<br />

(iii) How can the conundrums <strong>in</strong> the exist<strong>in</strong>g law be filled to<br />

reflect the reality <strong>of</strong> our dynamic world?<br />

1.3 LITERATURE REVIEW<br />

A review <strong>of</strong> literature related to this research work must<br />

necessarily commence from the very concept <strong>of</strong> diplomacy. The<br />

Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations 1961 has not def<strong>in</strong>ed the<br />

term. The term has therefore suffered from misuse <strong>and</strong> confusion,<br />

with the result that it is difficult to fit exist<strong>in</strong>g def<strong>in</strong>itions <strong>in</strong>to the<br />

characteristics <strong>of</strong> a good def<strong>in</strong>ition: concise, illustrat<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> generic.<br />

Diplomacy as a concept is seen to be the act <strong>of</strong> negotiation that takes<br />

place among separate political entities. Accord<strong>in</strong>g to Sir Ernest Satow:<br />

Diplomacy is the application <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>telligence<br />

<strong>and</strong> tact to the conduct <strong>of</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial relations<br />

between governments <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>dependent states


7<br />

extend<strong>in</strong>g sometimes also to their bus<strong>in</strong>ess<br />

with vassal states 8.<br />

The def<strong>in</strong>ition appears suggestive that all diplomats are<br />

<strong>in</strong>telligent <strong>and</strong> tactful. This cannot be so. 9 Though this is<br />

desirable, not all diplomats can be tactful <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>telligent. This<br />

def<strong>in</strong>ition by Satow is both prescriptive <strong>and</strong> restrictive. It is<br />

prescriptive <strong>in</strong> the sense that, it prescribes the requirement for<br />

becom<strong>in</strong>g a diplomat. Aga<strong>in</strong>, restrictive <strong>in</strong> the sense that it<br />

restricts the question <strong>of</strong> be<strong>in</strong>g a diplomat to only those who are<br />

<strong>in</strong>telligent <strong>and</strong> tactful. But one cannot be denied be<strong>in</strong>g a<br />

diplomat on account that he is un<strong>in</strong>telligent <strong>and</strong> tactless.<br />

However the connotation <strong>of</strong> peaceful conduct <strong>of</strong> relations<br />

between states by the above def<strong>in</strong>ition agrees with the United<br />

Nations Charter, Article 2(3) on the pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> peaceful<br />

settlement <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational disputes. 10<br />

Ian Brownlie also def<strong>in</strong>es diplomacy as:<br />

Any means by which states establish or<br />

ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong> mutual relations, communicate<br />

with each other, or carry out politics/or<br />

legal transaction <strong>in</strong> each case through<br />

their authorised agents. 11<br />

8 Satow, E, Guide to Diplomatic Practice, (5 th edition) (Lord-Gore Booth (ed): London; 1979) P. 1.<br />

9 Gasiokwu, M. U. <strong>and</strong> Dakas C. J; Contemporary issues <strong>and</strong> basic Documents on Diplomatic <strong>and</strong> Consular<br />

Law, (Nigeria: Mono Expressions Ltd:, 1997) P. 3<br />

10 Ibid.<br />

11 . Brownlie, I. Pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> Public International Law, (London: Oxford; 1979) P.345.


8<br />

Here, diplomacy is presented as a tool <strong>in</strong> the h<strong>and</strong>s <strong>of</strong><br />

nations or states for peaceful conduct <strong>of</strong> relations. But with<br />

recent development <strong>in</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> affairs, <strong>and</strong> the <strong>in</strong>volvement <strong>of</strong><br />

other actors <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational relations, diplomacy <strong>in</strong>evitably<br />

apparently becomes the conduct <strong>and</strong> management <strong>of</strong> all <strong>of</strong>ficial<br />

relations <strong>in</strong> which case, <strong>of</strong>ficials <strong>of</strong> government work<strong>in</strong>g both at<br />

home <strong>and</strong> abroad, who might help promote friendly relations<br />

with other countries, should also be <strong>in</strong>cluded. 12 In the words <strong>of</strong><br />

Childs; “diplomacy is the Process by which foreign policy is<br />

carried out”. 13<br />

S<strong>in</strong>ce foreign policy is seen to be the projection <strong>of</strong> States‟<br />

image <strong>in</strong> an external environment, some form <strong>of</strong> negotiation is<br />

required, <strong>and</strong> this gives merit to the def<strong>in</strong>ition above. Diplomacy<br />

is seen to be an <strong>in</strong>dispensable tool for direct<strong>in</strong>g both the<br />

domestic <strong>and</strong> foreign affairs <strong>of</strong> States 14.<br />

Harold Nicolson sees diplomacy as:<br />

12 Gasiokwu <strong>and</strong> Dakas, OP. Cit., P. 4.8<br />

The management <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

relations by means <strong>of</strong> negotiations; the<br />

method by which these relations are<br />

adjusted are managed by ambassadors<br />

<strong>and</strong> envoys; the bus<strong>in</strong>ess or act <strong>of</strong> the<br />

diplomats. 15<br />

13 Chabra, H. R., Relations <strong>of</strong> Nations, (Delhi-India: Subject Publications;) P. 372.<br />

14 Gasiokwu <strong>and</strong> Dakas, OP. Cit., P. 1<br />

15 Nicolson,H., Diplomacy, (3 rd edition) (London: Oxford; 1969) P. 5


9<br />

The “Peace” element implied by this def<strong>in</strong>ition aga<strong>in</strong> agrees<br />

with the United Nations Charter provision for peaceful<br />

settlement <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational disputes. This also po<strong>in</strong>ts out the<br />

central role <strong>of</strong> diplomacy <strong>in</strong> susta<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g the <strong>in</strong>ternational system.<br />

Tunk<strong>in</strong>‟s def<strong>in</strong>ition <strong>of</strong> diplomacy is comprehensive <strong>and</strong><br />

takes <strong>in</strong>to consideration current trends <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

diplomacy, <strong>in</strong> which modern States use different sophisticated<br />

means to atta<strong>in</strong> their objectives. To him diplomacy means:<br />

An activity (<strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g content, modes <strong>and</strong><br />

methods <strong>of</strong> the activity <strong>of</strong> general <strong>and</strong><br />

special state agencies <strong>of</strong> foreign relations)<br />

<strong>of</strong> heads <strong>of</strong> states <strong>and</strong> governments, <strong>of</strong><br />

departments <strong>of</strong> foreign affairs, <strong>of</strong> special<br />

delegation <strong>and</strong> missions <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

representatives apperta<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g to the<br />

effectuation by peaceful means <strong>of</strong> the<br />

purpose <strong>and</strong> tasks <strong>of</strong> the foreign policy <strong>of</strong><br />

a State. 16<br />

A cross-section <strong>of</strong> def<strong>in</strong>itions <strong>of</strong> diplomacy meets at one<br />

po<strong>in</strong>t – the crucial issues <strong>of</strong> negotiation <strong>and</strong> peace. It simply<br />

means that every <strong>diplomatic</strong> endeavour must have peace as an<br />

end result. Diplomacy therefore encourages peaceful co-<br />

existence <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational system. This aga<strong>in</strong> means that<br />

when conflict degenerates to armed conflict then diplomacy may<br />

become <strong>in</strong>creas<strong>in</strong>gly more necessary, but at this stage it has<br />

16 Tunk<strong>in</strong>, G. I., Theory <strong>of</strong> International law, (London: George Allen <strong>and</strong> Unw<strong>in</strong> Ltd.;P. 273.


10<br />

failed. The viewpo<strong>in</strong>t that war is an aspect <strong>of</strong> diplomacy, based<br />

on contributions <strong>of</strong> em<strong>in</strong>ent scholars as already seen, is not<br />

correct. Diplomacy is <strong>in</strong>tended to prevent conflict from<br />

escalat<strong>in</strong>g to armed conflict.<br />

Aga<strong>in</strong> the po<strong>in</strong>t be<strong>in</strong>g made here also is that states are not<br />

the sole, though pr<strong>in</strong>cipal, actors <strong>in</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>in</strong>tercourse,<br />

neither is diplomacy restricted to <strong>diplomatic</strong> plann<strong>in</strong>g.<br />

Additionally, diplomats do not cease to be so merely on account<br />

<strong>of</strong> be<strong>in</strong>g un<strong>in</strong>telligent <strong>and</strong> tactless, although such attributes are<br />

essential. In summary, diplomacy must be the use <strong>of</strong> peaceful<br />

means <strong>in</strong> the conduct <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational relations.<br />

In the broadest sense there has <strong>of</strong> necessity been<br />

Diplomacy ever s<strong>in</strong>ce organised states came <strong>in</strong>to existence.<br />

Occasions must arise, even <strong>in</strong> the most primitive communities,<br />

when it becomes necessary to send representatives to negotiate<br />

on matters <strong>of</strong> common <strong>in</strong>terest with neighbour<strong>in</strong>g communities;<br />

these are most likely to occur <strong>in</strong> connexion with temporary or<br />

permanent cessation <strong>of</strong> warfare.<br />

Diplomacy as discussed above was conducted on a<br />

bilateral basis, but examples can be found even then the field <strong>of</strong><br />

activity extend<strong>in</strong>g beyond bilateral limits, <strong>and</strong> today<br />

multilaterality has become one <strong>of</strong> the characteristics <strong>of</strong> modern<br />

diplomacy. Improvements <strong>in</strong> means <strong>of</strong> transport <strong>and</strong>


11<br />

communication dem<strong>and</strong> more <strong>and</strong> more multilateral solutions,<br />

for today few problems which only affect the relations between<br />

two s<strong>in</strong>gle states.<br />

In the 19th century states began to feel the necessity <strong>of</strong><br />

settl<strong>in</strong>g common legal, economic <strong>and</strong> technical problems through<br />

discussions with one another, <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> many cases realised the<br />

conveniences <strong>of</strong> sett<strong>in</strong>g up permanent organs to deal with them.<br />

In this way there sprang up the first organisations <strong>in</strong> the field <strong>of</strong><br />

posts <strong>and</strong> telegraphs, railways, the protection <strong>of</strong> trade marks<br />

<strong>and</strong> patent rights, <strong>and</strong> so on.<br />

Multilateral diplomacy is effected either through exchanges<br />

<strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>formation between states which are l<strong>in</strong>ked together by<br />

political or economic ties or by means <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational meet<strong>in</strong>gs.<br />

The exercise <strong>of</strong> multilateral diplomacy is more closely felt<br />

through <strong>in</strong>ternational meet<strong>in</strong>gs, whether they are ad hoc<br />

meet<strong>in</strong>gs held with the aim <strong>of</strong> solv<strong>in</strong>g a specific problem or<br />

periodical meet<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational or regional organisations.<br />

Multilateral diplomacy as practised <strong>in</strong> the big <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

organisations is substantially different from traditional<br />

diplomacy. The debates are held <strong>in</strong> an atmosphere <strong>of</strong> publicity<br />

<strong>and</strong> mass communication. The grow<strong>in</strong>g development <strong>of</strong><br />

multilateral diplomacy is caus<strong>in</strong>g bilateral diplomacy <strong>in</strong> the<br />

traditional sense to lose ground, for there can be no doubt that


12<br />

purely bilateral diplomacy can no longer cope with the<br />

responsibility <strong>of</strong> try<strong>in</strong>g to solve the whole vast range <strong>of</strong> questions<br />

which are bound up with <strong>in</strong>ternational relations today.<br />

This expression “parliamentary diplomacy” is becom<strong>in</strong>g<br />

part <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational term<strong>in</strong>ology. It was used by Dean Rusk to<br />

describe the negotiations <strong>and</strong> discussions carried out <strong>in</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational organisation <strong>in</strong> accordance with its rules <strong>of</strong><br />

procedure, but with special reference to the General Assembly<br />

<strong>and</strong> the Security Council <strong>of</strong> the United Nations. Subsequently,<br />

Dean Rusk developed the basic idea <strong>and</strong> def<strong>in</strong>ed the term <strong>in</strong><br />

details. What might be called parliamentary diplomacy is a type<br />

<strong>of</strong> multilateral negotiation which <strong>in</strong>volves at least four factors.<br />

First, a cont<strong>in</strong>u<strong>in</strong>g organisation with <strong>in</strong>terest <strong>and</strong><br />

responsibilities which are broader than the specific items that<br />

happen to appear upon the agenda at the particular conference -<br />

<strong>in</strong> other words more than a traditional <strong>in</strong>ternational conference<br />

called to cover specific agenda.<br />

Second, a regular public debate exposed to the media <strong>of</strong><br />

mass communication <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> touch, therefore with public op<strong>in</strong>ion<br />

around the globe.<br />

Thirdly, there are rules <strong>of</strong> procedure which govern the<br />

process <strong>of</strong> debate, <strong>and</strong> which are themselves, subject to tactical<br />

manipulation to advance or oppose a po<strong>in</strong>t <strong>of</strong> view.


13<br />

And lastly, formal conclusions, ord<strong>in</strong>arily expressed <strong>in</strong><br />

resolution, which are reached by majority votes <strong>of</strong> some<br />

description, on a simple or two-thirds majority based upon a<br />

f<strong>in</strong>ancial contribution or economic stake-some with <strong>and</strong> some<br />

without a veto. 17<br />

Typically we are talk<strong>in</strong>g about the United Nations <strong>and</strong> its<br />

selected organisations, although not exclusively so, because the<br />

same type <strong>of</strong> organisation is grow<strong>in</strong>g up <strong>in</strong> other parts <strong>of</strong> the<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational scene.<br />

Despite the importance <strong>of</strong> parliamentary diplomacy<br />

however, it cannot be dissociated from traditional diplomacy,<br />

which has a much wider field <strong>of</strong> activity. Both these forms <strong>of</strong><br />

diplomacy have identical aims, parliamentary diplomacy need<strong>in</strong>g<br />

to be complemented by traditional diplomacy, which can, beyond<br />

the schemes exercise much greater <strong>in</strong>fluence away from the<br />

public eye. 18<br />

The grow<strong>in</strong>g public <strong>in</strong>terest <strong>in</strong> problems relat<strong>in</strong>g to<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational politics has alerted governments to the need,<br />

alongside their traditional <strong>diplomatic</strong> activity, to keep public<br />

17 Dean Rusk “Parliamentary Diplomacy: Debate Versus Negotiation”, Journal <strong>of</strong> World. Affairs, Vol.<br />

26. (1955) P. 121.<br />

18 Nascimento do e Silva, Diplomacy <strong>in</strong> International Law, (Leiden: New York; 1972) P. 10


14<br />

op<strong>in</strong>ion abroad properly <strong>in</strong>formed about the ma<strong>in</strong> l<strong>in</strong>es guid<strong>in</strong>g<br />

their foreign policy, <strong>and</strong> present them <strong>in</strong> an attractive manner.<br />

Public policy allows a state to make its foreign policy,<br />

known, that is, the guidel<strong>in</strong>es which will orientate its<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational conduct, while diplomacy, <strong>in</strong> the sense <strong>of</strong><br />

negotiation, goes on normally <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>s<strong>in</strong>cerely when<br />

circumstances dem<strong>and</strong>. It is the task <strong>of</strong> public diplomacy to<br />

analyse the similar activity <strong>of</strong> foreign governments <strong>and</strong> see its<br />

<strong>in</strong>fluence on public op<strong>in</strong>ion <strong>and</strong> on the formulation <strong>and</strong> carry<strong>in</strong>g<br />

out <strong>of</strong> foreign policy.<br />

Public diplomacy uses every available means <strong>of</strong><br />

communication, <strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g cultural <strong>and</strong> educational exchanges,<br />

distribution <strong>of</strong> publications, the press, the radio <strong>and</strong> television<br />

lectures <strong>and</strong> contents <strong>and</strong> sett<strong>in</strong>g up <strong>of</strong> national libraries. 19<br />

If viewed <strong>in</strong> isolation, Article 41 (1) <strong>of</strong> the Vienna<br />

Convention on Diplomatic Relations 1961 appears to have<br />

foreknowledge <strong>of</strong> the tendency to abuse privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities by diplomats. This Article provides:<br />

19 Ibid. P. 12.<br />

Without prejudice to their privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities, it is the duty <strong>of</strong> all persons<br />

enjoy<strong>in</strong>g privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities to<br />

respect the laws <strong>and</strong> regulations <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state; they also have a duty not


15<br />

to <strong>in</strong>terfere <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternal affairs <strong>of</strong> the<br />

state 20.<br />

The provisions <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention on Diplomatic<br />

Relations have not shown s<strong>in</strong>cere commitment to check<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

excesses <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents. The above provision is noth<strong>in</strong>g<br />

but a passionate appeal. There is no punishment <strong>in</strong>dicated <strong>in</strong><br />

the event <strong>of</strong> a breach on the part <strong>of</strong> the diplomat. But the most<br />

outst<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g quality <strong>of</strong> any law is its ability to compel action.<br />

This is what separates law from related concepts like morality,<br />

politics <strong>and</strong> economics. Law compels an action. It is not a<br />

passionate appeal. It gives no choice except obedience, <strong>and</strong><br />

punishes violation.<br />

The words <strong>of</strong> the above provision are clear that a violation<br />

on the part <strong>of</strong> the diplomat cannot be punished. This is better<br />

illustrated by the provision <strong>in</strong> Article 29 <strong>of</strong> the same Convention:<br />

The person <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent shall be<br />

<strong>in</strong>violable. He shall not be liable to any<br />

form <strong>of</strong> arrest or detention. The receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state shall treat him with due respect <strong>and</strong><br />

shall take all appropriate steps to prevent<br />

an attack on his person, freedom or<br />

dignity. 21<br />

The provision above is precise but certa<strong>in</strong>ly not embrac<strong>in</strong>g<br />

enough. What constitutes violation <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent has not<br />

been def<strong>in</strong>ed. What happens <strong>in</strong> emergency situations? Suppose<br />

20 Article 41 paragraph 1 <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relatons, 1961.<br />

21 Article 29 <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations, 1961.


16<br />

a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent is chock<strong>in</strong>g life out <strong>of</strong> a national <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, will an action <strong>in</strong> self defense by the victim<br />

tantamount to violation <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent? What about a<br />

humanitarian <strong>in</strong>tervention <strong>in</strong> favour <strong>of</strong> the victim by a friend?<br />

What about the duty <strong>of</strong> the state to protect her nationals from<br />

danger? Will the exercise <strong>of</strong> this duty <strong>in</strong> emergency situations<br />

such as this one amount to a violation <strong>of</strong> Article 29 above?<br />

Though not stated <strong>in</strong> Article 29, it is the viewpo<strong>in</strong>t <strong>of</strong> this<br />

researcher that this provision is narrow <strong>and</strong> should be reviewed<br />

to cover emergency situations <strong>in</strong>volv<strong>in</strong>g the <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent.<br />

The essence <strong>of</strong> any law is to promote justice. In the effort to<br />

def<strong>in</strong>e “law”, some modern scholars like Hart conclude that<br />

there are three “basic issues”: (1) how is law related to the<br />

ma<strong>in</strong>tenance <strong>of</strong> social order? (2) What is the relation between<br />

legal obligation <strong>and</strong> moral obligation? (3) What are rules <strong>and</strong> to<br />

what extent is law an affair <strong>of</strong> rules? Others like Stone describe<br />

several sets <strong>of</strong> attributes that are usually found associated with<br />

law. Accord<strong>in</strong>gly, law is (1) a complex whole, (2) which always<br />

<strong>in</strong>cludes social norms that regulate human behaviour. These<br />

norms are (3) social <strong>in</strong> character, <strong>and</strong> they form (4) a complex<br />

whole that is “orderly”. The order is (5) characteristically coercive<br />

<strong>and</strong> (6) <strong>in</strong>stitutionalized. Law has (7) a degree <strong>of</strong> effectiveness


17<br />

sufficient to ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong> itself. 22 Law is one <strong>of</strong> the devices by means<br />

<strong>of</strong> which men can reconcile their actual activities <strong>and</strong> behaviour<br />

with the ideal pr<strong>in</strong>ciples that they have come to accept, <strong>and</strong> can<br />

do it <strong>in</strong> a way that is not too pa<strong>in</strong>ful or revolt<strong>in</strong>g to their<br />

sensibilities <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> a way which allows ordered (which is to say<br />

predictable) social life to cont<strong>in</strong>ue 23.<br />

Accord<strong>in</strong>g to Ray:<br />

The three most general <strong>and</strong> important<br />

features <strong>of</strong> the law are that it is<br />

normative, <strong>in</strong>stitutionalized <strong>and</strong><br />

coercive. It is normative <strong>in</strong> that it<br />

serves, <strong>and</strong> is meant to serve, as a guide<br />

for human behaviour. It is<br />

<strong>in</strong>stitutionalized <strong>in</strong> that its application<br />

<strong>and</strong> modification are to a large extent<br />

performed or regulated by <strong>in</strong>stitutions.<br />

And it is coercive <strong>in</strong> that obedience to it,<br />

<strong>and</strong> its application are <strong>in</strong>ternally<br />

guaranteed, ultimately by the use <strong>of</strong><br />

force. 24<br />

The <strong>in</strong>ability <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law to deal<br />

decisively with the excesses <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents is aga<strong>in</strong><br />

captured by Article 31 <strong>of</strong> 1961 Convention:<br />

A <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent shall enjoy immunity<br />

from the crim<strong>in</strong>al jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g State… 25<br />

22<br />

International Encyclopedia <strong>of</strong> the Social Sciences, Vols. 9&10, 1972. p.73.<br />

23<br />

Ibid. P. 74.<br />

24<br />

Ray, J. The concept <strong>of</strong> a legal system (Oxford : O.U.P ; 1970) p.3.<br />

25<br />

Article 31 Paragraph 1 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention.


18<br />

The provision above seals the <strong>in</strong>ability <strong>of</strong> states to punish<br />

<strong>of</strong>fend<strong>in</strong>g diplomats. Though declar<strong>in</strong>g diplomats persona non<br />

grata is an option states have, it could give rise to reciprocal<br />

moves by the send<strong>in</strong>g state.<br />

The above provision fails to deal with the excesses <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agents. The <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent is seen as a<br />

personification <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. To<br />

turn the state loose on him means violat<strong>in</strong>g the <strong>in</strong>tegrity <strong>of</strong> his<br />

state which <strong>in</strong> the same ve<strong>in</strong> violates a vital pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> the<br />

United Nations which protects the territorial <strong>in</strong>tegrity <strong>of</strong> states.<br />

But this cannot be allowed to protect illegality. A drunken<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agent who shoots down some nationals <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state cannot possibly be allowed to hide under this<br />

protection <strong>and</strong> avoid arrest. Thankfully <strong>in</strong> recent times<br />

particularly, the pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> restrictive immunity has made it<br />

possible to try protected persons when they leave <strong>of</strong>fice. The<br />

cases <strong>of</strong> Milosevic, Taylor, P<strong>in</strong>ochet, etc are good ones <strong>in</strong> this<br />

direction. In same ve<strong>in</strong>, Article 41 (3) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention<br />

provides:<br />

26 Article 41 Paragraph 3.<br />

The Premises <strong>of</strong> the mission must not be<br />

used <strong>in</strong> any manner <strong>in</strong>compatible with<br />

the functions <strong>of</strong> the mission… 26


19<br />

Article 41 (3) should <strong>in</strong> pr<strong>in</strong>ciple forbid the use <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> premises for purposes beyond the function <strong>of</strong> the<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> mission. This means the premises should not be a<br />

place for hous<strong>in</strong>g crim<strong>in</strong>als, stockpil<strong>in</strong>g arms, tra<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g terrorists,<br />

etc. If this provision is rigidly followed by states, such case as the<br />

one <strong>in</strong>volv<strong>in</strong>g Libya <strong>and</strong> UK <strong>in</strong> 1984 where an orderly<br />

demonstration was held by Libyan opponents <strong>of</strong> Colonel<br />

Qaddafi‟s government, on the pavement <strong>in</strong> St. James‟s square,<br />

London, opposite the Peoples‟ Bureau. Shots were alleged to<br />

have been fired from the w<strong>in</strong>dows <strong>of</strong> the Bureau, kill<strong>in</strong>g a<br />

Woman Police Constable Fletcher, who was on duty <strong>in</strong> the<br />

square 27. This is a case <strong>of</strong> non-adherence to Article 41. This<br />

case degenerated to the sever<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations between<br />

the two countries.<br />

Compliance to Article 41 (3) is further denied by Article 27<br />

(2) <strong>and</strong> (3) <strong>of</strong> the same Convention. These provide:<br />

The <strong>of</strong>ficial correspondence <strong>of</strong> the mission<br />

shall be <strong>in</strong>violable. Official<br />

correspondence means all correspondence<br />

relat<strong>in</strong>g to the mission <strong>and</strong> its functions…<br />

The <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag shall not be opened or<br />

deta<strong>in</strong>ed…. 28<br />

The provision above makes it impossible for Article 41 (3)<br />

to be effective s<strong>in</strong>ce one <strong>of</strong> the channels through which even fire<br />

27 Roslyn Higg<strong>in</strong>s „The Abuse <strong>of</strong> Diplomatic Privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunities: Recent United K<strong>in</strong>gdom<br />

Experience‟ <strong>in</strong> the American Journal <strong>of</strong> International Law Vol.79, 1985, p.641.<br />

28 Article 27 Paragraphs 2 <strong>and</strong> 3.


20<br />

–arms can be taken to the <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises <strong>and</strong> used <strong>in</strong> a<br />

manner <strong>in</strong>consistent with Article 41 (3), cannot be opened or<br />

deta<strong>in</strong>ed.<br />

Ow<strong>in</strong>g to the high levels <strong>of</strong> crime <strong>in</strong> <strong>contemporary</strong> times,<br />

some form <strong>of</strong> search should be allowed. This k<strong>in</strong>d <strong>of</strong> search<br />

should <strong>in</strong>volve the use <strong>of</strong> electronic gadgets or sniff<strong>in</strong>g by dogs,<br />

where there is strong <strong>in</strong>dication that a <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag may be<br />

carry<strong>in</strong>g items that may encourage illegality; this style <strong>of</strong> search<br />

should not be seen as violat<strong>in</strong>g Article 27(2) <strong>and</strong> (3).<br />

Aga<strong>in</strong> the law must provide for the size <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag<br />

<strong>and</strong> what possible items it should carry. This makes it easy to<br />

detect violations, <strong>and</strong> therefore the need to search them.<br />

Another problem <strong>of</strong> significance that this study seeks to<br />

exam<strong>in</strong>e is the fact that provisions <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong><br />

law have not taken cognizance <strong>of</strong> the smaller <strong>and</strong> weaker nations<br />

<strong>of</strong> the world, particularly as it relates to perform<strong>in</strong>g some <strong>of</strong> the<br />

obligations bestowed upon them by law. For <strong>in</strong>stance, Article 22<br />

<strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention provides:<br />

29 Article 22 Paragraph 1.<br />

The Premises <strong>of</strong> the mission shall be<br />

<strong>in</strong>violable. The agents <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state may not enter them, except with the<br />

consent <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the mission. 29


21<br />

This provision has also failed to provide for peculiar<br />

situations where <strong>in</strong>tervention cannot be avoided. What happens<br />

if security reports show that a peculiar <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission is<br />

carry<strong>in</strong>g out torture activities aga<strong>in</strong>st nationals <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state <strong>in</strong> their premises? Will a humanitarian <strong>in</strong>tervention<br />

tantamount to violation <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission. Will the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state still be bound to take all appropriate steps to<br />

protect mission premises as provided for <strong>in</strong> Article 22(2) where<br />

the above discussed crime aga<strong>in</strong>st her nationals is go<strong>in</strong>g on?<br />

Will a protest match <strong>in</strong> front <strong>of</strong> the embassy by concerned<br />

nationals <strong>of</strong> the state amount to disturbance <strong>of</strong> the peace <strong>of</strong> the<br />

mission?<br />

Aga<strong>in</strong>, what about emergency situations such as the<br />

outbreak <strong>of</strong> fire? How can the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state protect premises it<br />

has no knowledge <strong>of</strong> <strong>and</strong> can enter only if permitted by the Head<br />

<strong>of</strong> the mission? What if his consent cannot be achieved as<br />

promptly as the situation requires? Will entry without consent<br />

violate Article 22(1)?<br />

30 Article 22 Paragraph 1.<br />

The receiv<strong>in</strong>g state is under a special<br />

duty to take all appropriate steps to<br />

protect the premises <strong>of</strong> the mission<br />

aga<strong>in</strong>st any <strong>in</strong>trusion or damage <strong>and</strong> to<br />

prevent any disturbance <strong>of</strong> the peace <strong>of</strong><br />

the mission or impairment <strong>of</strong> its dignity.<br />

30


22<br />

The premises <strong>of</strong> the mission, their<br />

furnish<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>and</strong> other property thereon<br />

<strong>and</strong> the means <strong>of</strong> transport <strong>of</strong> the mission<br />

shall be immune from search, requisition,<br />

attachment or execution. 31<br />

These provisions forbid entrance <strong>in</strong>to the <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

premises by the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, <strong>and</strong> at the same time places a<br />

special duty on the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state to protect these premises,<br />

they cannot go <strong>in</strong>to. This task is mammoth for the weaker<br />

nations <strong>of</strong> the world, which have low military ability even to<br />

ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong> m<strong>in</strong>imum peace <strong>in</strong> their territories that they have free<br />

access to. How could they protect a place they have no good<br />

knowledge <strong>of</strong>? These nations have no technical ability to cope<br />

with emergency situations. This helps to expla<strong>in</strong> why more<br />

Kenyans <strong>and</strong> Tanzanians died on August the 7 th 1998 when US<br />

embassies <strong>in</strong> these countries were bombed. Only a few<br />

Americans died <strong>in</strong> each <strong>of</strong> the cases.<br />

In a nutshell, s<strong>in</strong>ce nations cannot enter mission premises<br />

until permitted, it is unrealistic to place a special duty on them<br />

to protect these premises, particularly the weaker nations <strong>of</strong><br />

Africa, Lat<strong>in</strong> America, <strong>and</strong> most <strong>of</strong> Asia.<br />

At the end <strong>of</strong> the day we are left with the contradictory<br />

nature <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law, which is <strong>in</strong>deed<br />

responsible for the absence <strong>of</strong> strict compliance to it.<br />

31 Article 22 Paragraph 2.


23<br />

These gaps or lapses created by the 1961 Vienna<br />

Convention are also acknowledged by Dakas <strong>in</strong> the follow<strong>in</strong>g<br />

words:<br />

A superficial exam<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities embodied <strong>in</strong> the<br />

convention would give the impression that<br />

they, as expressed <strong>in</strong> the convention are<br />

impeccable. However, a careful reflection<br />

upon, <strong>and</strong> an appraisal <strong>of</strong>, these provisions<br />

would raise certa<strong>in</strong> puzzl<strong>in</strong>g questions… 32<br />

These „puzzl<strong>in</strong>g questions‟ manifest <strong>in</strong> several ways. One <strong>of</strong><br />

these relates to issues connected to the head <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

mission. For <strong>in</strong>stance, the head <strong>of</strong> the mission is not considered<br />

as hav<strong>in</strong>g taken up his functions until he has presented his<br />

credentials or when he has notified his arrival <strong>and</strong> a true copy <strong>of</strong><br />

his credentials has been presented to the appropriate m<strong>in</strong>istry.<br />

Yet his privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities commence from the moment<br />

he enters the territory <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state on proceed<strong>in</strong>g to<br />

take up his post. Dakas observes that, the implication <strong>of</strong> this is<br />

that under the first lap <strong>of</strong> article 39 (1), privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities <strong>of</strong> the Head <strong>of</strong> the mission attach to him even at a<br />

time when he is not considered as hav<strong>in</strong>g taken up his functions<br />

<strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state.<br />

The above lacuna follows up another. The severe<br />

curtailment <strong>of</strong> the privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>of</strong> persons who are<br />

32 Gasiokwu <strong>and</strong> Dakas, Op. Cit. p.76.


24<br />

nations <strong>of</strong> or permanently resident <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state also<br />

raises questions. What happens <strong>in</strong> cases <strong>of</strong> dual nationality?<br />

How will this provision apply? Aga<strong>in</strong>, should the wife <strong>of</strong> a<br />

diplomat suffer this restriction merely on account <strong>of</strong> nationality<br />

or permanent residence? Will that not underm<strong>in</strong>e the privileges<br />

<strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>of</strong> her husb<strong>and</strong>?<br />

Aga<strong>in</strong>, the Convention also fails to def<strong>in</strong>e such crucial<br />

concepts as „reasonable time‟ <strong>and</strong> „appropriate steps‟ used<br />

several times <strong>in</strong> it.<br />

Dakas summarizes this up <strong>in</strong> the follow<strong>in</strong>g words:<br />

Aga<strong>in</strong>st the backdrop <strong>of</strong> the forego<strong>in</strong>g<br />

discourse, it is clear that the formulation <strong>of</strong><br />

the privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>in</strong> the Vienna<br />

Convention on Diplomatic Relations 1961<br />

<strong>in</strong>heres with conundrums, ambiguous<br />

provisions <strong>and</strong> loose ends. 33<br />

The problem <strong>of</strong> loose ends <strong>in</strong> the convention has given rise<br />

to other problems. It has reduced <strong>diplomatic</strong> law to a matter <strong>of</strong><br />

passionate appeals <strong>in</strong> relation to <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents. Though the<br />

Convention places certa<strong>in</strong> duties on the <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents, it<br />

fails to prescribe punishment aga<strong>in</strong>st <strong>of</strong>fend<strong>in</strong>g diplomats. Due<br />

to this laxity, a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent has a choice whether to abuse<br />

his immunities or not. Several <strong>of</strong> them have.<br />

33 Ibid p.80.<br />

As Dakas, Nasir <strong>and</strong> Gamaliel put it:


25<br />

There is no ga<strong>in</strong>say<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

<strong>in</strong>controvertible fact that <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

agents play a crucial role <strong>in</strong> the society<br />

which, <strong>of</strong> necessity, requires the<br />

conferment <strong>of</strong> immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges<br />

on them. What is doubtful, <strong>and</strong> which is<br />

a serious cause for concern, is whether<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>practice</strong> accords with the fact<br />

that the immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges are not<br />

meant to bolster up the whims <strong>and</strong><br />

caprices <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents or place<br />

them above the law <strong>and</strong> licensed to treat<br />

same with impunity. 34<br />

The concern expressed above is <strong>in</strong>deed very realistic with<br />

<strong>contemporary</strong> times. For <strong>in</strong>stance, the American Journal <strong>of</strong><br />

International Law states that <strong>in</strong> many <strong>of</strong> the major capitals <strong>of</strong> the<br />

world, it came to be felt that diplomats were abus<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

privileged status given to their vehicles, <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> particular,<br />

park<strong>in</strong>g illegally, caus<strong>in</strong>g obstructions <strong>and</strong> fail<strong>in</strong>g to pay traffic<br />

f<strong>in</strong>es 35.<br />

In the period 1974 – mid 1984, there were 543 occasions<br />

on which persons, because <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity avoided<br />

arrest or prosecution for alleged serious <strong>of</strong>fences 36.<br />

The mid-1970s <strong>in</strong>troduced more worry<strong>in</strong>g problems. It<br />

became clear that firearms, contrary to local laws were held by<br />

certa<strong>in</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> missions. Further it seemed that these<br />

firearms were be<strong>in</strong>g imported through the <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag. In<br />

34 Ibid. p. 127.<br />

35 Rosalyn Higg<strong>in</strong>s, Loc. cit.<br />

36 Ibid.


26<br />

recent years <strong>in</strong> various countries, there have also been terrorist<br />

<strong>in</strong>cidents, <strong>in</strong> which it was believed that the weapons used were<br />

provided from <strong>diplomatic</strong> sources. It was widely thought that<br />

certa<strong>in</strong> foreign governments were promot<strong>in</strong>g state terrorism<br />

aga<strong>in</strong>st dissident exiles, through the <strong>in</strong>volvement <strong>of</strong> their<br />

embassies <strong>in</strong> the country concerned 37. The April 1984 case<br />

<strong>in</strong>volv<strong>in</strong>g Libya <strong>and</strong> the UK is a ready example here. All <strong>of</strong> these<br />

can be traced to the loose nature <strong>of</strong> the immunities <strong>and</strong><br />

privileges accorded diplomats <strong>and</strong> mission premises.<br />

This gives rise to another problem. With the new wake <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational terrorism <strong>and</strong> other crimes taken to a very<br />

sophisticated level, how can the smaller nations <strong>of</strong> the world<br />

cope with this huge challenge? The Convention places a special<br />

duty on states to protect diplomats <strong>and</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises.<br />

This challenge is mammoth enough coupled with the lapses <strong>in</strong><br />

the 1961 Convention, this challenge is doubly so.<br />

The countries <strong>of</strong> Africa, Lat<strong>in</strong> America <strong>and</strong> most <strong>of</strong> Asia are<br />

characterized by weak <strong>in</strong>dustrial, political, economic,<br />

technological <strong>and</strong> cultural bases. They hardly have the<br />

foundation to cope with task<strong>in</strong>g issues with<strong>in</strong> their domestic<br />

environment. The third world is bedecked by conflict <strong>of</strong> every<br />

nature stemmed from dissatisfaction created by poor leadership,<br />

37 Ibid.


27<br />

massive corruption, western manipulations <strong>and</strong> high levels <strong>of</strong><br />

poverty. It is correct to state that the third world is go<strong>in</strong>g<br />

through peculiar conflict such that cannot be see<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> the same<br />

magnitude elsewhere <strong>in</strong> the world. When people are so poor <strong>and</strong><br />

diseased, they are more <strong>in</strong>terested <strong>in</strong> food <strong>and</strong> good health than<br />

anyth<strong>in</strong>g else. African leaders need to come together to deal<br />

s<strong>in</strong>cerely with the economic <strong>and</strong> political needs <strong>of</strong> Africa. The<br />

rest <strong>of</strong> the world especially the USA <strong>and</strong> Western Europe must<br />

appreciate Africa‟s peculiarity <strong>in</strong> terms <strong>of</strong> urgent economic<br />

transformation, the absence <strong>of</strong> which has reduced her efficiency<br />

<strong>in</strong> world affairs.<br />

The implication <strong>of</strong> the above is that Africa will consistently<br />

be <strong>in</strong>capable <strong>of</strong> protect<strong>in</strong>g the embassies <strong>of</strong> western nations <strong>in</strong><br />

African territories. Activities <strong>of</strong> terrorists such as what was seen<br />

<strong>in</strong> Kenya <strong>and</strong> Tanzania will persist.<br />

The provisions <strong>of</strong> the 1963 Convention on Consular<br />

Relations attempt to take care <strong>of</strong> these lapses <strong>in</strong> relation to<br />

immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges accorded <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers. A <strong>consular</strong><br />

<strong>of</strong>ficer for <strong>in</strong>stance can be arranged by the competent judicial<br />

authority if he is alleged to commit a grave crime 38. The<br />

convention also provides that the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state shall take such<br />

steps as may be necessary to protect <strong>consular</strong> premises <strong>of</strong> a<br />

38 Article 41 (1).


28<br />

<strong>consular</strong> post aga<strong>in</strong>st any <strong>in</strong>trusion or damage <strong>and</strong> to prevent<br />

any disturbance <strong>of</strong> the peace <strong>of</strong> the <strong>consular</strong> post or impairment<br />

<strong>of</strong> its dignity 39. The <strong>consular</strong> post can however be entered <strong>in</strong>to<br />

by authorities <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state without the consent <strong>of</strong> the<br />

head <strong>of</strong> the <strong>consular</strong> post <strong>in</strong> case <strong>of</strong> fire or other disaster<br />

requir<strong>in</strong>g prompt protective action 40. In this peculiar case, his<br />

consent will be assumed.<br />

Though the 1963 Convention has conundrums <strong>of</strong> its own,<br />

its situation is not as cumbersome to deal with as that <strong>of</strong> the<br />

1961 Convention. Either ways the problems <strong>of</strong> Africa serve as a<br />

major h<strong>in</strong>drance to perform<strong>in</strong>g her obligations under<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

Indeed, the question <strong>of</strong> h<strong>and</strong>l<strong>in</strong>g abuse <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities by <strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons rema<strong>in</strong>s a very<br />

delicate one. States, especially the host states have to be careful<br />

how they deal with <strong>of</strong>fend<strong>in</strong>g diplomats because <strong>of</strong> the fear <strong>of</strong><br />

reciprocity. The precarious <strong>and</strong> dependent nature <strong>of</strong> smaller<br />

nations <strong>of</strong> the world makes this peculiarly difficult. Most <strong>of</strong> these<br />

nations depend on the West for survival. How much reciprocity<br />

can there be between unequals? These nations are vulnerable<br />

<strong>and</strong> the fear <strong>of</strong> reciprocity can make them put up with the<br />

39 Article 31.<br />

40 Article 31 (2).


29<br />

excesses <strong>of</strong> Western diplomats <strong>in</strong> their territories, therefore<br />

condon<strong>in</strong>g abuse.<br />

1.4 AIMS OF THE STUDY<br />

The ma<strong>in</strong> aims <strong>of</strong> this project are:<br />

(i) To assess the role <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>practice</strong> <strong>in</strong><br />

<strong>contemporary</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational relations.<br />

(ii) To exam<strong>in</strong>e the effectiveness <strong>of</strong> the law govern<strong>in</strong>g<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>practice</strong> <strong>in</strong> <strong>contemporary</strong> times.<br />

(iii) To exam<strong>in</strong>e privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities as a tool for effective<br />

performance by diplomats.<br />

(iv) To identify actors on the <strong>diplomatic</strong> stage <strong>and</strong> scope<br />

protection.<br />

(v) To exam<strong>in</strong>e causes <strong>and</strong> reasons <strong>of</strong> abuse by diplomats <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> Consular privileges, <strong>and</strong> efforts to check<br />

this.<br />

(vi) To determ<strong>in</strong>e <strong>and</strong> address the conundrums that exist <strong>in</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong>.<br />

1.5 SIGNIFICANCE OF THE PROJECT<br />

As this work will exam<strong>in</strong>e <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong><br />

<strong>practice</strong>s, a crisis engulfed <strong>in</strong>ternational system;<br />

recommendations aris<strong>in</strong>g from it will help to set new challenges<br />

for <strong>in</strong>ternational law. It will also uncover <strong>in</strong>formation that may


30<br />

be useful to students <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>in</strong> general <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law <strong>in</strong> particular. This work will also<br />

uncover <strong>in</strong>formation that will facilitate the sum total <strong>of</strong> relations<br />

that take place among actors <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational system.<br />

A publication aris<strong>in</strong>g from this project is bound to add up<br />

to the <strong>in</strong>creas<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>terest <strong>of</strong> researchers <strong>in</strong> this field. It is<br />

expected that comments, observations <strong>and</strong> criticisms made on<br />

the write-up presented at different fora will be published by<br />

journals keen on Diplomatic <strong>and</strong> Consular law.<br />

1.6 METHODOLOGY<br />

This thesis has made use <strong>of</strong> data that fall <strong>in</strong>to two<br />

categories <strong>of</strong> secondary <strong>and</strong> primary data materials. The<br />

secondary data materials <strong>in</strong>clude the published texts. These<br />

cover the theoretical <strong>and</strong> historical aspects <strong>of</strong> the study.<br />

Primary data <strong>in</strong>clude laws-constitutions; Organic laws, Decrees,<br />

Acts, Edicts, Adm<strong>in</strong>istrative rules, Treaties, etc. Other primary<br />

data materials <strong>in</strong>clude <strong>in</strong>ternational law documents. These are:<br />

(i) The Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations 1961.<br />

(ii) The Vienna Convention on Consular Relations 1963.<br />

(iii) The Convention on Special Mission 1969.<br />

(iv) Privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunities <strong>of</strong> the United Nations 1946<br />

(v) Privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunities <strong>of</strong> the Specialized Agencies 1947.


31<br />

(vi) Convention on the Prevention <strong>and</strong> punishment <strong>of</strong> Crimes<br />

Aga<strong>in</strong>st Internationally Protected Persons, <strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g<br />

Diplomatic Agents 1973.<br />

(vii) The United Nations Charter.<br />

1.7 SCOPE AND LIMITATIONS OF THE STUDY<br />

The collapse <strong>of</strong> the Soviet Union <strong>in</strong> July, 1991 <strong>in</strong>troduced a<br />

new world order where American supremacy is envisaged by<br />

many commentators like Miller <strong>and</strong> Howe.<br />

This period follow<strong>in</strong>g the collapse <strong>of</strong> the Soviet Union to<br />

date is the scope <strong>of</strong> this project because it is believed to<br />

<strong>in</strong>troduce <strong>in</strong>terest<strong>in</strong>g trends <strong>in</strong> Diplomatic <strong>and</strong> Consular<br />

<strong>practice</strong>.<br />

This work therefore exam<strong>in</strong>es the conundrums <strong>in</strong> the<br />

exist<strong>in</strong>g law on <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>practice</strong> <strong>in</strong> a<br />

<strong>contemporary</strong> world from July, 1991 to date.<br />

1.8 THEORETICAL BASIS OF PRIVILEGES AND<br />

IMMUNITIES<br />

As stated <strong>in</strong> the preamble <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on<br />

Diplomatic Relations 1961:<br />

...The purpose <strong>of</strong> such privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities is not to benefit <strong>in</strong>dividuals<br />

but to ensure the efficient performance <strong>of</strong>


32<br />

the functions <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> missions as<br />

represent<strong>in</strong>g states. 41<br />

The above statement primarily means that these privileges<br />

<strong>and</strong> immunities are accorded diplomats not necessarily for who<br />

they are but for what they do.<br />

The justification for <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity is on the grounds<br />

that the diplomat is a representative <strong>of</strong> a sovereign or<br />

<strong>in</strong>dependent state or <strong>of</strong>ficial <strong>of</strong> an <strong>in</strong>ternational organisation. For<br />

this reason he needs an atmosphere to operate, free <strong>of</strong> pressure<br />

so as to negotiate. He may even serve <strong>in</strong> a country that is not<br />

necessarily friendly to his. Diplomatic Privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities<br />

can summarily be understood to mean certa<strong>in</strong> rights <strong>and</strong><br />

privileges enjoyed by diplomats.<br />

As Satow puts it:<br />

The immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agents extend to exemption<br />

from crim<strong>in</strong>al, civil, police, fiscal <strong>and</strong><br />

ecclesiastical jurisdiction. 42<br />

The concept <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities can be<br />

understood as expla<strong>in</strong>ed by the follow<strong>in</strong>g Theories:<br />

i. The theory <strong>of</strong> extra-territoriality;<br />

ii. The theory <strong>of</strong> representation; <strong>and</strong><br />

iii. The theory <strong>of</strong> functional necessity.<br />

41 See preamble <strong>of</strong> Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations 1961 Paragraph 4. P. 1<br />

42 Satow, OP. Cit. P. 176


33<br />

1.8.1 The Theory <strong>of</strong> Extra-territoriality<br />

The theory <strong>of</strong> Extra-territoriality emerged with the<br />

emergence <strong>of</strong> modern states <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational system. This<br />

was a time states set up permanent foreign missions. The<br />

implication is that the sett<strong>in</strong>g up <strong>of</strong> a foreign mission means the<br />

extension <strong>of</strong> a states‟ territory <strong>in</strong> that l<strong>and</strong>. The police <strong>in</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state have no right to enter the premises except with<br />

the permission <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the mission. 43<br />

In the words <strong>of</strong> Grotius:<br />

The common rule, that he who is <strong>in</strong> a<br />

foreign territory is subject to that<br />

territory, does, by the common consent <strong>of</strong><br />

nations, suffer an exception <strong>in</strong> the case <strong>of</strong><br />

ambassadors, as be<strong>in</strong>g, by a certa<strong>in</strong><br />

fiction, <strong>in</strong> the place <strong>of</strong> those who send<br />

them (Senatus faciem secum attulerat,<br />

uctoritatem reipublicae, ait de legato quo<br />

dam M. Ilius), <strong>and</strong> by a similar fiction<br />

they are, as it were, extra-territorium; <strong>and</strong><br />

thus, are not bound by the civil law (Civili<br />

Jure) <strong>of</strong> the people with whom they live. 44<br />

The quotation by Grotius above does not only emphasis the<br />

jurisdictional <strong>and</strong> personal immunity <strong>of</strong> the diplomat alone, but<br />

goes ahead to confirm that privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities are<br />

accorded these people because their functions are seen to be on<br />

43 See article 22(1) <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations 1961<br />

44 As quoted by Satow, Ernest, OP. Cit. P. 174


34<br />

behalf <strong>of</strong> sovereign states <strong>in</strong> foreign territories. For this reason,<br />

the <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises is seen as an extension <strong>of</strong> the territory <strong>of</strong><br />

the send<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>in</strong> the host state, <strong>and</strong> therefore adequately<br />

protected by <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law. 45<br />

This theory <strong>of</strong> extra-territoriality is based on two different<br />

<strong>and</strong> yet related legal fictions. These are:-<br />

i. The concept <strong>of</strong> territory, where the <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises is<br />

considered as part <strong>and</strong> parcel <strong>of</strong> the territory <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state, <strong>and</strong><br />

ii. The concept <strong>of</strong> residence which holds that the diplomat is<br />

not subject to local laws <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state but he is<br />

resid<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> his own territory.<br />

In the words <strong>of</strong> Satow:<br />

The term extra-territoriality is that used<br />

to denote the immunities accorded to<br />

foreign sovereigns <strong>and</strong> to <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

agents... it is more <strong>in</strong> accordance with the<br />

actual position to <strong>in</strong>terpret it as denot<strong>in</strong>g<br />

that he is not subject to the authority or<br />

jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the State to which he is<br />

accredited. 46<br />

45 See Article 22 <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations, 1961<br />

46 Satow, Loc. Cit.


35<br />

1.8.2 The Theory <strong>of</strong> Representation<br />

This theory emphasises that a diplomat is a personification<br />

<strong>of</strong> a sovereign state <strong>and</strong> therefore if attacked, a sovereign state is<br />

attacked, Accord<strong>in</strong>g to Satow:<br />

These immunities are founded on<br />

common usage <strong>and</strong> tacit consent; they are<br />

essential to the conduct <strong>of</strong> relations<br />

between sovereign <strong>in</strong>dependent states,<br />

they are given on the underst<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g that<br />

they are reciprocally accorded, <strong>and</strong> their<br />

<strong>in</strong>fr<strong>in</strong>gement by a state would lead to<br />

protest by the <strong>diplomatic</strong> body resident<br />

there<strong>in</strong>, <strong>and</strong> would prejudicially affect its<br />

own representation abroad. 47<br />

Satow‟s view above does not only confirm the relevance <strong>of</strong><br />

privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>in</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>practice</strong> <strong>in</strong><br />

a chang<strong>in</strong>g world, but also <strong>in</strong>troduces the concept <strong>of</strong> reciprocity,<br />

which is seen to be an effective tool for the enforcement <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law.<br />

Aga<strong>in</strong>, his view above also agrees with what happened <strong>in</strong><br />

Nigeria <strong>in</strong> 1973 when the Federal Military Government felt that<br />

there was a need to effect a change <strong>of</strong> her currency from pounds<br />

sterl<strong>in</strong>g to Naira. The essence <strong>of</strong> carry<strong>in</strong>g out this exercise was to<br />

check the traffick<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> Nigerian currency. For this reason a<br />

procedure was suggested to open <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>spect <strong>of</strong>ficial<br />

correspondence <strong>and</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> bags or <strong>consular</strong> pouches. The<br />

47 Ibid.


36<br />

exercise which breached <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law, 48<br />

generated much protest <strong>and</strong> condemnations among foreign<br />

Missions accredited to Lagos.<br />

S<strong>in</strong>ce the pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> the United Nations emphasise<br />

sovereign equality <strong>of</strong> states, among other pr<strong>in</strong>ciples, a<br />

representative <strong>of</strong> a sovereign state act<strong>in</strong>g with<strong>in</strong> stipulations <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law, means a personification <strong>of</strong> such nation-state.<br />

This theory <strong>of</strong> representation receives credence <strong>in</strong> the case <strong>of</strong><br />

Bergman Vs Desieyes where it was held that a foreign M<strong>in</strong>ister<br />

en route to or from his post <strong>in</strong> another country is entitled to<br />

<strong>in</strong>nocent passage through a third country, <strong>and</strong> is entitled to the<br />

same immunity from jurisdiction <strong>of</strong>f the courts <strong>of</strong> a third country<br />

that he could have if he were resident there<strong>in</strong>.<br />

1.8.3 The Theory <strong>of</strong> Functional Necessity<br />

This theory is based on the fact that the <strong>in</strong>dependence <strong>of</strong> a<br />

state requires freedom <strong>of</strong> movement <strong>and</strong> communication 49 for<br />

her diplomats <strong>in</strong> foreign territories to be effective. The <strong>in</strong>teract<strong>in</strong>g<br />

states are <strong>in</strong>dependent <strong>and</strong> sovereign, but far apart. Accord<strong>in</strong>g to<br />

Rebecca Wallace:<br />

48 See Article 27(2) <strong>and</strong> (3) <strong>of</strong> the Vienna convention on Diplomatic Relations, 1961, <strong>and</strong> Article 35 (2)<br />

<strong>and</strong> (3) <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on <strong>consular</strong> Relations, 1963.<br />

49 See article 27(1) <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations, 1961


37<br />

Diplomatic privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities<br />

have, as their raison d‟etre, a functional<br />

objective - the purpose <strong>of</strong> such privileges<br />

<strong>and</strong> immunities is not to benefit<br />

<strong>in</strong>dividuals, but to ensure the efficient<br />

performance <strong>of</strong> the functions <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

missions as represent<strong>in</strong>g states. 50<br />

The above view, if states must <strong>in</strong>teract <strong>and</strong> ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong> their<br />

sovereignty <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>dependence, diplomats will do that on their<br />

behalf. For them to be able to do this, they need privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities.<br />

The issue <strong>of</strong> legal Personality <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

organisations, 51 put to rest by the advisory op<strong>in</strong>ion <strong>of</strong> the<br />

International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice <strong>in</strong> 1949, emphasises the<br />

importance <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational organisations as actors on the<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> stage. This expla<strong>in</strong>s why their representatives enjoy<br />

privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities even on permanent basis. This<br />

development proves that not only states ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

relationship. The view by Wallace does not appear to br<strong>in</strong>g this<br />

out, but most certa<strong>in</strong>ly recognises privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities<br />

accorded diplomats for reasons <strong>of</strong> functional necessity. This<br />

50 Wallace, R. M. M., International law, (London: Swect & Maxwell; 1986) P. 111<br />

51 The issues <strong>of</strong> legal personality <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational organisations was emphasised <strong>in</strong> the REPARATION<br />

CASE (1949) <strong>in</strong>volv<strong>in</strong>g the United Nations while mediat<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> the conflict between Israel <strong>and</strong><br />

Palest<strong>in</strong>e. The International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice confirmed the <strong>in</strong>ternational legal capacity <strong>of</strong> the United<br />

Nations <strong>and</strong> its competence consequently to br<strong>in</strong>g an action concern<strong>in</strong>g its killed agent by Israel <strong>in</strong><br />

1948 <strong>in</strong> the course <strong>of</strong> mediat<strong>in</strong>g. And such action can be brought on behalf <strong>of</strong> itself <strong>and</strong> survivors <strong>of</strong> the<br />

victim. (As cited by Brierly, J. L., Law <strong>of</strong> Nations, (6 th edition) (London: Clarendon Press; 1963) PP.<br />

120-121.


38<br />

agrees with the preamble <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Vienna convention,<br />

mentioned earlier.<br />

Accord<strong>in</strong>gly, United Nations Officials like the Secretary-<br />

General, Judges <strong>of</strong> the International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice, members<br />

<strong>of</strong> the United Nations attend<strong>in</strong>g conferences, <strong>and</strong> many more,<br />

enjoy privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>in</strong> the same ve<strong>in</strong>. This is<br />

recognised by the municipal laws <strong>of</strong> all nations <strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g Third<br />

World nations like Nigeria. 52<br />

1.9 CONCEPTUAL CLARIFICATIONS<br />

1.9.1 Privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunities<br />

The term “privilege” can be def<strong>in</strong>ed as a “right or immunity<br />

granted as a special benefit, advantage, or favour, special<br />

enjoyment or an exemption from an evil or burden”. 53<br />

It can also be conceived as the legal concept <strong>of</strong> be<strong>in</strong>g<br />

entitled or authorised to do or not to do someth<strong>in</strong>g as one<br />

pleases. 54<br />

Immunity on the other h<strong>and</strong> has been def<strong>in</strong>ed by Walker to<br />

be “a State <strong>of</strong> freedom from certa<strong>in</strong> legal rules”. 55<br />

52 See the Diplomatic Immunities <strong>and</strong> Privileges Act, Cap. 99, Laws <strong>of</strong> The Federation <strong>of</strong> Nigeria,<br />

1990.<br />

53 See the Webster New International Dictionary (3 rd Edition) P. 632.<br />

54 Encyclopaedia Britannica, (1968) P. 982<br />

55 Walker, D. M., The Oxford Companion to Law, London: Clarendon Press; (1980) P. 60.


39<br />

The tasks <strong>of</strong> the diplomats are such that they need an<br />

atmosphere free <strong>of</strong> pressure <strong>and</strong> undue <strong>in</strong>terruption to be<br />

effective. Based on this, <strong>in</strong>ternational law has vested on them<br />

certa<strong>in</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities which states are bound to<br />

observe, to facilitate the performance <strong>of</strong> diplomats with<strong>in</strong> their<br />

territories.<br />

The concept <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities is an ancient one<br />

as can be seen <strong>in</strong>dicated <strong>in</strong> the open<strong>in</strong>g paragraph <strong>of</strong> the Vienna<br />

convention on Diplomatic Relations <strong>of</strong> 1961, that is, “Recall<strong>in</strong>g<br />

that peoples <strong>of</strong> all nations from ancient times have recognised<br />

the status <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents…” 56 These Privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities as mentioned <strong>in</strong> paragraph 4 <strong>of</strong> the preamble <strong>of</strong> the<br />

same convention is not meant to benefit <strong>in</strong>dividuals but to<br />

ensure efficient performances <strong>of</strong> their functions.<br />

This pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities as early as<br />

1883 became a pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>in</strong> the decided case <strong>of</strong> Fisher Vs<br />

Begrez. 57 Here it was held <strong>in</strong>ter alia that the <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

documents were properly admitted <strong>in</strong> evidence. Any <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

Privilege that might attach to documents belongs to the<br />

56 See Vienna convention on Diplomatic Relations 1961: Open<strong>in</strong>g paragraph to the preamble,<br />

P. 1. Paragraph 1.<br />

57 (1883) 2CR. M 240 E.R. 750


40<br />

ambassador <strong>and</strong> could not be raised by a Canadian Citizen <strong>in</strong> a<br />

crim<strong>in</strong>al proceed<strong>in</strong>g brought aga<strong>in</strong>st him by his government.<br />

Also Bergmen vs. Desieyes 58 where it was held that a<br />

foreign m<strong>in</strong>ister en route to or from his post <strong>in</strong> another country<br />

is entitled to the same immunity from the jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the<br />

courts <strong>of</strong> a third country that he would have if he were resident<br />

there<strong>in</strong>.<br />

Aga<strong>in</strong>, <strong>in</strong> Alhaji A. G. Ishola Noah vs His Excellency the<br />

British High Commissioner to Nigeria 59 where the Supreme<br />

Court was confronted with the issue <strong>of</strong> whether it had<br />

jurisdiction <strong>in</strong> an action brought aga<strong>in</strong>st the British High<br />

Commissioner; <strong>and</strong> whether an action brought aga<strong>in</strong>st a foreign<br />

envoy is valid. It was held <strong>in</strong>ter alia that the Supreme Court <strong>of</strong><br />

Nigeria has no orig<strong>in</strong>al jurisdiction <strong>in</strong> an action brought aga<strong>in</strong>st<br />

the British High Commissioner <strong>in</strong> Nigeria, <strong>and</strong> that the action <strong>in</strong><br />

respect <strong>of</strong> the High Commissioner <strong>and</strong>/or foreign envoy is<br />

<strong>in</strong>competent, null <strong>and</strong> void.<br />

The Privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>of</strong> diplomats have been<br />

codified <strong>in</strong> several conventions. Some <strong>of</strong> these are:<br />

i The Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations, 1961<br />

ii. The Vienna Convention on Consular Relations, 1963<br />

58 See U.S. District <strong>of</strong> Southern District <strong>of</strong> New York, 30, 1946.<br />

59 (1980) N. S. C. C. Vol. 12 P. 265.


41<br />

iii. The Convention on Special Missions, 1969<br />

iv. Privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunities <strong>of</strong> the United Nations, 1946<br />

v. Privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunities <strong>of</strong> Specialised agencies, 1947<br />

vi. Convention on the Prevention <strong>and</strong> Punishment <strong>of</strong><br />

Crimes Aga<strong>in</strong>st Internationally Protected Persons,<br />

Includ<strong>in</strong>g Diplomatic agents, 1973.<br />

Accord<strong>in</strong>gly, <strong>in</strong>ternational law has provided for the<br />

personal <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> diplomats who shall also not be liable to<br />

arrest or detention. This protection extends to his private<br />

residence, his papers, correspondence, <strong>and</strong> his property.<br />

The duty which the receiv<strong>in</strong>g State owes under<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law as regards the <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

premises <strong>and</strong> the jurisdictional immunity <strong>of</strong> foreign<br />

representatives is def<strong>in</strong>ite enough; manifestation <strong>of</strong> that duty<br />

however, is to be found <strong>in</strong> a municipal context. 60 Therefore, <strong>in</strong><br />

the event <strong>of</strong> a breach <strong>of</strong> the duty, the send<strong>in</strong>g state may have<br />

recourse through <strong>diplomatic</strong> Channels to an <strong>of</strong>ficial protest, <strong>and</strong><br />

even possibly the submission <strong>of</strong> a claim for reparation. 61<br />

The receiv<strong>in</strong>g state is required to ensure that the st<strong>and</strong>ards<br />

set by <strong>in</strong>ternational law are met <strong>and</strong> may employ for the purpose<br />

60 Hardy, M., Modern Diplomatic Law, (Great Brita<strong>in</strong>: Butler <strong>and</strong> Tanner Ltd.; 1968)<br />

PP 8-9.<br />

61 Ibid.


42<br />

whatever means or comb<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> means it chooses, whether<br />

adm<strong>in</strong>istrative, legislative or judicial. 62 These restrictions placed<br />

on envoys go to make up that body <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational <strong>and</strong> national<br />

law known as <strong>diplomatic</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities. 63<br />

1.9.2 Diplomatic Agent<br />

A <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent is a representative <strong>of</strong> his country <strong>in</strong><br />

another which <strong>in</strong>cludes the head <strong>of</strong> the mission <strong>and</strong> any other<br />

member <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> staff <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission 64.<br />

1.9.3 Consular Officer<br />

A <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficer is a representative <strong>of</strong> his country <strong>in</strong><br />

another usually <strong>in</strong> commercial matters. This <strong>in</strong>cludes the head<br />

<strong>of</strong> the <strong>consular</strong> mission entrusted <strong>in</strong> that capacity with the<br />

exercise <strong>of</strong> <strong>consular</strong> functions, <strong>and</strong> any other person entrusted<br />

<strong>in</strong> that capacity 65.<br />

1.9.4 Conundrum<br />

A confus<strong>in</strong>g problem that is difficult to solve; a question<br />

<strong>in</strong>volv<strong>in</strong>g a trick with words.<br />

62 Ibid.<br />

63 Ibid.<br />

64 Article 1 (e) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention.<br />

65 Article 1(d) <strong>of</strong> the 1963 Convention.


2.1 INTRODUCTION<br />

43<br />

CHAPTER TWO<br />

EVOLUTION OF DIPLOMACY<br />

The term Diplomacy is derived from the Greek word “diploma”<br />

which literally means a double document. Dur<strong>in</strong>g the Greek period<br />

<strong>of</strong> history all passports, imperial letters were stamped on double<br />

metal plates folded <strong>and</strong> sewn together. Later the term came to be<br />

applied to all the <strong>of</strong>ficial documents, which conferred certa<strong>in</strong><br />

privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities or rights under some mutual treaty.<br />

With the emergence <strong>of</strong> nation states, diplomacy took on a<br />

more multilateral level mak<strong>in</strong>g it more complex <strong>and</strong> sophisticated<br />

<strong>and</strong> therefore creat<strong>in</strong>g a basis for dist<strong>in</strong>ct clear rules to govern <strong>and</strong><br />

protect the class <strong>of</strong> people that are <strong>in</strong>volved <strong>in</strong> diplomacy.<br />

With the birth <strong>of</strong> the United Nations Organisation <strong>and</strong> other<br />

related <strong>in</strong>ternational organisations, diplomacy is no more conf<strong>in</strong>ed<br />

to nation-states but extended to cover <strong>in</strong>ternational organisations,<br />

<strong>in</strong> what may be known as parliamentary diplomacy.<br />

This section however attempts to look at a historical<br />

recapture <strong>of</strong> diplomacy from antiquity to <strong>contemporary</strong> times.


44<br />

2.2 THE ORIGIN OF DIPLOMACY<br />

Diplomacy <strong>in</strong> antiquity by its simplest term means the<br />

Practice <strong>of</strong> diplomacy <strong>in</strong> ancient times. There was no documented<br />

evidence <strong>of</strong> <strong>practice</strong> <strong>of</strong> diplomacy <strong>in</strong> ancient history, however as far<br />

as men could not survive alone economically <strong>and</strong> politically, there<br />

was the desire to enter <strong>in</strong>to friendly relations with their neighbours.<br />

Accord<strong>in</strong>g to Nascimento do e Silva:<br />

Diplomacy must have orig<strong>in</strong>ated once people<br />

<strong>of</strong> various background or culture made<br />

contact <strong>and</strong> sought to f<strong>in</strong>d a common ground<br />

for their deal<strong>in</strong>gs. 1<br />

The art <strong>of</strong> representation <strong>and</strong> negotiation from historical<br />

accounts can be said to be as old as social relations <strong>and</strong> began as<br />

soon as families, clans, tribes <strong>and</strong> peoples came <strong>in</strong>to contact with<br />

one another <strong>and</strong> sought to regulate marriage customs <strong>and</strong><br />

contracts, hunt<strong>in</strong>g, trade, navigation, communication,<br />

disagreements <strong>and</strong> wars. 2 Diplomacy then was ad hoc <strong>in</strong> nature.<br />

Archaeological research <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>terruptions <strong>of</strong> history show<br />

that cases <strong>of</strong> negotiations, alliances <strong>and</strong> coalition <strong>of</strong> various peoples<br />

exited s<strong>in</strong>ce antiquity. Though there could have been no legal<br />

norms regulat<strong>in</strong>g <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations, emissaries who were sent by<br />

1 Nascimento, Loc. Cit.<br />

2 Gasiokwu <strong>and</strong> Dakas, op. Cit. P. 5.


45<br />

communities for negotiation <strong>and</strong> settlement <strong>of</strong> disputes enjoyed<br />

privileges <strong>and</strong> special protection based on religion. 3 Gasiokwu,<br />

quot<strong>in</strong>g Harold Nicolson says:<br />

Even <strong>in</strong> prehistory there must have come<br />

moments when one group <strong>of</strong> savages, if only<br />

for the purpose <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>dicat<strong>in</strong>g that they had<br />

had enough <strong>of</strong> the day‟s battle, would like a<br />

pause <strong>in</strong> which to collect their wounded <strong>and</strong><br />

bury their dead. 4<br />

The above quotation only helps to emphasise the need for<br />

negotiation even <strong>in</strong> those days to save man from total annihilation.<br />

Those who had to play these roles saw how dangerous they were<br />

<strong>and</strong> could never have accomplished them if not given some form <strong>of</strong><br />

special protection or immunity. Summarily, diplomacy <strong>in</strong> antiquity<br />

was characterised by ad hoc diplomacy, military diplomacy <strong>and</strong> the<br />

art <strong>of</strong> peace treaties.<br />

In spite <strong>of</strong> “<strong>in</strong>ternational” contacts <strong>in</strong> the ancient world,<br />

diplomacy as we know it today traces its roots to the Greek City-<br />

States. In the period 800 to 100 B. C., diplomacy evolved to a<br />

considerable degree <strong>in</strong> the atmosphere <strong>of</strong> competition <strong>of</strong> the Greek<br />

City-States.<br />

3 Ibid.<br />

4 Ibid.


46<br />

The smallness <strong>of</strong> these states, their nearness <strong>and</strong> lack <strong>of</strong> real<br />

strength meant that their survival depended upon the cleverness <strong>of</strong><br />

their diplomacy. The Greek experience stressed the importance <strong>of</strong><br />

immunity <strong>and</strong> negotiation. Greek diplomacy also evolved many<br />

terms such as conventions, alliance <strong>and</strong> reconciliation that are now<br />

used <strong>in</strong> modern diplomacy.<br />

In ancient Greece, there came <strong>in</strong>to be<strong>in</strong>g a class <strong>of</strong> Permanent<br />

representatives known as “Proxenes” designated by one state to<br />

look after the <strong>in</strong>terest <strong>of</strong> its nationals <strong>in</strong> another state. At first their<br />

function was to <strong>of</strong>fer voluntary protection to foreign citizens, but<br />

later on states began to appo<strong>in</strong>t them to perform both <strong>consular</strong> <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> functions. They received emissaries from the send<strong>in</strong>g<br />

states <strong>in</strong> order to present them to the authorities <strong>and</strong> courts <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g states, <strong>and</strong> also to facilitate their missions. They also<br />

helped <strong>in</strong> draw<strong>in</strong>g up treaties <strong>and</strong> agreements. 5<br />

As early as the 4 th <strong>and</strong> 5 th century B. C. the Greek had<br />

evolved organised pr<strong>in</strong>ciples on such matters as the declaration <strong>of</strong><br />

war, conduct<strong>in</strong>g peace, ratify<strong>in</strong>g treaties <strong>in</strong> addition to hav<strong>in</strong>g such<br />

forms as arbitrations, neutrality, exchange <strong>of</strong> ambassadors,<br />

5 Nicolson, H., Evolution <strong>of</strong> Diplomatic Methods, (New York: 1962) PP 19-20


47<br />

function <strong>of</strong> consuls <strong>and</strong> certa<strong>in</strong> rules <strong>of</strong> war. 6 They had also worked<br />

out regulations observ<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> def<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g the status <strong>of</strong> aliens, the<br />

grant <strong>of</strong> naturalisation, the right <strong>of</strong> asylum, extradition <strong>and</strong> even<br />

maritime <strong>practice</strong>s.<br />

Greek diplomacy <strong>in</strong> antiquity had developed four ma<strong>in</strong> types<br />

<strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> missions:<br />

(i) Missions undertaken to appease the other party,<br />

(ii) Those for resolv<strong>in</strong>g conflicts before wars were declared,<br />

(iii) Missions for solicit<strong>in</strong>g support for a particular cause, <strong>and</strong><br />

(iv) Trips undertaken by weaker city states to stronger ones to<br />

seek alliance or support from such powerful neighbour 7<br />

In l<strong>in</strong>e with what has been discussed already on Greek<br />

diplomacy, the empire was a cluster <strong>of</strong> peaceful villages which later<br />

graduated to city-states composed <strong>of</strong> sparta, Athens <strong>and</strong> a host <strong>of</strong><br />

others summed under Delphi <strong>and</strong> Olympia. The Greeks practised<br />

ad hoc diplomacy through the organis<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> democratic groups<br />

formed either for develop<strong>in</strong>g trade <strong>and</strong> commerce or defend<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

empire from hostile aggressors.<br />

The Greeks loved a peaceful life <strong>and</strong> were mostly farmers,<br />

their attitude to strangers from foreign states was that <strong>of</strong> love <strong>and</strong><br />

6 Gasiokwu <strong>and</strong> Dakas, Op. cit. P. 6.<br />

7 Ibid.


48<br />

friendl<strong>in</strong>ess. This attitude to strangers proved otherwise when they<br />

treated envoys sent by K<strong>in</strong>g Darius <strong>of</strong> Persia shamefully, due to the<br />

fact that the purpose <strong>of</strong> the visit was to spy out the l<strong>and</strong> <strong>and</strong> not to<br />

make friends.<br />

In 480 B.C. K<strong>in</strong>g Xerxes <strong>of</strong> Persia made another attempt to<br />

capture the Greek after K<strong>in</strong>g Darius. The size <strong>of</strong> his men were too<br />

powerful for the Greeks therefore they decided that rather than go<br />

to war it was better to make peace. The Greek city - States sent<br />

selected <strong>diplomatic</strong> envoys to K<strong>in</strong>g Xerxes <strong>and</strong> a treaty <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> relations was signed between the Greek empire <strong>and</strong><br />

Persia. The Greeks sent another envoy named Themistocles who<br />

under the guise <strong>of</strong> friendship tricked Xerxes <strong>in</strong>to tak<strong>in</strong>g a wrong<br />

naval tactic. This subsequently led to the destruction <strong>of</strong> Persian<br />

naval forces by the Greeks at Salamis.<br />

Alex<strong>and</strong>er the great assumed the position as leader <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Greek-City-States <strong>and</strong> began the spread <strong>of</strong> Greek civilisation by the<br />

use <strong>of</strong> military might. He conquered Persia, Tyre, Egypt,<br />

Afghanistan, India <strong>and</strong> a host <strong>of</strong> others.<br />

Alex<strong>and</strong>er the Great practised military diplomacy <strong>in</strong><br />

conquered territories. Wherever he conquered he made peace <strong>and</strong><br />

appo<strong>in</strong>ted some men to govern the place. In the case <strong>of</strong> Egypt,


49<br />

rather than fight Alex<strong>and</strong>er, they sent envoys who signed friendship<br />

treaties with the Greeks.<br />

In India, K<strong>in</strong>g Porus first fought with Alex<strong>and</strong>er but sens<strong>in</strong>g a<br />

greater military superiority decided to sign a peace treaty.<br />

Diplomatic relations began <strong>and</strong> by virtue <strong>of</strong> friendship India built<br />

ships for Alex<strong>and</strong>er <strong>and</strong> his men. At the peak <strong>of</strong> his campaigns<br />

Alex<strong>and</strong>er later returned to Mesopotamia <strong>in</strong> Babylon where he fell<br />

sick <strong>and</strong> died, w<strong>in</strong>e hav<strong>in</strong>g been his greatest weakness.<br />

The Greeks did much to the development <strong>of</strong> diplomacy. They<br />

were the first to recognise that <strong>in</strong>ternational relations had to be<br />

governed by rules. They evolved acceptable pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>in</strong> state<br />

relations.<br />

Contributions to the development <strong>of</strong> diplomacy by Africans<br />

can be traced to Ancient Egypt, which is said to have contributed<br />

more to diplomacy <strong>in</strong> antiquity. 8 Egypt had contacts with the<br />

Mediterranean countries, Arab States, Babylon <strong>and</strong> India ever<br />

before the 4 th century B. C. Egypt sent <strong>and</strong> received trade<br />

delegations from these states with which she had contact. Numel<strong>in</strong><br />

Ragner emphatically asserted:<br />

8 Gasiokwu <strong>and</strong> Dakas, op. cit. P. 8.


50<br />

For the first time among historical peoples,<br />

will regulated <strong>in</strong>ternational connections;<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> envoys come <strong>and</strong> go; def<strong>in</strong>ite<br />

rules recorded for the reception <strong>and</strong><br />

treatment <strong>of</strong> envoys <strong>and</strong> regulations to be<br />

followed when they were accredited to a<br />

foreign court. 9<br />

From about 3100 - 1085 BC Egypt concluded many trade<br />

agreements with foreign countries <strong>and</strong> held foreigners <strong>in</strong> very high<br />

esteem <strong>and</strong> there were special laws that protected their <strong>in</strong>terests.<br />

It was said that:<br />

Property belong<strong>in</strong>g to a foreigner that died <strong>in</strong><br />

Egypt was considered safely held for his wife<br />

<strong>and</strong> children until a delegate arrives from the<br />

dead man‟s country to take his th<strong>in</strong>gs. 10<br />

It seems the earliest recorded <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>in</strong>tercourse <strong>of</strong><br />

“<strong>in</strong>ternational” relevance took place <strong>in</strong> the Nile valley. 11 The wealth<br />

<strong>of</strong> Egypt made it a focal po<strong>in</strong>t <strong>of</strong> commerce <strong>and</strong> thus brought it <strong>in</strong>to<br />

contact with other people. The first treaty <strong>of</strong> which the full text was<br />

preserved was the one drawn up between Rameses II <strong>of</strong> Egypt <strong>and</strong><br />

Hattusalis, the Pr<strong>in</strong>ce <strong>of</strong> the Hittites. This treaty among other<br />

th<strong>in</strong>gs, dealt with the extradition <strong>of</strong> deserters to their country <strong>of</strong><br />

9 Ibid.<br />

10 Ibid.<br />

11 Anger, B. “Scope <strong>and</strong> Abuse <strong>of</strong> Privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunities by Internationally protected persons,”<br />

unpublished Thesis, Faculty <strong>of</strong> law, <strong>University</strong> <strong>of</strong> <strong>Jos</strong>, <strong>Jos</strong>, December, 1992, P. 15.


51<br />

orig<strong>in</strong>, with the pledge that neither the guilty, nor their wives,<br />

mothers nor children will be put to death. 12<br />

Archaeological research has made discoveries which tend to<br />

show the existence <strong>of</strong> peaceful relations between the ancient<br />

Babylonian empire <strong>and</strong> neighbour<strong>in</strong>g states. At that time, the<br />

k<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>and</strong> chiefs <strong>of</strong> these states were <strong>in</strong> constant correspondence<br />

with each other. Diplomatic envoys were allowed to come <strong>and</strong> go<br />

<strong>and</strong> there were st<strong>and</strong>ard <strong>practice</strong>s for the reception <strong>and</strong> treatment<br />

<strong>of</strong> envoys. On major problems, formal agreements or treaties were<br />

decided upon between states.<br />

There were also evidences <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations <strong>in</strong> Indian<br />

states <strong>in</strong> the ancient period. The Law <strong>of</strong> Manu (1200 BC) conta<strong>in</strong>ed<br />

a series <strong>of</strong> rules for the k<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> ambassadors <strong>in</strong> deal<strong>in</strong>g with other<br />

Indian States. In ancient India, envoys were sent to foreign courts<br />

either with the objective <strong>of</strong> mak<strong>in</strong>g alliances or with the aim <strong>of</strong><br />

obta<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g military <strong>in</strong>formation that would be <strong>of</strong> use to their states.<br />

Ancient Ch<strong>in</strong>a dur<strong>in</strong>g the Eastern Chou Dynasty (770-256 B.<br />

C.) made contacts with other parts <strong>of</strong> Asia. Problems were solved<br />

accord<strong>in</strong>g to accepted pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>and</strong> envoys were given <strong>in</strong>structions<br />

on how to act so as to ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong> peaceful relations with other heads<br />

12 Gasiokwu <strong>and</strong> Dakas, op. Cit. P. 9.


52<br />

<strong>of</strong> States. The teach<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>of</strong> legalists such as that <strong>of</strong> the pr<strong>in</strong>ce <strong>of</strong><br />

Shang brought organisation to the process <strong>of</strong> negotiation. 13<br />

Rome was at the Peak <strong>of</strong> its power before 476 A. C. Rome<br />

hardly practised diplomacy <strong>in</strong> the strict sense at this stage.<br />

Consumed with the conviction that its dest<strong>in</strong>y was to dom<strong>in</strong>ate the<br />

world, it imposed the „pax romana‟ which was based on the<br />

pr<strong>in</strong>ciple that all nations had to be subjugated, if necessary by<br />

force or even total elim<strong>in</strong>ation as <strong>in</strong> the case <strong>of</strong> Carthage. She<br />

however ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong>ed bilateral relations with some nations, which<br />

was achieved by <strong>in</strong>timidation <strong>and</strong> active participation <strong>of</strong> Roman<br />

envoys. 14<br />

Foreign envoys sent to Rome or by Rome were as a general<br />

rule respected. Fetiales (i.e. the Roman Priest <strong>in</strong> charge <strong>of</strong><br />

management <strong>of</strong> functions Govern<strong>in</strong>g Roman relation with other<br />

nations) was known to have conducted negotiations, dem<strong>and</strong>ed <strong>and</strong><br />

received respect for <strong>in</strong>violability. They preferred organisation to<br />

negotiation <strong>and</strong> sought to impose a universal respect for their own<br />

system, oblivious <strong>of</strong> the fact that:<br />

13 Encyclopedia International, Vol. 6. P.33.<br />

14 Gasiokwu <strong>and</strong> Dakas, op. Cit. P. 10.


53<br />

Diplomacy <strong>and</strong> negotiation flourish where<br />

the pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> reciprocity between<br />

sovereign...is acknowledged but languish<br />

<strong>and</strong> disappear <strong>in</strong> a relationship <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>equality<br />

such as that exist<strong>in</strong>g under the Roman<br />

empire where one power predom<strong>in</strong>ated. 15<br />

The absence <strong>of</strong> reciprocity was exemplified by the<br />

contemptuous treatment <strong>of</strong> the Macedonia ambassadors who went<br />

to Rome <strong>in</strong> 197 B. C. The envoys had been told on arrival <strong>in</strong> Rome<br />

that if they were not able to conclude negotiations with<strong>in</strong> 60 days<br />

that their <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity would be lifted <strong>and</strong> they would<br />

hence be regarded <strong>and</strong> treated as spies <strong>and</strong> be conducted under<br />

armed guard to the coast. 16<br />

The contribution <strong>of</strong> the Roman Empire <strong>in</strong> the strict sense <strong>of</strong> it<br />

to the development <strong>of</strong> diplomacy came dur<strong>in</strong>g its decl<strong>in</strong>e when it<br />

was forced to have recourse to diplomacy. In its decl<strong>in</strong>e, formalism<br />

<strong>and</strong> legal concepts it had created came to its aid as the last resort<br />

to a Rome threatened by other states up to the 18 th century. 17 The<br />

term<strong>in</strong>ology <strong>of</strong> Roman law was accepted by writers <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law <strong>and</strong> the concepts it enshr<strong>in</strong>ed were used by European<br />

countries.<br />

15 Ibid.<br />

16 Ibid, P. 11.<br />

17 Anger, B. Op. Cit. P. 19.


54<br />

Up to the middle <strong>of</strong> the 15 th Century, the establishment <strong>of</strong><br />

permanent missions was not very common. Diplomacy as a form <strong>of</strong><br />

representation <strong>and</strong> negotiation also came <strong>in</strong>to play as early as 1446<br />

when Francesco Sforza, Duke <strong>of</strong> Milan, appo<strong>in</strong>ted what is usually<br />

considered to be the first permanent secular embassy. He sent his<br />

secretary, Nicodemo da Pontremoli, to represent him at the court <strong>of</strong><br />

the Medici <strong>in</strong> Florence. A similar appo<strong>in</strong>tment is also said to have<br />

been made earlier <strong>in</strong> 1375 by Ludovico Gonaga <strong>of</strong> Mantua.<br />

The Byzant<strong>in</strong>e <strong>diplomatic</strong> method relied solely on play<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong>f<br />

one potential enemy aga<strong>in</strong>st another. They could not lay the<br />

foundation <strong>of</strong> a last<strong>in</strong>g value to the art but diplomacy <strong>of</strong> artifice<br />

which fostered deception <strong>and</strong> fraudulence <strong>and</strong> ironically<br />

established the pattern <strong>of</strong> diplomacy preferred by Europe; a pattern<br />

which ignored the purpose <strong>of</strong> true negotiation. 18 They were also the<br />

first to establish a special department <strong>of</strong> foreign affairs to receive<br />

<strong>and</strong> analyse reports <strong>and</strong> to carry out foreign policy through tra<strong>in</strong>ed<br />

pr<strong>of</strong>essional negotiators. 19<br />

Modern diplomacy, permanent diplomacy are some <strong>of</strong> the<br />

creations <strong>of</strong> Italian renaissance. The period <strong>of</strong> the renaissance was<br />

18 Gasiokwu <strong>and</strong> Dakas, op. Cit. P. 12.<br />

19 Ibid.


55<br />

the period <strong>of</strong> Cultural Revolution which cut across areas <strong>of</strong> arts,<br />

music, architecture, fashion, <strong>and</strong> the value system <strong>of</strong> the Italians<br />

spill<strong>in</strong>g over to Western Europe. The renaissance had its<br />

foundation <strong>in</strong> Italy <strong>and</strong> the period was put at 1300 - 1450 A. D.<br />

After revolt<strong>in</strong>g aga<strong>in</strong>st the rule <strong>of</strong> the Pope, they were no more<br />

unified <strong>in</strong> both politics <strong>and</strong> diplomacy.<br />

War was a cont<strong>in</strong>uous solution to g<strong>in</strong>ger<strong>in</strong>g the morale <strong>of</strong> its<br />

populace. These wars were however not taken far <strong>of</strong>f with efforts<br />

concentrated <strong>in</strong> between them. Perugia took Arezzo, Florence took<br />

Siena, Verona took Padua. The major powers ate up the smaller<br />

ones.<br />

The Italian distance away from Europe put her <strong>in</strong> a sort <strong>of</strong> a<br />

lost isl<strong>and</strong> as they had no contact with the realities <strong>of</strong> Europe. This<br />

made their diplomacy non-conscious <strong>and</strong> non-competitive. The<br />

nature <strong>and</strong> contents <strong>of</strong> wars this time changed to that <strong>of</strong> achiev<strong>in</strong>g<br />

f<strong>in</strong>ancial <strong>and</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> ga<strong>in</strong>s so that soldier<strong>in</strong>g went pari-pasu<br />

with <strong>diplomatic</strong> calculations. The diplomat came <strong>in</strong> to supplement<br />

the efforts <strong>of</strong> the military <strong>and</strong> to direct it. This time, the diplomat<br />

was valued more than the soldier.<br />

The dem<strong>and</strong>s <strong>of</strong> the Italian system led to the <strong>in</strong>vention <strong>of</strong> the<br />

resident ambassadors who became very common <strong>in</strong> 15 th century


56<br />

Italy. They were the means for adjudicat<strong>in</strong>g the <strong>in</strong>cessant conflicts<br />

<strong>and</strong> were effective. Comment<strong>in</strong>g on the functions, Bernard Du<br />

Rosier said they were to rema<strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong> their posts <strong>in</strong> charge <strong>of</strong> all<br />

<strong>in</strong>terests until recalled. The history <strong>of</strong> this development dates from<br />

the 12 th century <strong>practice</strong>s.<br />

The Italian merchant had begun to cluster <strong>in</strong> colonies <strong>in</strong> the<br />

major commercial cities such as Levant <strong>and</strong> to appo<strong>in</strong>t <strong>and</strong> come<br />

under the jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> consuls. The consuls acted as arbiters <strong>in</strong><br />

ma<strong>in</strong>ly commercial areas <strong>and</strong> soon after, their home states started<br />

appo<strong>in</strong>t<strong>in</strong>g them. By the 15 th <strong>and</strong> 16 th centuries however, the<br />

dem<strong>and</strong>s <strong>of</strong> diplomacy transcended purely commercial <strong>in</strong>tercourse<br />

so that they needed ambassadors with wider powers. Milan, under<br />

Giagalenzo had the most effective diplomacy which she laid on both<br />

short <strong>and</strong> long term support<strong>in</strong>g them with its huge economic base.<br />

Diplomatic goals <strong>and</strong> ga<strong>in</strong>s were codified, mak<strong>in</strong>g them<br />

substantive.<br />

Diplomats were treated with etiquette commensurate with<br />

ranks <strong>and</strong> given immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges. Crimes aga<strong>in</strong>st them<br />

were treated as sacrilegious <strong>and</strong> as crimes aga<strong>in</strong>st their states.<br />

By 1440, Italy was dom<strong>in</strong>ated by five major states. These<br />

were Venice, Florence, Naples, Milan <strong>and</strong> the Papacy with none


57<br />

strong enough to dom<strong>in</strong>ate the other. The scene <strong>of</strong> the Italian City-<br />

States this time was that <strong>of</strong> a system <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>dependent states, co-<br />

exist<strong>in</strong>g by virtue <strong>of</strong> an unstable equilibrium for a crafty statesman<br />

to take given the power too.<br />

Florence <strong>and</strong> Naples sought for peace <strong>in</strong> the „most holy<br />

league‟ while Milan <strong>and</strong> Venice concluded the peace <strong>of</strong> Lodipact on<br />

30 th August, 1454. The aims were to guarantee aga<strong>in</strong>st external<br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternal aggression <strong>and</strong> to stabilise the status quo <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Penisula. It lasted 25years with Provision made for renewals after<br />

expiration. It worked for some time until it collapsed aga<strong>in</strong> under<br />

the acts <strong>of</strong> states chas<strong>in</strong>g after selfish political, <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong><br />

military objectives.<br />

The most important contribution <strong>of</strong> the Italians on the<br />

development <strong>of</strong> diplomacy was the establishment <strong>of</strong> permanent<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> missions abroad with ambassadors liv<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> the capital<br />

<strong>of</strong> the country to which they were accredited. 20 Other Italian<br />

contributions to diplomacy <strong>in</strong>clude the evolution <strong>of</strong> the procedures<br />

for negotiat<strong>in</strong>g treaties <strong>and</strong> apart from their regular treaties; there<br />

were also the protocols <strong>of</strong> Agreement, commercial treaties <strong>and</strong> even<br />

20 Gasiokwu <strong>and</strong> Dakas, op. Cit. P. 12.


58<br />

attempts to establish maritime law. They also organised summit<br />

conferences. 21<br />

French language became the l<strong>in</strong>gua Franca <strong>in</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

circles by 1559, when the pr<strong>in</strong>cipal role <strong>in</strong> European politics <strong>and</strong><br />

diplomacy shifted to France. The outst<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g figures at the time <strong>in</strong><br />

France were Louis XIV Richelieu <strong>and</strong> Grotius. There was also a<br />

period when the study <strong>of</strong> diplomacy from a purely legal angle<br />

began, <strong>and</strong> books on the subject were written. Grotius‟ work is still<br />

considered to be <strong>of</strong> fundamental importance.<br />

The concept <strong>of</strong> preview<strong>in</strong>g the art <strong>of</strong> negotiation as a long-<br />

term ongo<strong>in</strong>g process rather than a short term plan was <strong>in</strong>troduced<br />

by Richelieu. From then the French national <strong>in</strong>terest became the<br />

primary consideration <strong>of</strong> diplomats, with its subsequent<br />

<strong>in</strong>troduction <strong>of</strong> the system <strong>of</strong> domestic propag<strong>and</strong>a.<br />

Richelieu also <strong>in</strong>troduced what was to be called the most<br />

essential <strong>of</strong> all the component <strong>of</strong> sound diplomacy - the element <strong>of</strong><br />

certa<strong>in</strong>ty: the proliferation <strong>of</strong> responsibility <strong>and</strong> the dispersal <strong>of</strong><br />

responsibility to different m<strong>in</strong>istries which <strong>of</strong>ten bewilder<br />

negotiators <strong>and</strong> negotiation ended. Instead the direction <strong>of</strong> policy<br />

<strong>and</strong> control <strong>of</strong> ambassadors became the function <strong>of</strong> a s<strong>in</strong>gle<br />

21 Ibid.


59<br />

m<strong>in</strong>istry - External Affairs. 22 Today every country has a m<strong>in</strong>istry <strong>of</strong><br />

External or foreign Affairs.<br />

French <strong>diplomatic</strong> correspondence became the model <strong>of</strong> all<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> methods as Nicolson cited by Gasiokwu concluded that:<br />

The despatches <strong>and</strong> notes <strong>of</strong> French<br />

Ambassadors are superior <strong>in</strong> their lucidity to<br />

those <strong>of</strong> any other diplomats. 23<br />

The immense <strong>and</strong> unique contribution to the evolution <strong>of</strong><br />

present day diplomacy by the French can aga<strong>in</strong> be seen from this<br />

quotation:<br />

The best adapted to the conduct <strong>of</strong> relation<br />

between civilised states. It was courteous<br />

<strong>and</strong> dignified: it was cont<strong>in</strong>uous <strong>and</strong><br />

gradual. It attached importance to<br />

knowledge <strong>and</strong> experience. 24<br />

Contemporary diplomacy can be said to have started <strong>in</strong> the<br />

17 th century. From this period diplomacy underwent series <strong>of</strong><br />

revolutionary processes differ<strong>in</strong>g from the <strong>practice</strong> dur<strong>in</strong>g the Greek<br />

period, antiquity or even <strong>in</strong> the era <strong>of</strong> Italian city-states. The<br />

send<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> envoys <strong>and</strong> ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g permanent legation was already<br />

an accepted tradition <strong>in</strong> Europe at this time. The Treaty <strong>of</strong><br />

22 Ibid.<br />

23 Ibid.<br />

24 Ibid.


60<br />

Wesphalia <strong>in</strong> 1648 was precisely the direct source <strong>of</strong> modern<br />

diplomacy.<br />

This Treaty confirmed the pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> balance <strong>of</strong> power <strong>in</strong><br />

Europe <strong>and</strong> thus obliged states to keep watch on one another. The<br />

Treaty was seen to be the most important judicial <strong>in</strong>strument <strong>of</strong> the<br />

time, <strong>and</strong> most important laid the foundation for the development<br />

<strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>and</strong> diplomacy by its recognition <strong>of</strong> the<br />

existence <strong>of</strong> European states as separate sovereign k<strong>in</strong>gdoms, thus<br />

the evolution <strong>of</strong> diplomacy based on peaceful co-existence <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Monarchs.<br />

As lord Gore-Booth puts it:<br />

Diplomacy <strong>in</strong> this period proceeded<br />

accord<strong>in</strong>g to well def<strong>in</strong>ed rules <strong>and</strong> civilised<br />

convention. It was personal <strong>and</strong> flexible <strong>and</strong><br />

its style, while not without subtlety, was<br />

clear enough for all who took part <strong>in</strong> it to<br />

underst<strong>and</strong> not only what was explicitly<br />

said, but what was to be taken for granted. 25<br />

By 17 th <strong>and</strong> 18 th centuries European Monarchs ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong>ed<br />

missions abroad. They also made efforts to keep <strong>and</strong> improve on<br />

their <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations. Diplomats at this time however owed no<br />

allegiance to the people but to the k<strong>in</strong>gs personally. The negative<br />

25 Lord Gore-Booth (ed.), Satow’s Guide to Diplomatic <strong>practice</strong> (London: Longman Publishers; 1981) P.<br />

5.


61<br />

effect <strong>of</strong> this was that direct contact with the k<strong>in</strong>gs made diplomats<br />

to be <strong>in</strong>volved <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternal affairs or political activities <strong>of</strong> the host<br />

countries, <strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g at times plots to overthrow or assass<strong>in</strong>ate the<br />

k<strong>in</strong>g. For example the Spanish <strong>and</strong> French ambassadors were<br />

caught <strong>in</strong>volved <strong>in</strong> plans to overthrow or assass<strong>in</strong>ate the reign<strong>in</strong>g<br />

English Monarchs at various times. 26<br />

The Treaty <strong>of</strong> Westphalia created the problems <strong>of</strong> precedence<br />

s<strong>in</strong>ce all monarchs were equal, <strong>and</strong> this created serious problems<br />

also <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> blunder at various courts. The diplomats<br />

quarrelled among themselves as to who should come first as<br />

precedence, is an important <strong>diplomatic</strong> factor. Noteworthy, <strong>in</strong><br />

London <strong>in</strong> 1661, a physical combat took place between the Spanish<br />

<strong>and</strong> French envoys when the coach <strong>of</strong> the Spanish ambassador<br />

tried to overtake that <strong>of</strong> the French. This unfortunate <strong>in</strong>cident<br />

which even led to loss <strong>of</strong> lives <strong>and</strong> valuables resulted to the<br />

break<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations between France <strong>and</strong> Spa<strong>in</strong> for<br />

some time.<br />

Aga<strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong> 1768 <strong>in</strong> London dur<strong>in</strong>g a court ball, a French<br />

diplomat physically had to plant himself <strong>in</strong> front seat next to<br />

Austrian ambassador. He had to climb over the back benches to<br />

26 As cited by Gasiokwu <strong>and</strong> Dakas, op. Cit. P.15.


62<br />

<strong>in</strong>sert himself <strong>in</strong> the front between the Russian <strong>and</strong> Austrian<br />

ambassador. This led to a fight <strong>in</strong> which the Russian ambassador<br />

was severely <strong>in</strong>jured. 27<br />

In the dawn <strong>of</strong> the defeat <strong>of</strong> Napoleon <strong>in</strong> 1814, allied<br />

diplomats compris<strong>in</strong>g Austria, <strong>in</strong> 1815 to settle the affairs <strong>of</strong><br />

Europe as the turmoils <strong>of</strong> war had left the cont<strong>in</strong>ent <strong>of</strong> 1815<br />

different from that <strong>of</strong> the 18 th century. Several states had ceased to<br />

exist while the boundaries <strong>of</strong> many others had been modified aga<strong>in</strong><br />

<strong>and</strong> aga<strong>in</strong> hence there was an acute need for peace <strong>and</strong> a dire need<br />

for a balance <strong>of</strong> power to forestall the emergence <strong>of</strong> another<br />

Napoleon. The fore-mentioned powers discussed the terms <strong>of</strong> f<strong>in</strong>al<br />

peace <strong>and</strong> even entered <strong>in</strong>to secret agreements before almost every<br />

part <strong>of</strong> Europe was <strong>in</strong>vited to the congress, thus many decisions<br />

were already concluded before the congress opened. The congress<br />

proved to be one <strong>of</strong> the most important <strong>diplomatic</strong> gather<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>in</strong> the<br />

history <strong>of</strong> Europe.<br />

On a f<strong>in</strong>al analysis, it can be deduced that European<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> services had become to some extent st<strong>and</strong>ardized prior<br />

to the 19 th century. However, it became more permanent <strong>and</strong><br />

formal <strong>in</strong> the wake <strong>of</strong> the 1815 Vienna congress <strong>and</strong> subsequent<br />

27 Ibid.


63<br />

modifications at the Aix-la-chapelle conference <strong>in</strong> 1818. Annex<br />

XVII <strong>of</strong> the Treaty <strong>of</strong> Vienna (1815) serves as the bedrock on which<br />

the regulation on the Rank <strong>and</strong> Precedence <strong>of</strong> Diplomatic Agents is<br />

founded. It created a fixed <strong>in</strong>ternational hierarchy <strong>of</strong> the<br />

pr<strong>of</strong>essional diplomats who were to conduct <strong>in</strong>ternational affairs<br />

throughout the century.<br />

The regulation established three categories <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

characters namely, ambassadors, m<strong>in</strong>isters <strong>and</strong> charge d‟affaires.<br />

Except for the m<strong>in</strong>or change <strong>in</strong> nomenclature, present hierarchy <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational actors is almost the same as conta<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong> the Vienna<br />

Treaty.<br />

This gradual st<strong>and</strong>ardization <strong>of</strong> rules on the ranks <strong>of</strong><br />

diplomats marked a great advance <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>stitutionalization <strong>of</strong><br />

diplomacy. In fact, Vienna congress <strong>and</strong> the Aix-la-chapelle<br />

conference brought order <strong>in</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> world.<br />

Apart from the above, the congresses marked a l<strong>and</strong>mark <strong>in</strong><br />

the annals <strong>of</strong> history <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law. Firstly, <strong>in</strong>ternational law<br />

emerged s<strong>in</strong>ce the realization <strong>of</strong> the importance <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ter-state co-<br />

operation dur<strong>in</strong>g the congresses because they dictated the need for<br />

decorum <strong>and</strong> orderl<strong>in</strong>ess which was lack<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> pre-19th century


64<br />

Europe. In fact the congresses buttressed the symbiotic<br />

relationship between diplomacy <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

In addition, pacific settlement <strong>of</strong> disputes, a major pre-<br />

occupation <strong>of</strong> present day diplomacy emerged as a result <strong>of</strong> these<br />

congresses.<br />

The concept <strong>of</strong> equality <strong>of</strong> states <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law was<br />

conceived. The provision <strong>in</strong> the preamble <strong>of</strong> the United Nations<br />

charter on equal rights <strong>of</strong> nations is a bra<strong>in</strong>-child <strong>of</strong> these<br />

congresses.<br />

The congresses also heralded the pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> non-<br />

<strong>in</strong>tervention <strong>in</strong> the domestic affairs <strong>of</strong> states, also enshr<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong> the<br />

United Nations Charter. It is pert<strong>in</strong>ent to note that prior to the<br />

congresses, there was no regulation govern<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>terference <strong>of</strong><br />

powerful states <strong>in</strong> the domestic affairs <strong>of</strong> weaker nations.<br />

F<strong>in</strong>ally, the congresses laid the foundation for the<br />

establishment <strong>of</strong> periodic conferences on matters <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

concern.<br />

Multilaterality has become a ma<strong>in</strong> characteristic <strong>of</strong> diplomacy<br />

today. Improvements <strong>in</strong> means <strong>of</strong> transport <strong>and</strong> communication<br />

dem<strong>and</strong> more multilateral solutions, for there are few problems<br />

which only affect two states.


65<br />

Modern diplomacy has diverse agenda <strong>and</strong> covers a wide<br />

range <strong>of</strong> human activities, <strong>in</strong>volv<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>and</strong> non-state actors.<br />

These actors advance their <strong>in</strong>terests through dialogue,<br />

correspondence, conferences, lobby<strong>in</strong>g, negotiation, threats <strong>of</strong> war,<br />

<strong>and</strong> even acts <strong>of</strong> violence.<br />

The 1961 Vienna convention on Diplomatic Relations <strong>and</strong> the<br />

1963 convention on <strong>consular</strong> Relations are important l<strong>and</strong>marks <strong>in</strong><br />

<strong>contemporary</strong> times.


3.1 INTRODUCTION<br />

66<br />

CHAPTER THREE<br />

ACTORS ON THE DIPLOMATIC STAGE<br />

International politics is a narrower field than <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

relations, ow<strong>in</strong>g to the fact that the former entails the struggle for<br />

power. While the latter connotes the sum total <strong>of</strong> relationships that<br />

take place <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational system. These relations <strong>in</strong>clude<br />

scientific, military, economic, cultural, social <strong>and</strong> political<br />

relationships. Various actors play these rather sensitive roles on<br />

the <strong>diplomatic</strong> stage. This chapter therefore exam<strong>in</strong>es who these<br />

actors are, how they play these roles <strong>and</strong> why the roles are<br />

necessary.<br />

3.2 ACTORS ON DIPLOMATIC STAGE<br />

Actors on the stage <strong>of</strong> International Diplomacy can be<br />

identified as any group <strong>of</strong> persons, <strong>in</strong>dividuals or entities that<br />

through their activities <strong>in</strong>fluence the operation <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

<strong>practice</strong>s on the <strong>in</strong>ternational scene. In try<strong>in</strong>g to identify the<br />

categories <strong>of</strong> actors <strong>in</strong> <strong>contemporary</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational diplomacy, Ojo 1<br />

1 Ojo, O et al African International Relations (New York: Longman; 1998) p. 20.


67<br />

has suggested that they should be regarded as actors; all<br />

<strong>in</strong>dividuals, groups <strong>and</strong> other non-state entities, which<br />

<strong>in</strong>dependently enter <strong>in</strong>to transactions or relationships that have<br />

political consequences <strong>and</strong> at the same time, are <strong>in</strong>ternational <strong>in</strong><br />

scope.<br />

Until recently, states alone were thought to be the only actors<br />

<strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational diplomacy. This is because diplomacy, as earlier<br />

noted, comprises any means by which states establish or ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong><br />

mutual relationships, communicate with each other, or carry out<br />

political or legal transactions, <strong>in</strong> each case through their<br />

authorised agents 2. Brownlie 3 <strong>in</strong> addition ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong>s that diplomacy<br />

<strong>in</strong>volves the exchange <strong>of</strong> permanent or at least regular<br />

representatives that are necessary for states to give substance to<br />

their membership <strong>of</strong> the United Nations <strong>and</strong> other major<br />

<strong>in</strong>tergovernmental organizations <strong>and</strong> these representatives are <strong>in</strong><br />

their own right actors s<strong>in</strong>ce they personify the states.<br />

Broadly speak<strong>in</strong>g, actors on the <strong>diplomatic</strong> stage differ just as<br />

the roles they play vary. But there is no doubt that states<br />

personified by their heads are the pr<strong>in</strong>cipal actors <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

diplomacy. Because they are always at the head <strong>of</strong> any <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

2 Brownlie,1 Pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> Public International Law (London Oxford Press; 1979) p. 345<br />

3 Ibid


68<br />

<strong>in</strong>tercourse but when they are not so do<strong>in</strong>g, they send <strong>in</strong>dividuals<br />

who act as embodiment <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>and</strong> states as their delegates<br />

<strong>and</strong> representatives. Whatever, the head or representatives appends<br />

his signature to, commits the generality <strong>of</strong> the country. He is<br />

assumed to be a legitimate actor, be<strong>in</strong>g an embodiment <strong>of</strong> the<br />

whole people.<br />

Besides, a nation‟s foreign m<strong>in</strong>ister is a highly regarded actor<br />

on the <strong>diplomatic</strong> stage. Though he works <strong>in</strong> consultation with the<br />

head <strong>of</strong> state <strong>and</strong> others as the case may be, he is also a pr<strong>in</strong>cipal<br />

actor. He could commit his country <strong>in</strong>to agreements <strong>and</strong> treaties<br />

or even sign laws that govern <strong>diplomatic</strong> conduct, as was the case<br />

with the Diplomatic Immunities <strong>and</strong> Privileges Act, Cap 99, Laws <strong>of</strong><br />

the Federation <strong>of</strong> Nigeria, 1990. Other cab<strong>in</strong>et m<strong>in</strong>isters are also<br />

actors when they are entrusted with the responsibility to act <strong>in</strong> that<br />

capacity. In such situations what they b<strong>in</strong>d is assumed to be<br />

b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g on their states because they are legitimately delegated. For<br />

<strong>in</strong>stance, <strong>in</strong> the Diplomatic Immunities <strong>and</strong> Privileges Act, Cap 99,<br />

Laws <strong>of</strong> the Federation <strong>of</strong> Nigeria, 1990, the M<strong>in</strong>ister <strong>of</strong> F<strong>in</strong>ance<br />

most <strong>of</strong>ten refereed to as the “said M<strong>in</strong>ister” could cause a<br />

regulation to be published <strong>in</strong> a government Gazette. This exempts<br />

some <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents or representatives <strong>of</strong> foreign sovereign


69<br />

powers from certa<strong>in</strong> taxation <strong>and</strong> duties. On that basis, he has<br />

become an actor on the <strong>diplomatic</strong> stage.<br />

Beside these categories <strong>of</strong> persons, <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong><br />

<strong>of</strong>ficers are also actors on <strong>diplomatic</strong> stage. A <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent <strong>and</strong><br />

his legation personify the state he represents, an act aga<strong>in</strong>st him is<br />

assumed to be an action aga<strong>in</strong>st his state. In his position <strong>and</strong><br />

accord<strong>in</strong>g to the Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations <strong>of</strong><br />

1961 4, he represents, protects, negotiates, ascerta<strong>in</strong>s by lawful<br />

means <strong>and</strong> promotes the <strong>in</strong>terests <strong>of</strong> the state 5. He plays a major<br />

role on the <strong>diplomatic</strong> stage <strong>and</strong> most <strong>of</strong>ten he has been a target <strong>of</strong><br />

assass<strong>in</strong>ation attempt, kidnap <strong>and</strong> even murder <strong>and</strong> thus a subject<br />

<strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> tussle between nations. For an actor on the<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> stage to be able to carry out the functions stated above,<br />

he needs some protection. In furtherance <strong>of</strong> this, both the 1961,<br />

<strong>and</strong> 1963 Vienna Conventions on Diplomatic <strong>and</strong> Consular<br />

Relations all have entries for his privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities but<br />

strictly for the efficient performance <strong>of</strong> his duties or functions. In<br />

this regard Articles 22, 29, 30, 31, <strong>and</strong> 33 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention<br />

<strong>and</strong> Articles 27, 31 <strong>and</strong> 40 <strong>of</strong> the 1963 Convention are relevant.<br />

Besides, steps have also been taken as to the protection <strong>of</strong> the<br />

4 Article 3<br />

5. Ojo, O. Loc. Cit.


70<br />

International actor especially <strong>in</strong> the New York Convention on<br />

Special Missions 1969 <strong>and</strong> the Convention on the Punishment <strong>of</strong><br />

Crimes aga<strong>in</strong>st Internationally Protected Persons <strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agents, 1973.<br />

Diplomacy <strong>in</strong> the modern world hav<strong>in</strong>g become multilateral <strong>in</strong><br />

scope <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>stitutionalized <strong>in</strong> such organizations as the United<br />

Nations <strong>and</strong> its specialized agencies occurs <strong>in</strong> different shades<br />

performed by specialists <strong>and</strong> politicians. The issues they h<strong>and</strong>le are<br />

many <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>tricate <strong>and</strong> accord<strong>in</strong>g to Holsti 6, not only has large<br />

portions <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> communication become channelled through<br />

multilateral <strong>in</strong>stitutions <strong>and</strong> organizations but also <strong>in</strong> bilateral<br />

relations, the <strong>in</strong>stitutional framework <strong>of</strong> communication has<br />

become <strong>in</strong>creas<strong>in</strong>gly complex as the range <strong>of</strong> issues common to any<br />

pair <strong>of</strong> states has exp<strong>and</strong>ed 7.<br />

Under this category could be found such <strong>in</strong>ternational or<br />

<strong>in</strong>ter-governmental organizations as the United Nations, the African<br />

Union <strong>and</strong> Organization <strong>of</strong> American States. These bodies play<br />

major roles <strong>in</strong> the course <strong>of</strong> relationship between nations, <strong>and</strong> their<br />

representatives are accorded immunities, privileges <strong>and</strong> protection<br />

6 Holsti, K. J. International Politics: A Framework for Analysis Englewood; 1977, p.56.<br />

7 Ibid. p.85.


71<br />

due for any other diplomat. For <strong>in</strong>stance, the Secretary General <strong>of</strong><br />

the U. N. is a powerful actor on the <strong>diplomatic</strong> stage. When<br />

conventions are fashioned by the body, the <strong>in</strong>strument <strong>of</strong><br />

ratification is always deposited by every state with the Secretary<br />

General.<br />

Mult<strong>in</strong>ational corporations are also actors on the <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

stage. They are trans-national units that have had <strong>and</strong> cont<strong>in</strong>ue to<br />

have significant impact on the <strong>in</strong>ternational system. These<br />

corporations are accord<strong>in</strong>g to Raymond Vernon, clusters <strong>of</strong><br />

corporations <strong>of</strong> different nationalities that are jo<strong>in</strong>ed together by a<br />

parent company through the bonds <strong>of</strong> common ownership, that<br />

respond to a common strategy <strong>and</strong> that draw from a common pool<br />

<strong>of</strong> f<strong>in</strong>ancial <strong>and</strong> human resources 8. They sprawl across national<br />

boundaries l<strong>in</strong>k<strong>in</strong>g the assets <strong>and</strong> activities <strong>of</strong> different national<br />

jurisdictions with an <strong>in</strong>timacy that seems to threaten the concept <strong>of</strong><br />

the nation state as a sovereign unit. The massive wealth available<br />

to these companies, the magnitude <strong>of</strong> the operations <strong>and</strong> their near<br />

monopoly <strong>of</strong> the very sensitive technology give them a lot <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>fluence <strong>in</strong> the world, even more than that exerted by many nation<br />

states. They have always played significant roles <strong>in</strong> the<br />

8 Vernon, R. Mult<strong>in</strong>ational Bus<strong>in</strong>ess <strong>and</strong> National Economic goal (middlesey: pengu<strong>in</strong>e Books;1977) p15.


72<br />

strengthen<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> relations between states <strong>and</strong> by their subtle<br />

manoeuvre, they have aided the overthrow <strong>of</strong> government. This is<br />

not a <strong>diplomatic</strong> act. But the mention <strong>of</strong> it helps to portray the<br />

ability <strong>of</strong> these oligopolistic corporations to affect nations where<br />

they f<strong>in</strong>d themselves. Their huge access to capital makes it easy for<br />

them to relate to the seat <strong>of</strong> power with<strong>in</strong> the territory <strong>of</strong> the host<br />

state.<br />

Accord<strong>in</strong>g to Gilp<strong>in</strong>:<br />

American mult<strong>in</strong>ational corporations have<br />

also been regarded as a tool <strong>of</strong> diplomacy <strong>in</strong><br />

most cases to the displeasure <strong>of</strong> their<br />

bus<strong>in</strong>ess leaders. The United States<br />

government has tried to manipulate or control<br />

the activities <strong>of</strong> American corporations <strong>in</strong><br />

order to <strong>in</strong>duce or coerce other government to<br />

do its bidd<strong>in</strong>g 9.<br />

The above quotation does not emphasize the <strong>of</strong>ficial use <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> tools with<strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational system. It however, shows<br />

the ability <strong>of</strong> these corporations to play their part from beh<strong>in</strong>d the<br />

scenes <strong>and</strong> use <strong>diplomatic</strong> subtlety to further their own good. Any<br />

government that ignores their beh<strong>in</strong>d-the-scene <strong>in</strong>fluence dur<strong>in</strong>g<br />

certa<strong>in</strong> negotiations does so at her own risk.<br />

9 Gilp<strong>in</strong>, R. The Political Economy <strong>of</strong> International Relations (Pr<strong>in</strong>ceton: Pr<strong>in</strong>ceton <strong>University</strong> Press; 1987) p.245.


73<br />

Other actors on <strong>diplomatic</strong> stage are the liberation<br />

movements, which are <strong>in</strong> fact classed as subjects <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law. They have been directly <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>directly <strong>in</strong>volved <strong>in</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

deals <strong>and</strong> they can never be ignored. When they are not directly<br />

<strong>in</strong>volved with the government they want to liberate themselves<br />

from, there is always a third part (government) sympathetic to their<br />

cause who is directly <strong>in</strong>volved. They carry their struggle everywhere<br />

<strong>and</strong> seek <strong>diplomatic</strong> recognition. For long the PLO has been<br />

accorded observer status at the U. N. <strong>and</strong> her representatives<br />

accorded some <strong>diplomatic</strong> privileges. Similarly, the ANC‟s<br />

representatives have enjoyed <strong>diplomatic</strong> privileges <strong>in</strong> Africa <strong>and</strong><br />

some other countries around the world. They have played a larger<br />

role <strong>in</strong> world politics than is usually acknowledged.<br />

Non-governmental bodies <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational repute such as the<br />

Red Cross, Amnesty International, Ford Foundation, Rockefeller<br />

Foundation etc. are also actors on the <strong>diplomatic</strong> stage because<br />

their reports <strong>and</strong> activities have caused governments to do<br />

someth<strong>in</strong>g to retrace their steps <strong>and</strong> actions aga<strong>in</strong>st their citizens<br />

<strong>and</strong> those <strong>of</strong> other states. These organizations consist <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>dividuals<br />

from various countries who share common <strong>in</strong>terests <strong>and</strong> concerns.<br />

Although, these <strong>in</strong>stitutions are non political, their activities have


74<br />

on several occasions affected the political behaviour <strong>of</strong> states <strong>and</strong><br />

other actors <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational system.<br />

It must be po<strong>in</strong>ted out however that, <strong>in</strong>dividuals sometimes<br />

undertake certa<strong>in</strong> actions without reference to their national<br />

governments, which are aimed at <strong>in</strong>fluenc<strong>in</strong>g the behaviour <strong>of</strong> other<br />

actors.<br />

It is on record that James Donovan, a New York Attorney,<br />

negotiated the exchange <strong>of</strong> prisoners held <strong>in</strong> Cuba, <strong>and</strong> arranged<br />

for the exchange <strong>of</strong> U. S. pilot, France Gray Powers, a convicted<br />

spy. The black American activist <strong>and</strong> Democratic Party nom<strong>in</strong>ation<br />

contender for the 1984 <strong>and</strong> 1988 United State Presidential<br />

elections, Jesse Jackson, negotiated the release <strong>of</strong> an American<br />

pilot whose plane was shot down over Syrian controlled positions <strong>in</strong><br />

Lebanon <strong>in</strong> early 1984.<br />

The role played by Nelson M<strong>and</strong>ela <strong>in</strong> resolv<strong>in</strong>g the problem<br />

<strong>in</strong>volv<strong>in</strong>g Libya, when she was under sanction for refusal to h<strong>and</strong><br />

over two <strong>of</strong> her nationals for trial over the bomb<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> an American<br />

airl<strong>in</strong>e over Lockerbie, is worthy <strong>of</strong> mention. The suspects were<br />

eventually h<strong>and</strong>ed over after M<strong>and</strong>ela‟s <strong>in</strong>tervention, while he was<br />

no longer president <strong>of</strong> South Africa.


75<br />

This calibre <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>dividuals can be regarded as actors on the<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> stage because they are capable <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>fluenc<strong>in</strong>g <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

op<strong>in</strong>ion which equally depends on the status granted them by their<br />

states <strong>and</strong> other states.<br />

Effort has been made to illustrate the few examples <strong>of</strong> the<br />

<strong>contemporary</strong> <strong>in</strong>dividual manoeuvres <strong>in</strong> their private capacities to<br />

<strong>in</strong>fluence the course <strong>of</strong> world polities. And suffice it to say while<br />

the state still rema<strong>in</strong>s the most consistent <strong>and</strong> important actor <strong>in</strong><br />

the <strong>in</strong>ternational system, the <strong>in</strong>creas<strong>in</strong>g role be<strong>in</strong>g played by non<br />

state trans-national actor cannot be ignored. It is true that the<br />

actions <strong>of</strong> most <strong>of</strong> these non-state actors are directed primarily at<br />

<strong>in</strong>fluenc<strong>in</strong>g the actions <strong>of</strong> government, <strong>and</strong> are therefore important<br />

only to the extent to which they are able to achieve this.<br />

3.3 ROLES OF ACTORS ON DIPLOMATIC STAGE<br />

In this subhead, analysis <strong>of</strong> the role <strong>of</strong> actors is undertaken<br />

beg<strong>in</strong>n<strong>in</strong>g with the state which had earlier been identified as the<br />

pr<strong>in</strong>cipal actor on the <strong>in</strong>ternational scene. In pursu<strong>in</strong>g their<br />

card<strong>in</strong>al objectives <strong>in</strong>ternationally, states employ two forms <strong>of</strong><br />

representations on <strong>diplomatic</strong> stage, namely permanent <strong>and</strong> ad-hoc<br />

representative diplomacy. Permanent diplomacy is characterized by<br />

the cont<strong>in</strong>ued presence <strong>of</strong> the agents <strong>of</strong> one state <strong>in</strong> the territory <strong>of</strong>


76<br />

another state for the purpose <strong>of</strong> conduct<strong>in</strong>g <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>in</strong>tercourse.<br />

This <strong>practice</strong> <strong>of</strong> allow<strong>in</strong>g the agents <strong>of</strong> a foreign entity a perpetual<br />

physical presence f<strong>in</strong>ds legal expression <strong>in</strong> the New York<br />

Convention on Special Missions, 1969. 10 This permanent mission<br />

reflects:<br />

The establishment <strong>of</strong> a cont<strong>in</strong>uous physical<br />

presence <strong>of</strong> a state representative <strong>in</strong> another<br />

state, on the basis <strong>of</strong> mutual consent for the<br />

purpose <strong>of</strong> represent<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> pursu<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

<strong>in</strong>terests <strong>and</strong> goals <strong>of</strong> that states <strong>in</strong> the<br />

foreign state.<br />

It is pert<strong>in</strong>ent to note that before the establishment <strong>of</strong> a<br />

permanent mission, both the send<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> receiv<strong>in</strong>g states must<br />

reach an agreement. The second type <strong>of</strong> representation is the ad-<br />

hoc or temporary mission. As the name suggests, this type <strong>of</strong><br />

mission has a specific purpose for which it is set up <strong>and</strong> w<strong>in</strong>ds up<br />

as soon as its task is accomplished. But one common feature with<br />

both missions is that they represent their state. Actors on<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> stage are agents for conduct<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>ternational bus<strong>in</strong>ess<br />

<strong>and</strong> strengthen<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>ternational relations. They are always the<br />

mouthpiece <strong>of</strong> their states or the <strong>in</strong>stitutions they represent.<br />

10 Article 4 (b).


77<br />

Actors on the <strong>diplomatic</strong> stage play the role <strong>of</strong> negotiators<br />

when the need arises, <strong>and</strong> which can take many forms. It could be<br />

for a treaty, peaceful settlement <strong>of</strong> disputes, or war. There are wide<br />

ranges <strong>of</strong> issues to deal with either with governments or<br />

<strong>in</strong>dividuals.<br />

3.4 METHOD EMPLOYED ON DIPLOMATIC STAGE<br />

The method employed on the <strong>diplomatic</strong> stage to achieve<br />

objectives varies just as actors <strong>and</strong> their objectives differ. These<br />

methods are simple because they are guided by the rules <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law. That for the purpose <strong>of</strong> this <strong>in</strong>troduction, these<br />

method <strong>in</strong>clude among others, the follow<strong>in</strong>g:<br />

3.4.1 Treaties<br />

Before 1969, the law relat<strong>in</strong>g to treaties was regulated by<br />

rules <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law. The work <strong>of</strong> the International<br />

Law Commission led to the codification <strong>and</strong> development <strong>of</strong> these<br />

rules. The work also reconciled some divergent views <strong>and</strong> <strong>practice</strong>s<br />

relat<strong>in</strong>g to the law <strong>of</strong> treaties. This codification gave rise to the<br />

Vienna Convention on the Law <strong>of</strong> Treaties called the Vienna<br />

Convention on the Law <strong>of</strong> Treaties, 1969. It entered <strong>in</strong>to force <strong>in</strong><br />

1980. The Convention was however never <strong>in</strong>tended to regulate


78<br />

every aspect <strong>of</strong> the law relat<strong>in</strong>g to treaties 11. Areas that are not<br />

provided for <strong>in</strong> the convention are therefore still regulated by rules<br />

<strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

Under the 1969 Vienna Convention, a treaty is def<strong>in</strong>ed as:<br />

An agreement whereby two or more states<br />

establish or seek to establish a relationship<br />

between them governed by <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law. 12<br />

Generally speak<strong>in</strong>g, treaty is regarded as a wide concept<br />

under <strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>and</strong> may <strong>in</strong>clude an oral exchange between<br />

states that gives rise to def<strong>in</strong>ite undertak<strong>in</strong>gs on their part. A treaty<br />

is known by so many names. It is called a convention, covenant,<br />

charter, or <strong>in</strong>ternational agreement. A treaty may be between<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational organisations <strong>in</strong>ter se or between an <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

organisation (s) <strong>and</strong> a state (s). However, the Vienna Convention <strong>of</strong><br />

1969 does not apply to this category <strong>of</strong> treaties. The non-<br />

application <strong>of</strong> the convention does not however derogate anyth<strong>in</strong>g<br />

from such treaties. 13<br />

Treaties create rights <strong>and</strong> b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g obligations on state parties<br />

which they are expected to obey as one <strong>of</strong> the peremptory norms <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law. This peremptory norm <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law is<br />

11 See Preamble <strong>of</strong> the Treaty.<br />

12 Article 2.<br />

13 Article 3.


79<br />

commonly referred to as Pacta Sunt Serv<strong>and</strong>a. It means that states<br />

are under a duty to carry out <strong>in</strong> good faith the obligations they<br />

have assumed under a treaty. This norm or jus cogens as it were<br />

has now been recognised by the Vienna Convention.<br />

A mere contract between a state <strong>and</strong> an alien or a foreign<br />

corporation is not a treaty <strong>and</strong> therefore not regulated by rules <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law affect<strong>in</strong>g treaties. The contract may however raise<br />

issues <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational concern.<br />

In the Anglo – Iranian case 14, Iran nationalised Anglo-<br />

American Company, which has concessionaire contracts with Iran.<br />

The British government challenged the nationalisation before the<br />

International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice. Iran, among other reasons objected<br />

to the jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the Court on the grounds that British<br />

Government was not privy to the contract. The court upheld the<br />

objection.<br />

Treaties may be <strong>of</strong> alliance or economic cooperation or may<br />

relate to the shar<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> jo<strong>in</strong>tly available resources or even to<br />

cultural exchanges, <strong>and</strong> should be written <strong>in</strong>struments 15.<br />

Furthermore, the U.N. Charter requires registration with a<br />

14 I. C. J. Reports (1952) p.93 at 112.<br />

15 Article 2 (1) (a).


80<br />

publication by the Secretary General <strong>of</strong> all treaties entered <strong>in</strong>to by<br />

members <strong>of</strong> the UN 16.<br />

Many multilateral treaties entered <strong>in</strong>to b<strong>in</strong>d Nigeria as a<br />

subject <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>and</strong> which are now <strong>in</strong> force between her<br />

<strong>and</strong> so many other countries <strong>of</strong> the world.<br />

For <strong>in</strong>stance, there are treaties <strong>in</strong> Force between Nigerian <strong>and</strong><br />

such others as France, Brazil <strong>and</strong> some Lat<strong>in</strong> American countries<br />

etc., on technology transfer or acquisition where<strong>in</strong> Nigeria is expect<br />

to exchange <strong>in</strong>dustrial components with her crude. Meanwhile,<br />

treaties could be bilateral or multilateral, <strong>and</strong> more important is<br />

that, treaties can only be entered <strong>in</strong>to by state actors or by<br />

legitimate actors on <strong>diplomatic</strong> stage.<br />

There is no uniformity as regards the form <strong>of</strong> treaties. The<br />

pr<strong>in</strong>cipal reason to this lack <strong>of</strong> uniformity is the reluctance <strong>of</strong><br />

states to st<strong>and</strong>ardise the use <strong>of</strong> treaties. For this reason, there are<br />

many forms under which treaties are concluded <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>clude:<br />

(a) Head <strong>of</strong> State<br />

Here the treaty is drafted as an agreement between<br />

Sovereigns or Heads <strong>of</strong> State. This form is commonly used <strong>in</strong><br />

<strong>consular</strong> matters.<br />

16 Article 102 <strong>of</strong> the UN Charter .


(b) Inter-governmental<br />

81<br />

This is drafted as an agreement between Governments <strong>and</strong> is<br />

commonly used for technical <strong>and</strong> non-political agreements.<br />

Apart from the above, there are several other forms that a<br />

treaty may take but the nature or the form employed does not<br />

affect the b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g character <strong>of</strong> a treaty.<br />

Like form, treaties go under a variety <strong>of</strong> names. Some <strong>of</strong> these<br />

names <strong>in</strong>dicate a difference <strong>in</strong> procedure or degree <strong>of</strong> formality.<br />

Some <strong>of</strong> these names are:<br />

(i) Convention<br />

This normally refers to an <strong>in</strong>strument <strong>of</strong> a multilateral<br />

character <strong>and</strong> also <strong>in</strong>cludes <strong>in</strong>struments adopted by organs <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational <strong>in</strong>stitutions.<br />

(ii) Protocol<br />

This is a less formal agreement than a treaty; it basically<br />

refers to a subsidiary <strong>in</strong>strument to a treaty drawn by the<br />

same negotiators. It normally deals with matters ancillary to a<br />

treaty.<br />

(iii) Declarations<br />

This may refer to an <strong>in</strong>formal <strong>in</strong>strument appended to a<br />

treaty or convention for the purpose <strong>of</strong> expla<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g the


82<br />

provisions <strong>of</strong> the treaty or convention. It may be a resolution<br />

adopted by a conference spell<strong>in</strong>g out pr<strong>in</strong>ciples to be observed<br />

by all the states concerned.<br />

(iv) F<strong>in</strong>al Act<br />

This is the title <strong>of</strong> an <strong>in</strong>strument that records the proceed<strong>in</strong>gs<br />

<strong>of</strong> w<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> a conference that has been summoned to<br />

conclude a convention. It also summarises the terms <strong>of</strong><br />

reference <strong>of</strong> the conference, enumerates states or Heads <strong>of</strong><br />

state <strong>in</strong> attendance <strong>and</strong> the delegates who took part <strong>in</strong> the<br />

conference. It also sets out declarations <strong>and</strong><br />

recommendations adopted by the conference.<br />

(v) Parties<br />

Conventionally only states that have fulfilled the<br />

requirements <strong>of</strong> statehood at <strong>in</strong>ternational law can be parties<br />

to a treaty. It is however common to see departments <strong>of</strong><br />

government now negotiat<strong>in</strong>g treaties with other departments<br />

<strong>of</strong> government <strong>of</strong> other states. These modern developments<br />

have now made the strict application <strong>of</strong> that rule impossible.<br />

Treaties generally do not impose obligations or confer rights<br />

on third parties without the consent <strong>of</strong> such parties. This<br />

pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> law has been recognised by the Vienna


83<br />

Convention <strong>of</strong> 1969 17. There are however some exceptions to<br />

this general rule. These are:<br />

(a) Where the parties to the treaty <strong>in</strong>tend to confer rights on third<br />

parties: state parties to a treaty are allowed to create third party<br />

rights <strong>in</strong> the treaty. This is however subject to the assent <strong>of</strong> the<br />

third party such assent will be presumed so long as the contrary is<br />

not <strong>in</strong>dicated. Thus <strong>in</strong> the Free Zones Case, 18. The court<br />

acknowledged that:<br />

There is however noth<strong>in</strong>g to prevent the will<br />

<strong>of</strong> sovereign states from hav<strong>in</strong>g this object<br />

<strong>and</strong> this effect. The question <strong>of</strong> the existence<br />

<strong>of</strong> a right acquired under an <strong>in</strong>strument<br />

drawn between other states is; therefore one<br />

to be decided <strong>in</strong> each particular use. If must<br />

be ascerta<strong>in</strong>ed whether the states which<br />

have stipulated <strong>in</strong> favour <strong>of</strong> a third state<br />

meant to create for that state an actual right<br />

which the latter has accepted as such.<br />

It is however op<strong>in</strong>ed that if the third party right is subject to<br />

assent, which can be withheld, then the concept <strong>of</strong> third party has<br />

very little significance. This is because by giv<strong>in</strong>g assent, it then<br />

means that the right becomes effective not really as a third party<br />

right. It will be because that third party has effected some<br />

17 Art 34-38 Vienna Convention, 1969<br />

18 PCIJ Reports (1932)P14


84<br />

participation <strong>of</strong> some sort. In such a case, it will not be totally<br />

correct to still regard him as a third party <strong>in</strong> the arrangement.<br />

(b) It has also been alluded that multilateral treaties, which are<br />

declaratory <strong>of</strong> established rules <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law<br />

might b<strong>in</strong>d non-state parties.<br />

It is however argued that these non-states parties are bound<br />

by these not necessarily as a result <strong>of</strong> the treaty obligations but by<br />

the universality <strong>of</strong> the rules <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

On the whole, it is very difficult <strong>in</strong> practical terms to get good<br />

<strong>and</strong> conv<strong>in</strong>c<strong>in</strong>g examples <strong>of</strong> how third parties would become bound<br />

by treaty obligations. All that such states as third parties can do is<br />

to ensure that neither by their conduct or declarations they are not<br />

seen to have assented to the imposition <strong>of</strong> treaty obligations.<br />

The International Law Commission has stated clearly that<br />

assignment <strong>of</strong> treaty rights was not an <strong>in</strong>stitution recognised <strong>in</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law. Accord<strong>in</strong>g to the commission, <strong>in</strong> International<br />

law, the rule seems clear that an agreement by a party to a treaty<br />

to assign either its obligations or its rights under the treaty cannot<br />

b<strong>in</strong>d any other party to the treaty without the latter‟s consent. No<br />

doubt, rights <strong>and</strong> obligations under a treaty, which is purely <strong>of</strong><br />

political nature or <strong>of</strong> extradition, cannot be assigned. However,


85<br />

Starke posits that rights <strong>and</strong> obligations under treaties where it is<br />

not expressly forbidden by the treaty provisions can be assigned by<br />

way <strong>of</strong> novation just as novation <strong>in</strong> contracts under private law. 19.<br />

A lot <strong>of</strong> reservation has been raised to this preposition,<br />

because novation under private law <strong>in</strong>volves essentially a new<br />

arrangement where all the parties to the first agreement give their<br />

consent <strong>and</strong> some old obligations may be ext<strong>in</strong>guished for new<br />

ones. If the same <strong>practice</strong> is to be extended under <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law, then one can safely argue that the new arrangements amount<br />

to new negotiations altogether.<br />

Certa<strong>in</strong> steps are taken to create obligations by way <strong>of</strong> treaty.<br />

These steps <strong>in</strong>clude:<br />

(a) Accreditation <strong>of</strong> representatives<br />

When states decide to negotiate treaty obligations, each<br />

contract<strong>in</strong>g state appo<strong>in</strong>ts representatives who will negotiate<br />

on its behalf. These representatives are properly accredited to<br />

each other state <strong>and</strong> are fully equipped with the authority to<br />

negotiate on behalf <strong>of</strong> their state. Each representative is<br />

provided with a formal <strong>in</strong>strument given either by his Head <strong>of</strong><br />

State or M<strong>in</strong>ister for Foreign Affairs called Full Powers. The<br />

19 Starke, Op. Cit. P470


86<br />

Full Powers can authorise a representative to do several<br />

functions <strong>in</strong> relation to the treaty like negotiation, adoption,<br />

or the authentication <strong>of</strong> the treaty 20.<br />

In a conference to conclude a multilateral treaty, a committee<br />

is normally constituted for the purpose <strong>of</strong> check<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong><br />

ascerta<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g the nature <strong>of</strong> Full Powers <strong>of</strong> every representative. The<br />

committee <strong>in</strong> turn reports to the conference.<br />

A representative can not go beyond his full powers. If he does,<br />

except his actions are subsequently ratified by his state, such<br />

actions will be void 21.<br />

Accredited delegates negotiate most multilateral treaties at<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> conferences. These delegates usually rema<strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong> touch<br />

with their home government as the conference progresses. In these<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> conferences, various committees are formed. Usually a<br />

prom<strong>in</strong>ent delegate is appo<strong>in</strong>ted as a rapporteur. The functions <strong>of</strong> a<br />

rapporteur among others are to assist the conference <strong>in</strong> its<br />

deliberations.<br />

Except two third majority <strong>of</strong> members <strong>in</strong> attendance decide<br />

otherwise, most decisions at these conferences are reached by vote<br />

<strong>of</strong> two third majority. 22<br />

20 Art 2 <strong>of</strong> Vienna Convention <strong>of</strong> 1969<br />

21 Art 8 <strong>of</strong> Vienna Convention <strong>of</strong> 1969


(b) Authentication signature <strong>and</strong> exchange <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>strument.<br />

87<br />

After negations <strong>and</strong> adoption, a formal text <strong>of</strong> the treaty is<br />

prepared for signature. Signature normally comes at the formal<br />

clos<strong>in</strong>g ceremonies especially <strong>in</strong> cases <strong>of</strong> multilateral treaties. There<br />

can be an agreement to dispense with signature. Where there is no<br />

such agreement, signature is essential for the purpose <strong>of</strong><br />

authenticat<strong>in</strong>g the text <strong>of</strong> the treaty. S<strong>in</strong>ce a treaty is a contract, its<br />

authentication is as agreed upon by the contract<strong>in</strong>g states, or as<br />

approved <strong>in</strong> the treaty itself. In absence <strong>of</strong> any def<strong>in</strong>ite agreement,<br />

authentication must be by signature 23.<br />

The effect <strong>of</strong> signature depends on the nature <strong>of</strong> the treaty.<br />

Where the treaty is subject to acceptance, ratification or approval,<br />

signature simply means that the delegates have agreed with the<br />

text <strong>and</strong> are will<strong>in</strong>g to accept it.<br />

Contract<strong>in</strong>g parties to a treaty have an obligation <strong>of</strong> good faith<br />

to ensure that treaties subject to ratification are not frustrated.<br />

Where the treaty is not made subject to ratification, <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> absence<br />

<strong>of</strong> any contrary <strong>in</strong>tention, a treaty becomes b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g upon signature.<br />

22 Art 9 <strong>of</strong> Vienna Convention <strong>of</strong> 1969<br />

23 Art 10 <strong>of</strong> Vienna convenation <strong>of</strong> 1969


88<br />

Even <strong>in</strong> absence <strong>of</strong> ratification, some treaties make provisions for<br />

entry <strong>in</strong>to force on a future date.<br />

(c) Ratification<br />

This is an <strong>in</strong>ternational act whereby a state establishes on<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational plane its consent to be bound by a treaty. Under<br />

customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law, ratification is a necessity to give effect<br />

to a treaty. Thus <strong>in</strong> the Mavromatis Palest<strong>in</strong>e Concession case,<br />

Judge Moore was quoted as say<strong>in</strong>g that the doctr<strong>in</strong>e that treaties<br />

may be regarded as operat<strong>in</strong>g before ratification is obsolete <strong>and</strong><br />

l<strong>in</strong>gers as an echo from the past. 24<br />

This is however no longer the law. Under the Vienna<br />

Convention <strong>of</strong> 1969, ratification is necessary only if:<br />

(i) Treaty expressly provides so<br />

(ii) The negotiat<strong>in</strong>g parties agree that ratification is<br />

necessary<br />

(iii) The treaty has been signed subject to ratification.<br />

(iv) There is an <strong>in</strong>tention to sign subject to ratification<br />

expressed <strong>in</strong> the full powers 25<br />

The philosophy <strong>of</strong> ratification is predicated on several<br />

grounds. Which <strong>in</strong>clude:<br />

24 Supra<br />

25 Art 14 <strong>of</strong> vienna Convention <strong>of</strong> 1969


89<br />

(a) Provid<strong>in</strong>g a state with an opportunity to comply with<br />

municipal constitutional requirements for adoption <strong>of</strong> the<br />

treaty<br />

(b) Enabl<strong>in</strong>g states to carry out public op<strong>in</strong>ion before impos<strong>in</strong>g<br />

obligation on itself under a treaty<br />

(c) Provid<strong>in</strong>g a state an opportunity to re exam<strong>in</strong>e <strong>and</strong> review the<br />

<strong>in</strong>strument signed by their delegates.<br />

International law does not impose any obligation on the states<br />

to ratify a treaty; <strong>in</strong> fact the power to withhold ratification is<br />

regarded as an <strong>in</strong>cident <strong>of</strong> sovereignty. A state is not under any<br />

obligation to advance reasons for withhold<strong>in</strong>g ratification.<br />

Except the treaty itself otherwise provides, the <strong>in</strong>strument <strong>of</strong><br />

ratification must be communicated to the other states concerned<br />

before the treaty can become b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g 26. Exchang<strong>in</strong>g or deposit<strong>in</strong>g<br />

the <strong>in</strong>strument <strong>of</strong> ratification among the contract<strong>in</strong>g state parties<br />

amounts to the communication. If the treaty is carried out under<br />

the auspices <strong>of</strong> the United Nations, the <strong>in</strong>strument <strong>of</strong> ratification is<br />

deposited at the Secretariat <strong>of</strong> the United Nations under the control<br />

<strong>of</strong> the Secretary General <strong>of</strong> the United Nations.<br />

26 Art 16 <strong>of</strong> vienna Convention <strong>of</strong> 1969


90<br />

It is possible for the states that never participated <strong>in</strong> the<br />

negotiation <strong>of</strong> a treaty to become parties to it. This can be done<br />

through accession or adhesion. Accession refers to the acceptance<br />

<strong>of</strong> the provisions <strong>of</strong> the treaty without reservations. Adhesion<br />

means acceptance <strong>of</strong> some provisions subject to reservations. The<br />

requisite number <strong>of</strong> parties sometime uses the term accession to<br />

signify the ratification <strong>of</strong> a treaty by a state after it has entered <strong>in</strong>to<br />

force upon ratification.<br />

The <strong>in</strong>strument <strong>of</strong> accession or adhesion must be deposited <strong>in</strong><br />

the same manner as that <strong>of</strong> ratification. Accession or adhesion<br />

must be with the consent <strong>of</strong> the other parties.<br />

Entry <strong>in</strong>to force depends on the agreement <strong>of</strong> the contract<strong>in</strong>g<br />

parties as expressed <strong>in</strong> the treaty itself. Where ratification,<br />

acceptance or approval is required, the treaty comes <strong>in</strong>to force after<br />

the <strong>in</strong>strument <strong>of</strong> ratification has been deposited.<br />

Most multilateral treaties fix a requisite number <strong>of</strong><br />

contract<strong>in</strong>g parties that will ratify before the treaty will come <strong>in</strong>to<br />

force. Sometimes however precise date is fixed for the treaty to<br />

enter <strong>in</strong>to force regardless <strong>of</strong> the number <strong>of</strong> parties that have<br />

ratified.


91<br />

All member states <strong>of</strong> the United Nations are required to<br />

register, as soon as possible, all treaties <strong>and</strong> agreements entered<br />

<strong>in</strong>to by them with the secretariat <strong>of</strong> the organisation. The<br />

secretariat will <strong>in</strong> turn publish them. 27. Normally this publication is<br />

carried out <strong>in</strong> the United Nations treaty series. Non compliance<br />

with this provision does not however make the treaty or agreement<br />

void. The only effect is that, the parties before an organ <strong>of</strong> the<br />

United Nations cannot rely upon the provisions <strong>of</strong> such a treaty <strong>of</strong><br />

agreement. What this means is that such a treaty or agreement<br />

cannot be used on the floor <strong>of</strong> the General Assembly <strong>of</strong> the United<br />

Nations, the Security Council <strong>of</strong> even the International Court <strong>of</strong><br />

Justice. S<strong>in</strong>ce the United Nations has become the dom<strong>in</strong>ant <strong>and</strong><br />

most important <strong>in</strong>ternational organisation non-recognition <strong>of</strong> any<br />

treaty by its organs will def<strong>in</strong>itely whittle down the importance <strong>of</strong><br />

such an <strong>in</strong>strument especially where it is <strong>in</strong>tended to be used <strong>in</strong><br />

dispute resolution. The object <strong>of</strong> this provision is to discourage<br />

secret treaties <strong>and</strong> agreements among states.<br />

There comes the f<strong>in</strong>al stage <strong>of</strong> the treaty mak<strong>in</strong>g process. In<br />

many jurisdictions, the treaty provisions are required to be<br />

<strong>in</strong>corporated <strong>in</strong>to the municipal law <strong>of</strong> the state party before the<br />

27 Art 102 <strong>of</strong> the UN Charter


92<br />

provisions <strong>of</strong> the treaty can be enforced by such a state. Vigilance<br />

is sometimes required to ensure that states enforce provisions <strong>of</strong><br />

treaties.<br />

A state is free to consent to be bound by a treaty subject to<br />

certa<strong>in</strong> reservations. The reservations may be the exclusion <strong>of</strong><br />

certa<strong>in</strong> provisions or some modifications as the case may be. This<br />

is normally done either by expressly stat<strong>in</strong>g so <strong>in</strong> the treaty itself,<br />

by a separate agreement between the contract<strong>in</strong>g parties or by<br />

mak<strong>in</strong>g reservations. A reservation is def<strong>in</strong>ed as:<br />

A unilateral statement made by a state at<br />

the time <strong>of</strong> sign<strong>in</strong>g ratify<strong>in</strong>g, accept<strong>in</strong>g,<br />

approv<strong>in</strong>g or acced<strong>in</strong>g to a treaty by<br />

purport<strong>in</strong>g to exclude or modify<strong>in</strong>g the legal<br />

effect <strong>of</strong> certa<strong>in</strong> provisions <strong>of</strong> a treaty <strong>in</strong> their<br />

application to that state 28.<br />

The effect <strong>of</strong> reservation is to vary the legal effect <strong>of</strong> the<br />

provision <strong>of</strong> the treaty to which it relates <strong>in</strong> the reserv<strong>in</strong>g states‟<br />

relation with other contract<strong>in</strong>g parties.<br />

But the non-reserv<strong>in</strong>g states cont<strong>in</strong>ue to observe the entire<br />

provisions <strong>of</strong> the treaty. Reservation is regarded as an <strong>in</strong>cident <strong>of</strong><br />

sovereignty <strong>and</strong> perfect equality <strong>of</strong> states. It is <strong>in</strong>tended to allow<br />

states that cannot compromise on certa<strong>in</strong> provisions <strong>of</strong> the treaty to<br />

28 Art 2 <strong>of</strong> Viennaz Convention <strong>of</strong> 1969


93<br />

participate <strong>in</strong> it rather than absolute exclusion. The form <strong>of</strong><br />

express<strong>in</strong>g reservations differs.<br />

Under the Vienna Convention on Treaties, reservation must<br />

be <strong>in</strong> writ<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> duly communicated to other parties to the treaty.<br />

It cannot be effected if the ma<strong>in</strong> treaty prohibits it. 29 Reservations<br />

have created problems to state parties to treaties who would<br />

normally not have consented to certa<strong>in</strong> treaties if they had known<br />

that such reservations would be entered by such states.<br />

International law has tried several measures to remedy some <strong>of</strong><br />

these problems. When some states protested the reservation<br />

entered by some members to the Genocide Treaty, the International<br />

Court <strong>of</strong> Justice held <strong>in</strong> its advisory op<strong>in</strong>ion that, reservations are<br />

allowable not withst<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g the absence <strong>of</strong> provisions <strong>in</strong> the treaty<br />

permitt<strong>in</strong>g them <strong>and</strong> that assent to reservations may be by<br />

implication. 30 It was the op<strong>in</strong>ion <strong>of</strong> the court that the effect <strong>of</strong><br />

reservation depends on the compatibility <strong>of</strong> the reservation to the<br />

object <strong>of</strong> the treaty. Where the reservation is compatible with the<br />

objective <strong>of</strong> the treaty, the reserv<strong>in</strong>g state will still be regarded as a<br />

full contract<strong>in</strong>g party to the convention. Even though the General<br />

29 Art 23 <strong>of</strong> Vienna Convention <strong>of</strong> 1969<br />

30 Advisory Op<strong>in</strong>ion to Genocide Convention, ICJ Reports (1951) p15


94<br />

Assembly has advised members to be guided by the court‟s op<strong>in</strong>ion,<br />

the International Law Commission has suggested that <strong>in</strong> order to<br />

be admissible, a treaty must allow reservation <strong>in</strong> its provisions.<br />

In order to try <strong>and</strong> lessen these complexities, state parties to<br />

treaties try to provide <strong>in</strong> treaties how matters relat<strong>in</strong>g to<br />

reservations will be dealt with especially <strong>in</strong> multilateral treaties.<br />

After a treaty has been negotiated <strong>and</strong> concluded, certa<strong>in</strong><br />

conditions under which it was negotiated may change. These<br />

changes may necessitate some adjustment <strong>in</strong> the treaty to br<strong>in</strong>g it<br />

<strong>in</strong> l<strong>in</strong>e with the changes. The means by which this can be effected<br />

is through amendment. In some treaties, clauses are <strong>in</strong>serted<br />

permitt<strong>in</strong>g some amendment at certa<strong>in</strong> times under certa<strong>in</strong><br />

conditions. These clauses may even provide the procedures to be<br />

followed to effect the amendment. Many multilateral treaties allow<br />

amendment by majority votes <strong>of</strong> parties if unanimity for<br />

amendment can not be achieved. The Vienna Convention, 1969 has<br />

provided guidel<strong>in</strong>es on amendment <strong>of</strong> treaties. 31<br />

States create obligations upon them by enter<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>to several<br />

treaties. It is possible that by enter<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>to several treaties, a state<br />

can f<strong>in</strong>d itself <strong>in</strong>volved <strong>in</strong> obligations that are <strong>in</strong>consistent. A treaty<br />

31 Art 40-41 <strong>of</strong> the Convention


95<br />

which is already <strong>in</strong> force, <strong>and</strong> has a latter treaty which has<br />

expressly made reference to the earlier one that this latter one is<br />

not to be considered as <strong>in</strong>compatible with the earlier treaty, the<br />

provisions <strong>of</strong> the latter treaty will prevail over those <strong>of</strong> the earlier<br />

one. 32 Where there is no reference to the earlier one, the provisions<br />

<strong>of</strong> that earlier treaty will cont<strong>in</strong>ue to apply to the parties only to the<br />

extent to which its provisions are compatible to the latter treaty.<br />

The United Nations Charter has however provided expressly<br />

that the obligations created on the parties by its Charter shall over<br />

ride <strong>in</strong> the event <strong>of</strong> conflict between its charter <strong>and</strong> any other<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational <strong>in</strong>strument. 33<br />

For quite sometime, <strong>in</strong>validation <strong>of</strong> treaties on grounds<br />

similar to those <strong>of</strong> the municipal law <strong>of</strong> contract like lack <strong>of</strong><br />

capacity <strong>and</strong> absence <strong>of</strong> consent due to vitiat<strong>in</strong>g elements like<br />

mistake, fraud, duress or illegality rema<strong>in</strong>ed controversial. This<br />

controversy appears to have been reduced as a result <strong>of</strong> the efforts<br />

<strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention. The Convention has formulated six<br />

grounds for the <strong>in</strong>validation <strong>of</strong> treaties. They are:<br />

1) Incapacity<br />

32 Art 30 Para 2 <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention, 1969<br />

33 Art 103 <strong>of</strong> the UN Charter


96<br />

A state can not seek to <strong>in</strong>validate a treaty only on the ground<br />

that its representatives exceeded its treaty mak<strong>in</strong>g powers under its<br />

domestic law. Such <strong>in</strong>capacity can be raised only if:<br />

a) It can be shown that the <strong>in</strong>capacity was manifestly evident to<br />

the other negotiat<strong>in</strong>g parties;<br />

b) The mistake concerned a rule <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternal law <strong>of</strong> fundamental<br />

importance.<br />

In order to <strong>in</strong>validate a treaty on the ground <strong>of</strong> excess <strong>of</strong><br />

authority by the representatives, it must be shown that the<br />

restriction was notified to the other negotiat<strong>in</strong>g parties. 34<br />

2) Error<br />

A state can rely on error to <strong>in</strong>validate a treaty only if it shows<br />

that the fact or situation constitut<strong>in</strong>g the error existed at the time<br />

the treaty was concluded <strong>and</strong> that the situation <strong>in</strong>fluenced it <strong>in</strong><br />

giv<strong>in</strong>g its consent to the treaty. It is shown that the state itself<br />

contributed to some extent to the fact or situation, it will not be<br />

entitled to rely on it. If the situation is also such that the state<br />

concerned ought to have been put on notice, it cannot be heard to<br />

compla<strong>in</strong>. 35<br />

34 Art 46 <strong>and</strong> 47 <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention <strong>of</strong> 1969<br />

35 Art 49 <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention <strong>of</strong> 1969


3) Fraud<br />

97<br />

Where a state has been <strong>in</strong>duced by the fraudulent conduct <strong>of</strong><br />

another state to give its consent to a treaty, it can rely on it to<br />

<strong>in</strong>validate such a treaty. The difficulty that is <strong>in</strong>volved is that the<br />

convention has not def<strong>in</strong>ed what constitutes fraud.<br />

4) Corruption<br />

If it is shown that a state‟s consent was obta<strong>in</strong>ed by corrupt<br />

means by another negotiat<strong>in</strong>g party, by <strong>in</strong>fluenc<strong>in</strong>g its<br />

representatives, the treaty can be voided on this ground.<br />

5) Coercion<br />

Where a state‟s representatives are threatened or forced<br />

through threats to give their consent to a treaty, that state can rely<br />

on the ground <strong>of</strong> coercion to void the treaty.<br />

6) Conflict with a norm <strong>of</strong> jus cogens<br />

A treaty is void if at the time <strong>of</strong> its completion, it conflicts with<br />

a norm <strong>of</strong> jus cogens. 36<br />

A state‟s right to void a treaty on any <strong>of</strong> the above grounds is<br />

lost if it is shown that the state itself has either expressly or by its<br />

conduct agreed that the treaty is valid.<br />

36 See page 12


98<br />

Once treaties are concluded <strong>and</strong> have entered <strong>in</strong>to force they<br />

can be relied upon for resolution <strong>of</strong> the issues, which the treaty has<br />

set out to regulate. This is when the problem <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>terpretation may<br />

arise. As a general <strong>practice</strong>, multilateral treaties are normally<br />

authenticated <strong>in</strong> many languages. The United Nations Charter is<br />

authenticated <strong>in</strong> five languages. Where a treaty is drawn up <strong>in</strong><br />

several languages, each version is equally authentic except if the<br />

treaty itself provides that one version shall prevail <strong>in</strong> situations <strong>of</strong><br />

divergence. 37.<br />

Several pr<strong>in</strong>ciples, rules or canons <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>terpretation to be<br />

followed <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>terpretation <strong>of</strong> treaties have been put forward by<br />

writers <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational tribunals. Some <strong>of</strong> these pr<strong>in</strong>ciples<br />

<strong>in</strong>clude the grammatical <strong>in</strong>terpretation <strong>and</strong> the <strong>in</strong>tention <strong>of</strong> the<br />

parties, object <strong>and</strong> context <strong>of</strong> treaty, reasonableness <strong>and</strong><br />

consistency <strong>and</strong> the pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> effectiveness. The pr<strong>in</strong>ciples<br />

however merely act as guides <strong>and</strong> may not be absolute.<br />

3.4.2 Negotiation<br />

The word negotiation is a derivation from the word negotiates.<br />

This is def<strong>in</strong>ed to be:<br />

37 Art 33 <strong>of</strong> Vienna Convention <strong>of</strong> 1969


99<br />

(1) Confer with others <strong>in</strong> order to reach compromise or<br />

agreement;<br />

(2) Arrange or br<strong>in</strong>g about by negotiat<strong>in</strong>g;<br />

(3) F<strong>in</strong>d a way over, through, etc. 38<br />

This def<strong>in</strong>ition po<strong>in</strong>ts out that negotiation entails the peaceful<br />

resolution <strong>of</strong> a given situation. The words „confer‟ <strong>and</strong> „compromise‟<br />

mean <strong>in</strong> this context, f<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g a way out <strong>of</strong> a situation us<strong>in</strong>g<br />

peaceful means. Seen from this perspective, negotiation is<br />

synonymous with diplomacy.<br />

Negotiation is viewed <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational relations as a very<br />

crucial <strong>and</strong> important <strong>in</strong>strument used by agents to achieve both<br />

mutual <strong>and</strong> diverse aims <strong>and</strong> objectives. This is occasioned by the<br />

fact that as states emerge, the areas <strong>of</strong> possible cooperation<br />

between them widens with the result that participation <strong>in</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>in</strong>tercourse especially <strong>in</strong> areas that are deemed <strong>of</strong><br />

mutual cooperation could only be achieved through negotiation. A<br />

good example <strong>of</strong> negotiation could be seen from the role Nigeria<br />

played at the advent <strong>of</strong> the Economic Community <strong>of</strong> West African<br />

States- ECOWAS. In fact it took Nigeria much effort to impress<br />

upon other West African States before they could see the need for<br />

38 The Concise Oxford Dictionary, 1990, p.794.


100<br />

such a sub-regional economic organization. Negotiation <strong>in</strong>volves<br />

the conduct <strong>of</strong> relations with different actors through diplomats or<br />

other representatives. The subject <strong>of</strong> negotiation can range from<br />

treaty to other important agreements – political, economic or<br />

technical. In <strong>practice</strong>, however, the more technical aspect <strong>of</strong><br />

negotiation is left to specialists while the diplomats take care <strong>of</strong> the<br />

more formal part.<br />

Manner <strong>of</strong> negotiations depends largely on the disposition <strong>and</strong><br />

character <strong>of</strong> the actors. It is note worthy that actors on the<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> stage can engage <strong>in</strong> negotiation, each employ<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

tactic with<strong>in</strong> his reach, tactfully, <strong>and</strong> each try<strong>in</strong>g to out manoeuvre<br />

the other to ga<strong>in</strong> an upper h<strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> the deal.<br />

3.5 AN ANALYSIS OF FUNCTIONS OF DIPLOMATIC AGENTS<br />

From the traditional po<strong>in</strong>t <strong>of</strong> view, the functions <strong>of</strong> an envoy<br />

or <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent can be said to consist <strong>of</strong> represent<strong>in</strong>g his home<br />

state by act<strong>in</strong>g as the mouthpiece <strong>of</strong> his government <strong>and</strong> as the<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficial channel <strong>of</strong> communication between the government <strong>of</strong> the<br />

send<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> receiv<strong>in</strong>g states. His functions would also <strong>in</strong>clude<br />

report<strong>in</strong>g on the conditions, <strong>and</strong> developments <strong>in</strong> the state where<br />

he is appo<strong>in</strong>ted to reside as well as protect<strong>in</strong>g the <strong>in</strong>terests <strong>of</strong> his<br />

home state <strong>and</strong> it national <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state.


101<br />

The functions <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission re however clearly sated<br />

<strong>in</strong> broad heads <strong>in</strong> article 3 (1 a – e ) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Vienna Convention<br />

on Diplomatic Relations <strong>in</strong> the follow<strong>in</strong>g terms:<br />

The functions <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission consist <strong>in</strong>ter alia:<br />

(a) Represent<strong>in</strong>g the send<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state;<br />

(b) Protect<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state the <strong>in</strong>terests <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong> its nationals, with<strong>in</strong> the limits permitted by<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law;<br />

(c) Negotiat<strong>in</strong>g with the government <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state;<br />

(d) Ascerta<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g by all lawful means conditions <strong>and</strong><br />

developments <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, <strong>and</strong> report<strong>in</strong>g thereon to<br />

the Government <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state;<br />

(e) Promot<strong>in</strong>g friendly relations between the send<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>and</strong><br />

the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, <strong>and</strong> develop<strong>in</strong>g their economic, cultural,<br />

scientific relations 39.<br />

Report<strong>in</strong>g on conditions <strong>and</strong> development <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state; though orig<strong>in</strong>ally meant or refer only to political matters,<br />

would appear to <strong>in</strong>clude <strong>in</strong> the modern context cultural, social <strong>and</strong><br />

economic activities <strong>of</strong> the country, <strong>and</strong> generally all aspects <strong>of</strong> life,<br />

which may be <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>terest to the send<strong>in</strong>g state.<br />

39 Article 3 (a – e ) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 convention.


102<br />

Mr. Lans<strong>in</strong>g, a former Secretary <strong>of</strong> State <strong>of</strong> the United States<br />

<strong>of</strong> America, once observed:<br />

Formerly diplomacy was conf<strong>in</strong>ed almost<br />

exclusively to political <strong>and</strong> legal subjects <strong>and</strong><br />

the tra<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> the members <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Diplomatic Service was devoted to that<br />

branch <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational <strong>in</strong>tercourse. Today<br />

our embassies <strong>and</strong> Legations are deal<strong>in</strong>g<br />

more <strong>and</strong> more with commercial, f<strong>in</strong>ancial<br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>dustrial questions.<br />

These observations are even truer today than at the time they<br />

were made. A <strong>diplomatic</strong> representative does also perform<br />

functions, which were traditionally regarded as fall<strong>in</strong>g with<strong>in</strong> the<br />

scope <strong>of</strong> <strong>consular</strong> functions. The Vienna Convention on Diplomatic<br />

Relations 1961 provides:<br />

A Diplomatic mission shall construe noth<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong><br />

the present convention as prevent<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

performance <strong>of</strong> <strong>consular</strong> functions 40 .<br />

In fact, <strong>in</strong> matters <strong>of</strong> protection <strong>of</strong> the nationals <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state, the <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> activities overlap to a large<br />

extent. There is at present some divergence <strong>in</strong> state <strong>practice</strong> as to<br />

how far commercial representation may be said to fall with<strong>in</strong> the<br />

functions <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> envoy. While it is clear that protection <strong>of</strong><br />

a country‟s trade relations would fall with<strong>in</strong> the legitimate activities<br />

40 Article 2 (3).


103<br />

<strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission, it is doubtful whether commercial deal<strong>in</strong>gs<br />

with the citizens <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state even on behalf <strong>of</strong> the<br />

government could be regarded as <strong>in</strong>cluded with<strong>in</strong> the functions <strong>of</strong> a<br />

mission. By <strong>and</strong> large, the <strong>practice</strong> <strong>of</strong> states has been to treat the<br />

commercial counselors or attaches, who are the advisers to the<br />

head <strong>of</strong> the mission on commercial matters, as part <strong>of</strong> the<br />

personnel <strong>of</strong> the mission, but trade representative, who actively<br />

engage <strong>in</strong> commercial transactions, have not been so regarded.<br />

Their status, immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges are usually determ<strong>in</strong>ed by<br />

means <strong>of</strong> bilateral agreements.<br />

3.5.1 Represent<strong>in</strong>g the Send<strong>in</strong>g State <strong>in</strong> the Receiv<strong>in</strong>g State<br />

The first function <strong>of</strong> an envoy or a <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission is to<br />

represent the send<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, also to act as the<br />

channel <strong>of</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial relations between the governments <strong>of</strong> both<br />

states. To facilitate <strong>of</strong>ficial communication between the states, the<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> mission is <strong>of</strong>ten called upon to perform the task <strong>of</strong><br />

negotiat<strong>in</strong>g with a communicat<strong>in</strong>g his government‟s viewpo<strong>in</strong>t on<br />

various matters to the government <strong>of</strong> the state to which he is<br />

accredited. The <strong>diplomatic</strong> representative is the <strong>of</strong>ficial agent <strong>and</strong><br />

the mouthpiece <strong>of</strong> his government. Communications between<br />

governments are generally <strong>of</strong> a varied type <strong>and</strong> on a variety <strong>of</strong>


104<br />

subjects. They range from negotiations relat<strong>in</strong>g to conclusion <strong>of</strong> a<br />

treat between the states concerned to mak<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> representations on<br />

behalf <strong>of</strong> their nationals as well as solicit<strong>in</strong>g support for the<br />

respective polices <strong>and</strong> view po<strong>in</strong>ts <strong>of</strong> the governments on world<br />

affairs. The credentials which he is given on his appo<strong>in</strong>tment, <strong>and</strong><br />

which he carries with him to his post makes this position clear by<br />

convey<strong>in</strong>g a request <strong>in</strong> the name <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state to<br />

the head <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state to give credence to him <strong>and</strong> to all<br />

that he say <strong>in</strong> the name <strong>of</strong> his sovereign or his government (Art. 13<br />

<strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations).<br />

In the <strong>in</strong>ternational community <strong>of</strong> today, with the grow<strong>in</strong>g<br />

<strong>in</strong>terdependence <strong>of</strong> nations, the need for mutual consultations<br />

among governments have proved to be <strong>of</strong> much greater importance<br />

then it was <strong>in</strong> the part, <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> this sphere the <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent<br />

plays an important role. 41<br />

3.5.2 Negotiations with the Government <strong>of</strong> the Receiv<strong>in</strong>g State<br />

Whenever a government wishes to enter <strong>in</strong>to a treaty with<br />

another, whether it be a treaty <strong>of</strong> extradition, or an air agreement<br />

relat<strong>in</strong>g to flights <strong>of</strong> its aircrafts, the formal negotiations are <strong>of</strong>ten<br />

41 Sen, B. A Diplomatic H<strong>and</strong>book <strong>of</strong> International Law <strong>and</strong> Practice (London:Nijh<strong>of</strong>f Pub.; 1979) P.49


105<br />

proceeded by prelim<strong>in</strong>ary sound<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>and</strong> exploratory talks which<br />

have <strong>in</strong>variably to be conducted by the <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent. The<br />

actual negotiations for a treaty may sometimes be entrusted to a<br />

special mission, especially if the subject matter is <strong>of</strong> a technical<br />

nature. It is however, obvious to those who have anyth<strong>in</strong>g to do<br />

with the <strong>in</strong>ternational affairs <strong>of</strong> a state that long before the<br />

negotiations start, much careful preparation <strong>and</strong> plann<strong>in</strong>g on the<br />

part <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> envoy is necessary. From the time he<br />

receives <strong>in</strong>itiation from his home government regard<strong>in</strong>g their<br />

<strong>in</strong>terest <strong>in</strong> the conclusion <strong>of</strong> a particular treat, the work <strong>of</strong> the<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agent beg<strong>in</strong>s. He is to proceed cautiously <strong>and</strong> tactfully,<br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> the beg<strong>in</strong>n<strong>in</strong>g, <strong>in</strong>formally perhaps by throw<strong>in</strong>g feelers to see<br />

whether the government <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state is at all <strong>in</strong>terested <strong>in</strong><br />

pr<strong>in</strong>ciple to the conclusion <strong>of</strong> such a treaty.<br />

In cases where a government wishes to obta<strong>in</strong> some privileges<br />

or advantages for its nation <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, whether it is <strong>in</strong><br />

respect <strong>of</strong> their commercial <strong>in</strong>terests or otherwise, the approach is<br />

generally made through the Diplomatic envoy. Similarly, it is the<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> envoy that has to negotiate with the government <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>in</strong> all matters where his government wishes to<br />

represent or prefer a claim on behalf <strong>of</strong> one its nationals on


106<br />

account <strong>of</strong> his hav<strong>in</strong>g suffered hare or <strong>in</strong>jury. Other areas which<br />

the <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent has to negotiate with the government <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>in</strong>clude lodg<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> protests as a method by which a<br />

government shows its disapproval <strong>of</strong> the particular action on the<br />

part <strong>of</strong> the other or its agents. His functions also <strong>in</strong>clude<br />

Interpretation <strong>of</strong> Viewpo<strong>in</strong>ts <strong>and</strong> solicit<strong>in</strong>g support, which is,<br />

expla<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g the po<strong>in</strong>t <strong>of</strong> view <strong>and</strong> the policies <strong>of</strong> his government <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong> solicit<strong>in</strong>g support <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state on the problems with<br />

which his government may be concerned. 42<br />

must be:<br />

Ambassador Grew <strong>of</strong> The United States once said that he<br />

First <strong>and</strong> foremost an <strong>in</strong>terpreter, <strong>and</strong> his function <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>terpret<strong>in</strong>g acts both ways. First <strong>of</strong> all, he tries to<br />

underst<strong>and</strong> the country which he serves, its conditions,<br />

its mentality, its actions <strong>and</strong> its underly<strong>in</strong>g motives,<br />

<strong>and</strong> to expla<strong>in</strong> these th<strong>in</strong>gs clearly to his own<br />

government. And them contrariwise, he seeks means<br />

<strong>of</strong> mak<strong>in</strong>g known to the Government <strong>and</strong> the people <strong>of</strong><br />

the country to which he is accredited the purposes <strong>and</strong><br />

hopes <strong>and</strong> desire <strong>of</strong> his native l<strong>and</strong>.<br />

This certa<strong>in</strong>ly summarizes accurately the position <strong>of</strong> an<br />

envoy. A recent trend, which has been marked s<strong>in</strong>ce world war II,<br />

that governments <strong>of</strong>ten seek support for their po<strong>in</strong>ts <strong>of</strong> view from<br />

other nations <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> their claims or <strong>in</strong>ternational disputes <strong>in</strong><br />

42 Ibid. pp. 48 - 49


107<br />

which they say he <strong>in</strong>volved, the reason be<strong>in</strong>g that <strong>in</strong> the<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational community <strong>of</strong> today, world op<strong>in</strong>ion has become a<br />

powerful factor which cannot be ignored even by the most powerful<br />

<strong>of</strong> nations. This, states <strong>of</strong>ten f<strong>in</strong>d it necessary to expla<strong>in</strong> their case<br />

on territorial claim, border disputes, <strong>and</strong> other issues which may<br />

give rise to controversy with another nation, <strong>and</strong> seek support for<br />

their case. It falls on the <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents to perform this task. 43<br />

3.5.3. Protect<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> the Receiv<strong>in</strong>g State the<br />

Interests <strong>of</strong> the Send<strong>in</strong>g State <strong>and</strong> its Nationals<br />

Protection <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>terests <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>and</strong> its<br />

nationals is one <strong>of</strong> the primary duties <strong>of</strong> an envoy. The <strong>in</strong>terests <strong>of</strong><br />

his home state, whether it be on the political field or it be related to<br />

commercial matters, are entrusted to his care <strong>and</strong> an agent has to<br />

be over vigilant <strong>in</strong> order to protect such <strong>in</strong>terest <strong>in</strong> the state to<br />

which he is accredited. The <strong>in</strong>terests <strong>of</strong> a state <strong>in</strong> its relation to<br />

other states range from territorial questions as between neighbours<br />

to trade <strong>and</strong> commerce, flights for its aircrafts, preferential tariffs<br />

for its produce, f<strong>in</strong>ancial <strong>and</strong> military aid, <strong>in</strong>vestment s<strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>dustrial<br />

projects, <strong>and</strong> facilities for its citizens. As a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent, he<br />

has to take all possible steps <strong>and</strong> precautions to see that any<br />

43 Ibid.


108<br />

exist<strong>in</strong>g advantage which his government or his nationals may<br />

enjoy <strong>in</strong> the state <strong>of</strong> his residence is not jeopardized.<br />

He has also to seize at every opportunity <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>creas<strong>in</strong>g such<br />

advantages. His government may enjoy a position <strong>of</strong> confidence<br />

with the government <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state; or it may be that the<br />

produce <strong>of</strong> his country is allowed entry at a preferential tariff or<br />

that the nationals <strong>of</strong> his home state are allowed freely to reside,<br />

carry on trade, or <strong>in</strong>vest their money <strong>in</strong> that country.<br />

Protection <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>terests <strong>of</strong> the nationals <strong>of</strong> the envoy‟s home<br />

state falls broadly under two heads, namely, promotion <strong>of</strong> their<br />

<strong>in</strong>terests generally <strong>in</strong> the matter <strong>of</strong> immigration, trade residence,<br />

travel etc. The other be<strong>in</strong>g, protection accorded an <strong>in</strong>dividual<br />

citizen, if he suffers harm or <strong>in</strong>jury to his person, life or property <strong>in</strong><br />

the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. The first category <strong>of</strong> cases may be said to be<br />

<strong>in</strong>cluded with<strong>in</strong> the envoy‟s function <strong>of</strong> protection <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>terests <strong>of</strong><br />

the send<strong>in</strong>g state itself, while the second would fall with<strong>in</strong> the right<br />

<strong>of</strong> a state <strong>of</strong> render<strong>in</strong>g <strong>diplomatic</strong> protection <strong>of</strong> its citizens abroad. 44<br />

However, an envoy‟s functions relat<strong>in</strong>g to protection <strong>of</strong> nationals <strong>of</strong><br />

the home state shall be with<strong>in</strong> the limits permissible under<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law as laid down <strong>in</strong> the Vienna Convention <strong>of</strong> 1961 on<br />

44 Ibid. Pp. 60 – 61.-


109<br />

Diplomatic Relation. Article 41 (1) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 convention for<br />

example does not permit the envoy to protect his citizen by acts<br />

<strong>in</strong>imical to the constitution <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state.<br />

In mak<strong>in</strong>g any representation to the government <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state to allow entry to nationals <strong>of</strong> his home state or to<br />

permit such <strong>of</strong> those nationals as may be resident <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state for the purpose <strong>of</strong> trade or bus<strong>in</strong>ess to cont<strong>in</strong>ue to reside<br />

there <strong>and</strong> pursue their occupation, an envoy has to take <strong>in</strong>to<br />

account that accord<strong>in</strong>g to the generally accepted views <strong>of</strong> writers on<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law, 45 which is also borne out by the <strong>practice</strong> <strong>of</strong> the<br />

states <strong>and</strong> the decisions <strong>of</strong> national <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational tribunals, it<br />

is the sovereign right <strong>of</strong> a state either to admit or to exclude an<br />

alien from its territory. In order, therefore, to safeguard the rights<br />

<strong>of</strong> their citizens <strong>and</strong> to ensure their entry <strong>in</strong>to the territory <strong>of</strong> other<br />

states <strong>in</strong> advance, states have sometimes entered <strong>in</strong>to treaties <strong>of</strong><br />

friendship <strong>and</strong> commerce where<strong>in</strong> the right <strong>of</strong> entry by each citizen<br />

has been guaranteed. In some countries, the law <strong>in</strong> <strong>practice</strong> allows<br />

free entry <strong>and</strong> right <strong>of</strong> residence to nationals <strong>of</strong> a certa<strong>in</strong> group <strong>of</strong><br />

states. For <strong>in</strong>stance, citizens <strong>of</strong> Commonwealth countries, until<br />

recently, were allowed to enter Brita<strong>in</strong> <strong>and</strong> reside there for any<br />

45 Lauter Pacht, H. Oppenheim’s International law Vol. I 8th ed. (1955) pp.675 –678.


110<br />

period they liked without any restriction. The British national also<br />

enjoyed a similar right <strong>in</strong> all the Commonwealth countries.<br />

Perhaps the more important function <strong>of</strong> an envoy <strong>in</strong> the<br />

matter <strong>of</strong> protection <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>terests <strong>of</strong> his nationals which is likely<br />

to arise <strong>of</strong>ten, is to afford protection to their lives <strong>and</strong> properties <strong>in</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>dividual cases or collectively, <strong>and</strong> to afford them such assistance<br />

as they say need 46. To a person who is resident abroad the<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agent <strong>of</strong> his country is his friend <strong>in</strong> need. And it is to the<br />

envoy that he has turned when he suffers harm or his <strong>in</strong>terests are<br />

adversely affected either by reason <strong>of</strong> some action <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Government or governmental agencies or <strong>in</strong> the h<strong>and</strong>s <strong>of</strong> a private<br />

person. Thus <strong>in</strong> the case <strong>of</strong> a riot or civil commotion the <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

agent will be well with<strong>in</strong> his rights to ask the government <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state to take adequate measures to protect the lives <strong>and</strong><br />

proprieties <strong>of</strong> his citizens <strong>and</strong> to protest to the government if it fails<br />

to do so. For <strong>in</strong>stance dur<strong>in</strong>g the Liberia crisis early 1990, as a<br />

result <strong>of</strong> high tension, the American Ambassador there organized<br />

for the airlift<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> the American nationals from Liberia. Also dur<strong>in</strong>g<br />

the Kano crisis <strong>of</strong> early October 1991, the American <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

46 Rosalyn Higg<strong>in</strong>s, Op.Cit. P.642


111<br />

agent monitored the events there <strong>and</strong> directed their citizens on<br />

what to do at the appropriate time.<br />

3.5.4. Ascerta<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g by all Lawful means Conditions <strong>and</strong><br />

Developments <strong>in</strong> the Receiv<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>and</strong> Report<strong>in</strong>g<br />

Thereon to the Government <strong>of</strong> the Send<strong>in</strong>g States<br />

An important po<strong>in</strong>t, which arises <strong>in</strong> this connection, is the<br />

means an envoy should employ to ascerta<strong>in</strong> the conditions <strong>and</strong><br />

developments <strong>in</strong> the state <strong>of</strong> his residence <strong>in</strong> order to enable him to<br />

give a true picture to his government. The 1961 Vienna Convention<br />

on Diplomatic Relations provides that an envoy should ascerta<strong>in</strong><br />

the conditions <strong>and</strong> developments by lawful means 47. However, it<br />

gives no guidance as to what should be regarded as lawful. In<br />

countries with a democratic form <strong>of</strong> government, where freedom <strong>of</strong><br />

the press is respected, the newspapers would form one <strong>of</strong> his most<br />

useful sources <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>formation. The news items on both local <strong>and</strong><br />

foreign events together with editorial comments, the reports <strong>of</strong> the<br />

speeches <strong>of</strong> Political leaders on domestic <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational issues,<br />

policy statements by members <strong>of</strong> the government <strong>and</strong><br />

parliamentary debates would provide him with much useful<br />

material not only <strong>in</strong> the conditions <strong>and</strong> development <strong>in</strong>side the<br />

47 Ibid.


112<br />

country <strong>and</strong> the view po<strong>in</strong>ts <strong>of</strong> the political parties on such matters<br />

but also the country‟s attitude towards events <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

importance. The newspaper comments are <strong>of</strong> significance <strong>in</strong> more<br />

was than ones s<strong>in</strong>ce <strong>in</strong> democratic countries the press is <strong>of</strong>ten<br />

known to mould public op<strong>in</strong>ion. An envoy will, therefore, do well to<br />

subscribe to the lead<strong>in</strong>g newspapers <strong>of</strong> the country especially if<br />

they represent vary<strong>in</strong>g political op<strong>in</strong>ions. In addition to newspaper<br />

reports, it would be useful for him to attend occasionally sitt<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>of</strong><br />

the parliament especially when debates are held on important<br />

matters <strong>of</strong> policy follow<strong>in</strong>g upon a statement from a member <strong>of</strong> the<br />

government. The press conference held by the heads <strong>of</strong><br />

government <strong>and</strong> it is now customary to <strong>in</strong>vite the press attaches <strong>of</strong><br />

the <strong>diplomatic</strong> missions to such conferences.<br />

A diplomat has to f<strong>in</strong>d out many th<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>in</strong>formally, especially<br />

matters regarded as <strong>of</strong> confidential nature or too premature for<br />

public disclosure <strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g matters which are <strong>of</strong> little <strong>in</strong>terest to<br />

the reader <strong>of</strong> the daily newspaper but one <strong>of</strong> sufficient <strong>in</strong>terest to<br />

an envoy <strong>in</strong> mak<strong>in</strong>g his assessments <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>clusion <strong>in</strong> his periodic<br />

reports. Occasionally he may obta<strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>formation on certa<strong>in</strong> matters<br />

directly from the <strong>of</strong>ficials <strong>of</strong> the government by seek<strong>in</strong>g an <strong>in</strong>terview<br />

for the purpose. In fact the diplomat should cultivate a wide range


113<br />

<strong>of</strong> social acqua<strong>in</strong>tances which would <strong>in</strong>clude the <strong>of</strong>ficials <strong>of</strong> the<br />

foreign <strong>of</strong>fice <strong>and</strong> other government departments, his own<br />

colleagues <strong>in</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> corps <strong>and</strong> a variety <strong>of</strong> other such as<br />

newspaper editors, journalists, parliamentarians, leaders <strong>of</strong><br />

political parties, <strong>in</strong>dustrialists, <strong>and</strong> bus<strong>in</strong>essmen.<br />

In Europe, <strong>diplomatic</strong> representatives were regarded as<br />

honorable supply as they supplied the <strong>in</strong>formation necessary to<br />

guide their respective governments <strong>in</strong> shap<strong>in</strong>g their foreign policies.<br />

It was for this reason that K<strong>in</strong>g Henry VII <strong>of</strong> Engl<strong>and</strong> was<br />

dis<strong>in</strong>cl<strong>in</strong>ed to have an ambassador <strong>of</strong> any foreign k<strong>in</strong>g with<strong>in</strong> his<br />

realm though he himself occasionally sent ambassador to transact<br />

state bus<strong>in</strong>ess with foreign rulers 48. In modern times, however, an<br />

envoy‟s right to report to his home government on the conditions <strong>in</strong><br />

the state to which he is accredited is not only regarded as<br />

legitimate but also considered to be <strong>in</strong> the mutual <strong>in</strong>terest <strong>of</strong><br />

nations. Advance <strong>in</strong>formation regard<strong>in</strong>g the political <strong>in</strong>stability <strong>of</strong> a<br />

regime or the possibility <strong>of</strong> Coup d‟etat can help a country to keep<br />

itself prepared for reception <strong>of</strong> refugees so that by a sudden <strong>in</strong>flux<br />

the <strong>in</strong>ternal economy <strong>of</strong> the state is not upset.<br />

48 Anger, B.A. Op. Cit. Pp.68-9


114<br />

Though an envoy‟s chief concern is <strong>and</strong> must be on the<br />

political sphere, however, s<strong>in</strong>ce everyth<strong>in</strong>g else <strong>in</strong> a country must <strong>of</strong><br />

necessity be dependent upon the political stability <strong>of</strong> the state. The<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> representatives cannot overlook the economic <strong>and</strong><br />

commercial aspects while report<strong>in</strong>g on the conditions <strong>and</strong><br />

developments <strong>in</strong> the state to which he is accredited. The position <strong>of</strong><br />

trends <strong>and</strong> commerce as well as economic development <strong>in</strong> country<br />

are <strong>of</strong> considered <strong>in</strong>terest to other countries, <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>deed such<br />

matters have assumed an <strong>in</strong>creas<strong>in</strong>g importance <strong>in</strong> the relations <strong>of</strong><br />

nation <strong>in</strong> the present day.<br />

3.5.5. Promot<strong>in</strong>g Friendly Relations Between the<br />

Send<strong>in</strong>g State <strong>and</strong> the Receiv<strong>in</strong>g State, <strong>and</strong> Develop<strong>in</strong>g<br />

their Economic, Cultural, <strong>and</strong> Scientific Relation<br />

Another important function <strong>of</strong> an envoy is promot<strong>in</strong>g friendly<br />

relations between the peoples <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

states. Dur<strong>in</strong>g the last few decades <strong>and</strong> particularly s<strong>in</strong>ce the<br />

establishment <strong>of</strong> the United Nations, it has been recognized that an<br />

envoy‟s function must <strong>in</strong>clude the active promotion <strong>of</strong><br />

underst<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g between the send<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g states <strong>and</strong><br />

their peoples as also promotion <strong>of</strong> their economic, cultural <strong>and</strong><br />

scientific relations. An envoy‟s task <strong>in</strong> promot<strong>in</strong>g underst<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g


115<br />

between the two states, <strong>in</strong>volves not only <strong>in</strong> his deal<strong>in</strong>g with the<br />

government <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state but also <strong>in</strong> expla<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g the policies<br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>practice</strong>s <strong>of</strong> his government <strong>and</strong> their view po<strong>in</strong>t to the people<br />

<strong>of</strong> the country through suitable media. As well as mak<strong>in</strong>g known to<br />

the government <strong>and</strong> the people purposes, hopes <strong>and</strong> desires <strong>of</strong> his<br />

native l<strong>and</strong>. One <strong>of</strong> the most effective ways <strong>of</strong> do<strong>in</strong>g this is for the<br />

envoy to speak on as man occasions as possible <strong>and</strong> to arrange for<br />

its proper report<strong>in</strong>g. Today, <strong>diplomatic</strong> representatives are <strong>of</strong>ten<br />

<strong>in</strong>vited to speak on public occasions <strong>and</strong> particularly on occasions<br />

where a special programme featur<strong>in</strong>g his country is arranged. Many<br />

countries welcome such public contacts <strong>of</strong> ambassadors which<br />

facilitate the means <strong>of</strong> creat<strong>in</strong>g underst<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g. In Brita<strong>in</strong> <strong>and</strong> the<br />

United States, television <strong>in</strong>terviews are <strong>of</strong>ten arranged with the<br />

head <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> missions. In India, the all India Radio had for<br />

sometime organized a fortnightly programme <strong>of</strong> „L<strong>and</strong>s <strong>and</strong> people<br />

<strong>in</strong> which every head <strong>of</strong> mission was <strong>in</strong>vited to give a talk about his<br />

country.<br />

In addition to the various functions <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent<br />

discussed above, there are other functions which the <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

missions have also to undertake, such miscellaneous duties<br />

<strong>in</strong>clude registration <strong>of</strong> births, deaths, <strong>and</strong> marriages, also


116<br />

ma<strong>in</strong>tenance <strong>of</strong> Register <strong>of</strong> citizens, authentication <strong>of</strong> documents,<br />

service <strong>of</strong> summons <strong>and</strong> issue <strong>of</strong> passports <strong>and</strong> Visas which are<br />

generally performed <strong>in</strong> the <strong>consular</strong> sections <strong>of</strong> the missions <strong>and</strong><br />

may also be undertaken by <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers.<br />

The registration <strong>of</strong> birth by the <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission is<br />

necessary because the municipal laws <strong>of</strong> almost all states consider<br />

the children born to their citizen even when abroad as their<br />

nationals for the purpose <strong>of</strong> evidence <strong>of</strong> such birth most <strong>of</strong> the<br />

nationality laws require that the parents <strong>of</strong> the children born<br />

abroad should have the birth registration <strong>in</strong> the embassy or<br />

consulate <strong>of</strong> the home state 49. The <strong>diplomatic</strong> missions are<br />

therefore authorized under the laws <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state, which are<br />

recognized <strong>in</strong>variably by the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, to register the birth <strong>of</strong><br />

the children <strong>of</strong> their own nationals <strong>and</strong> also to issue certificate <strong>of</strong><br />

birth. The laws <strong>of</strong> several states also authorize their <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

<strong>of</strong>ficers to perform the functions <strong>of</strong> a registrar <strong>in</strong> solemniz<strong>in</strong>g<br />

marriages between parties at least one <strong>of</strong> whom is a citizen <strong>of</strong> the<br />

send<strong>in</strong>g state. The mission <strong>in</strong> such cases is entitled to issue a<br />

certificate <strong>of</strong> marriage. It is customary for <strong>diplomatic</strong> missions to<br />

49 Anger, B. <strong>and</strong> J<strong>and</strong>e, G. Basic Pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> International Law ( Makurdi: Bencos Pr<strong>in</strong>t<strong>in</strong>g & Pub. Co.; 2002 ) P. 110


117<br />

ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong> a register <strong>of</strong> the citizens <strong>of</strong> the home state. And it is<br />

advisable for persons resident or sojourn<strong>in</strong>g abroad to get<br />

themselves registered with their embassy or consulate; this <strong>in</strong> fact,<br />

helps <strong>in</strong> ensur<strong>in</strong>g that <strong>diplomatic</strong> protection can be afforded to<br />

them readily <strong>in</strong> case the need arises 50.<br />

The <strong>diplomatic</strong> missions also act as the channel <strong>of</strong><br />

communication for service <strong>of</strong> summons issued by the courts <strong>of</strong> the<br />

send<strong>in</strong>g state, for <strong>in</strong>stance, when a suit is <strong>in</strong>stituted <strong>in</strong> the court <strong>of</strong><br />

a country aga<strong>in</strong>st a person resident outside, it becomes necessary<br />

to serve him with a write <strong>of</strong> summons issued by the court to appear<br />

<strong>and</strong> defend the action. This function is carried out <strong>in</strong> cases where<br />

there is an agreement <strong>in</strong> force between the two countries for service<br />

<strong>of</strong> summons <strong>and</strong> reciprocal enforcement <strong>of</strong> judgments. Also <strong>in</strong><br />

cases <strong>of</strong> fugitive crim<strong>in</strong>als who have fled from the send<strong>in</strong>g state<br />

after committ<strong>in</strong>g a crime there <strong>and</strong> taken refuge <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state, the <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission have also to h<strong>and</strong>le requests for<br />

extradition. However, issue <strong>of</strong> passports <strong>and</strong> visas, <strong>in</strong> all<br />

probability, constitute the bulk <strong>of</strong> the <strong>consular</strong> work <strong>of</strong> an<br />

embassy. 51<br />

50 Ibid.<br />

51 Sen, B. Op. Cit. p. 75.


118<br />

3.6 AN APPRAISAL OF FUNCTIONS OF CONSULAR OFFICERS<br />

In general, the privileges <strong>of</strong> consuls under customary<br />

International Law are less settled <strong>and</strong> concrete, than those <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> envoys. The Vienna Convention <strong>of</strong> 1963 referred to the<br />

above, sought to extend to consuls the majority <strong>of</strong> the privileges<br />

<strong>and</strong> immunities apply<strong>in</strong>g under Vienna Convention on Diplomatic<br />

Relations <strong>of</strong> 1961, though subject to adjustment <strong>in</strong> the case <strong>of</strong><br />

honorary consuls. 52<br />

In modern times the tendency <strong>of</strong> states is to amalgamate their<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> services, <strong>and</strong> it is a matter <strong>of</strong> frequent<br />

occurrence to f<strong>in</strong>d representatives <strong>of</strong> state occupy<strong>in</strong>g, concurrently<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> posts. The establishment <strong>of</strong> <strong>consular</strong><br />

functions emerges as a result <strong>of</strong> the need for mutual coexistence <strong>in</strong><br />

commercial activities between states.<br />

3.6.1 Appo<strong>in</strong>tment, Classification <strong>and</strong> Status <strong>of</strong><br />

Consuls<br />

The appo<strong>in</strong>tment <strong>of</strong> consuls is similar to accredit<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong><br />

diplomats, except that the document, which the consul presents to<br />

52 Based on Art. 2 <strong>of</strong> the 1963 Vienna Convention, <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers are <strong>of</strong> two categories, namely career <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers <strong>and</strong> honorary <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers. The Convention<br />

chapter II apply to <strong>consular</strong> posts headed by career <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers; <strong>and</strong> the provisions <strong>of</strong> chapter III govern <strong>consular</strong> posts headed by honorary <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers.


119<br />

the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, is a commission <strong>and</strong> the recognition <strong>of</strong> him is<br />

by means <strong>of</strong> an exequatur, which the host government issues.<br />

Though appo<strong>in</strong>tment generally is political <strong>in</strong> nature, states<br />

appo<strong>in</strong>t people who are respected <strong>in</strong> the society.<br />

In the United States:<br />

Posts <strong>of</strong> prime importance are <strong>of</strong>ten held by<br />

people <strong>of</strong> dist<strong>in</strong>guished st<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> public<br />

life, nearly always drawn from the political<br />

party <strong>in</strong> power. 53<br />

Furthermore the British Service regulation states that:<br />

In regards to appo<strong>in</strong>tment whatever <strong>in</strong> the<br />

service, the Secretary <strong>of</strong> State will be free to<br />

make any such selection as, on his own<br />

responsibility, he may deem right, without<br />

be<strong>in</strong>g bound to claims <strong>of</strong> found on seniority<br />

or membership <strong>of</strong> service. 54<br />

The <strong>consular</strong> commission is different from the „Letter <strong>of</strong><br />

Credence‟ given to a diplomat <strong>in</strong> the sense that it is not addressed<br />

to the head <strong>of</strong> state <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. It is sent to the<br />

government <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state through the <strong>diplomatic</strong> channel. 55<br />

A consul starts his function when he is granted an exequatur by<br />

the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state 56.<br />

53 Satow, E. Guide to Diplomatic Practice (London: London Group Limited; 1979 p. 201.<br />

54 Starke J. G. Introduction to International Law (London: Butterworths ; 1989) P. 77.<br />

55 Article 11 (1) (2).<br />

56 Article 12 (1).


120<br />

A consul may be declared persona non grata by the host state<br />

<strong>and</strong> the state is not obliged to expla<strong>in</strong> the reason for so do<strong>in</strong>g 57.<br />

Consuls are graded <strong>in</strong>to four classes by the 1963 Vienna<br />

Convention 58. They are summarized thus, consul – general, who is<br />

either metropolitan <strong>of</strong> several <strong>consular</strong> districts or head <strong>of</strong><br />

important districts, consul, vice consuls, who are not <strong>in</strong>dependent<br />

but are usually dist<strong>in</strong>guished from consuls proper on the follow<strong>in</strong>g<br />

grounds: they are unpaid, temporary, untra<strong>in</strong>ed, part-time, <strong>and</strong><br />

sometimes <strong>of</strong> the nationality <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g country.<br />

Consuls are enjo<strong>in</strong>ed to respect the laws <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state. They are not to carry on pr<strong>of</strong>essional or commercial activity<br />

for personal pr<strong>of</strong>it 59.<br />

Consuls <strong>of</strong>ten perform <strong>diplomatic</strong> or political functions not<br />

only <strong>in</strong> a state where there is no <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission but also, by<br />

necessity. The Vienna Convention <strong>of</strong> 1963 provides that consuls<br />

may with the consent <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, <strong>and</strong> without affect<strong>in</strong>g<br />

their <strong>consular</strong> status; perform <strong>diplomatic</strong> functions, if the send<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state has no <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission <strong>in</strong> the third state. Such<br />

57 Article 23 (1) .<br />

58 Article 1.<br />

59 Article 55.


121<br />

performance however, shall not accord them <strong>diplomatic</strong> privileges<br />

<strong>and</strong> immunities.<br />

For effectiveness, to discharge their duties without h<strong>in</strong>drance,<br />

consuls should be accorded privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities as<br />

diplomats. The 1963, Vienna convention on <strong>consular</strong> relations<br />

provides that where members <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission are assigned to<br />

function as consuls, their names shall be notified to the M<strong>in</strong>istry<br />

for Foreign Affairs <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state 60. Their privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities however, shall cont<strong>in</strong>ue to be <strong>diplomatic</strong> rather than<br />

<strong>consular</strong> 61.<br />

3.6.2 Functions<br />

There are some differences <strong>in</strong> the functions <strong>of</strong> diplomats <strong>and</strong><br />

consuls, though <strong>in</strong> some respects theirs duties <strong>and</strong> function<br />

overlap. This will be analysed on the major head<strong>in</strong>gs below:<br />

60 Article 70 (2).<br />

61 Article 70 (4).<br />

(i) Representation <strong>of</strong> send<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>in</strong> the Receiv<strong>in</strong>g State:<br />

Sen observes that the pr<strong>in</strong>cipal function <strong>of</strong> a diplomat<br />

is:<br />

From the traditional po<strong>in</strong>t <strong>of</strong> view…<br />

represent<strong>in</strong>g his home state by act<strong>in</strong>g as the<br />

mouthpiece <strong>of</strong> his government <strong>and</strong> as the<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficial channel <strong>of</strong> communication between


122<br />

the governments <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>and</strong><br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. 62<br />

Both the diplomat <strong>and</strong> the consul are representatives <strong>of</strong> the<br />

send<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. The difference here is that the<br />

diplomat is recognized as the political agent <strong>of</strong> his state <strong>in</strong> the<br />

sense that, he enters <strong>in</strong>to agreement on behalf <strong>of</strong> his home<br />

government with the government <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, while the<br />

consul does not. The consul is a representative <strong>of</strong> his state <strong>in</strong> the<br />

sense that he represents the bus<strong>in</strong>ess <strong>in</strong>terest <strong>of</strong> his state.<br />

(ii) Protect<strong>in</strong>g the <strong>in</strong>terest <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>and</strong> its<br />

nationals <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state:<br />

One <strong>of</strong> the primary duties <strong>of</strong> an envoy is protection <strong>of</strong> the<br />

<strong>in</strong>terest <strong>of</strong> his state <strong>and</strong> also its nationals <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state 63. In<br />

protect<strong>in</strong>g the <strong>in</strong>terest <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>and</strong> its nationals <strong>in</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, the activities <strong>of</strong> both consuls <strong>and</strong> diplomats overlap.<br />

This function is political. Lee observes that the duty <strong>of</strong> a consul is<br />

as a result <strong>of</strong> the fact that:<br />

…the “economic” sphere has gradually been<br />

absorbed <strong>in</strong>to political <strong>and</strong> the traditional<br />

dist<strong>in</strong>ction between the two has lost much <strong>of</strong><br />

its orig<strong>in</strong>al mean<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>and</strong> significance. 64<br />

62<br />

Sen B. Op. Cit. p.66.<br />

63<br />

Article 3 (b) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Vienna convention on (Diplomatic relations <strong>and</strong> articles 5(a) (1) <strong>and</strong> (h) <strong>of</strong> the 1963 Vienna Convention on<br />

<strong>consular</strong> Relations.<br />

64<br />

Lee, L. T. Vienna Convention on <strong>consular</strong> Relations(A. W. Sijh<strong>of</strong>f-Leyden: Rule <strong>of</strong> Law Press; 1962) P.58.


123<br />

In protect<strong>in</strong>g the <strong>in</strong>terest <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>and</strong> it nationals,<br />

the diplomat can go directly to the head <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state to lay<br />

compla<strong>in</strong>ts, while the consul can only report to the local authority<br />

<strong>and</strong> if need be he reports to the <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission <strong>and</strong> then the<br />

compla<strong>in</strong>t to the head <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. In matters such as<br />

citizens <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state not be<strong>in</strong>g treated fairly, border dispute,<br />

trade, commercial or other political matter, flights for aircraft,<br />

f<strong>in</strong>ancial <strong>and</strong> military aid, <strong>in</strong>vestments <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>dustrial projects <strong>and</strong><br />

facilities for citizens.<br />

The envoy is <strong>in</strong>terested <strong>in</strong> the protection <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>terests generally,<br />

immigration, trade, resident travel, etc. He ensures protection from<br />

harm or <strong>in</strong>jury to the person, life <strong>and</strong> property <strong>of</strong> his fellow -<br />

nationals.<br />

The envoy <strong>in</strong>tervenes on behalf <strong>of</strong> his nationals resid<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> the<br />

host state, <strong>in</strong> the areas <strong>of</strong> trad<strong>in</strong>g, bus<strong>in</strong>ess, school<strong>in</strong>g or<br />

pr<strong>of</strong>essional work, who want to stay for a long period <strong>of</strong> time. The<br />

diplomat comes <strong>in</strong> h<strong>and</strong>y here because he can have direct contact<br />

with the head <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state.


124<br />

In all these aspects the diplomat <strong>and</strong> consul protect the<br />

<strong>in</strong>terest <strong>of</strong> their state <strong>and</strong> its citizens. Thus it is obvious from the<br />

discussion so far, that their activities overlap.<br />

(iii) Negotiation:<br />

Whenever a government wishes to enter <strong>in</strong>to a treaty with any<br />

government, be it friendly, commercial, extradition etc, it is the<br />

diplomat who conducts it on behalf <strong>of</strong> his government, as its<br />

representative accredited to the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state.<br />

A consul also negotiates with people <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state on<br />

behalf <strong>of</strong> his nationals, but it is strictly on commercial basis. In<br />

lodg<strong>in</strong>g protects, the host government lodges its protests through<br />

the diplomats to the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state if dissatisfied with the attitude<br />

or action <strong>of</strong> the government or it agents.<br />

The difference here is while the diplomat is more concerned<br />

with questions <strong>of</strong> politics <strong>and</strong> with negotiations with the central<br />

government on issues such as customs barriers; etc the consul<br />

negotiates with local traders or bus<strong>in</strong>essmen with<strong>in</strong> the <strong>consular</strong><br />

districts.<br />

Articles 3 (d) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Vienna Convention on Diplomatic<br />

Relations <strong>and</strong> 5 (c) <strong>of</strong> the 1963 Vienna Convention on Consular<br />

Relations are also similar <strong>in</strong> the sense that both envoys reports


125<br />

back to their home government. Both are representatives but <strong>in</strong><br />

different aspects; political <strong>and</strong> commercial respectively.<br />

Sen rightly observes that, governments are largely dependent<br />

on their envoys for giv<strong>in</strong>g correct reports <strong>of</strong> facts <strong>and</strong> situations<br />

from which such matters can be judged or predicted. 65<br />

(iv) Promotion <strong>of</strong> Friendly Relations, Commercial Economic,<br />

cultural <strong>and</strong> Scientific Relations.<br />

Another important function <strong>of</strong> an envoy is promot<strong>in</strong>g friendly<br />

relations between the people <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

states. The importance <strong>of</strong> this function is also highlighted <strong>in</strong> the<br />

U.N. Charter as part <strong>of</strong> its aims 66. The diplomat <strong>and</strong> consul‟s<br />

functions <strong>in</strong>clude active promotion <strong>of</strong> underst<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g between the<br />

send<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> receiv<strong>in</strong>g states <strong>and</strong> their people, the promotion <strong>of</strong><br />

their economic, cultural <strong>and</strong> scientific relations <strong>and</strong> differences.<br />

Due to the nature <strong>of</strong> their jobs <strong>and</strong> location <strong>of</strong> post, the consul gets<br />

to meet more people than the diplomat <strong>and</strong> as such is <strong>in</strong> better<br />

position to carry out this function properly.<br />

There are also many other functions, which traditionally are<br />

performed exclusively by the consuls, except as otherwise stated<br />

below. These are the dist<strong>in</strong>guish<strong>in</strong>g factors <strong>in</strong> the functions <strong>of</strong> the<br />

65 Sen, Loc. Cit.


126<br />

diplomats <strong>and</strong> consuls as outl<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong> the 1963 Vienna Convention<br />

on Consular Relations, <strong>and</strong> they are as follows: Articles 5 (d) 5 (1), 5<br />

(k), 5 (L) <strong>and</strong> 5 (M).<br />

3.7 FACTORS THAT ENGENDER THE VIOLATION OF<br />

DIPLOMATIC IMMUNITIES<br />

Diplomatic agents <strong>and</strong> other persons entitled to special<br />

protection under <strong>in</strong>ternational law are <strong>in</strong>creas<strong>in</strong>gly becom<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

victims <strong>of</strong> such crimes as murder, kidnapp<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> assaults which<br />

most <strong>of</strong>ten are politically motivated <strong>and</strong> used as tools <strong>of</strong><br />

subversion. Although, <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunities are not necessarily<br />

absolute, they are not just violated. Our concern here is on the<br />

factors that cause the violation <strong>of</strong> immunities, we would be look<strong>in</strong>g<br />

at these factors closely as they lead to actual violation <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

immunities.<br />

First, one act that very much engenders the violation <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity is that <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> abuse. As conta<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong><br />

the 1961 Convention:<br />

66 See Article 1.<br />

It is the duty <strong>of</strong> all persons enjoy<strong>in</strong>g<br />

privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities to respect the<br />

laws <strong>and</strong> regulations <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state.


Also:<br />

127<br />

They also have a duty not to <strong>in</strong>terfere <strong>in</strong> the<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternal affairs <strong>of</strong> that state. 67<br />

The premises <strong>of</strong> the mission must<br />

not be used <strong>in</strong> any manner <strong>in</strong>compatible<br />

with the functions <strong>of</strong> the mission. 68<br />

Implied <strong>in</strong> these provisions is that any act contrary to the<br />

letter <strong>of</strong> this article could cause that violation <strong>of</strong> immunity. So,<br />

such act like undisguised espionage activities cause the violation <strong>of</strong><br />

immunity. Meanwhile, recently the son <strong>of</strong> Iraq‟s ambassador to<br />

Nigerian was beaten up by security personnel 69 for traffic<br />

violations.<br />

The op<strong>in</strong>ion here is that beat<strong>in</strong>g up the son <strong>of</strong> an ambassador<br />

who enjoys the same immunity as his father, his contrary to<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law <strong>and</strong> an apology given will be<br />

appropriate. Sometimes compensation <strong>and</strong> apology are necessary<br />

<strong>and</strong> appropriate.<br />

National policy could lead to the violation <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

immunity. The US national policy towards Iran caused 70 the<br />

Iranian mob to storm <strong>in</strong>to the American Embassy <strong>in</strong> Tehran <strong>in</strong><br />

67 Article 41 (1).<br />

68 Article 41 (3).<br />

69 Champion Newspapers, vol. 5, No. 4, 2 nd Feb. 1992 pp.1 <strong>and</strong> 3.<br />

70 Sergei Loser <strong>and</strong> Yuri Tyssovsky , The Middle East Oil <strong>and</strong> Policy (Moscow: Progress Publishers; 1980) p. 177.


128<br />

1979 <strong>and</strong> held 52 hostages for 444 days 71. The Iranian mobs felt<br />

that American policy <strong>in</strong> the Persian Gulf was an impediment to<br />

their well-be<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> to redress the issue was to storm <strong>and</strong> violate<br />

the immunities <strong>of</strong> persons <strong>in</strong>side the Embassy. And s<strong>in</strong>ce the Iran<br />

authority did not prevent them or even try to release the diplomats<br />

<strong>and</strong> hostages, it was assumed that the authority <strong>in</strong>spired the mobs‟<br />

action <strong>and</strong> therefore an accomplice <strong>in</strong> the violation <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

immunities, <strong>and</strong> so had violated an <strong>in</strong>dependent duty <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

Another clear example is that <strong>of</strong> 4 th May, 1970 when two<br />

Palest<strong>in</strong>ian Arabs busted <strong>in</strong>to the Israeli Embassy <strong>in</strong> Paraguay <strong>and</strong><br />

shot <strong>and</strong> killed the wife <strong>of</strong> the First Secretary <strong>and</strong> seriously<br />

wounded an Embassy employee. The assailants were reported to<br />

be members <strong>of</strong> AL Fatah group, a faction <strong>of</strong> the PLO, <strong>and</strong> their<br />

action was based on Israel‟s national policy on the occupied<br />

territories. 72<br />

Another factor that causes the violation <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

immunity is nationalism. In 1973 when the Federal Government <strong>of</strong><br />

Nigeria felt the need to effect a change <strong>in</strong> her currency from Pound<br />

Sterl<strong>in</strong>g to Naira, it <strong>in</strong>structed the open<strong>in</strong>g, <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>spection <strong>of</strong><br />

71 New York Time Magaz<strong>in</strong>e, No. 50, 10 th Dec. 1991.<br />

72 David Cariton <strong>and</strong> Carlo Schaerf, eds. International Terrorism <strong>and</strong> World Security


129<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficial correspondence, <strong>and</strong> both <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> pouches,<br />

measures taken to check the traffick<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> Nigerian currency. This<br />

generated much protests <strong>and</strong> condemnations among foreign<br />

missions accredited to Lagos 73. Nevertheless, the government went<br />

ahead with her policy, which was a clear violation <strong>of</strong> the 1961 <strong>and</strong><br />

1963 conventions. The open<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>spection <strong>of</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial<br />

correspondence <strong>and</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> or <strong>consular</strong> pouches conflict with<br />

customary <strong>in</strong>ternational Law <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational agreement to which<br />

Nigeria is a party. Besides this, Palest<strong>in</strong>ian Resistance<br />

Organizations such as the Black September, a Spl<strong>in</strong>ter group <strong>of</strong> Al<br />

Fatah, faced a situation <strong>in</strong> which Israel occupied parts <strong>of</strong> the<br />

territories <strong>of</strong> three Arab states <strong>of</strong> Egypt, Jordan <strong>and</strong> Syria. The<br />

failure <strong>of</strong> Arab government armies <strong>in</strong> 1967 coupled with effective<br />

resistance <strong>of</strong> Palest<strong>in</strong>ian Arab forces at the battle <strong>of</strong> Karameh <strong>in</strong><br />

1968 sparked the growth <strong>of</strong> the Palest<strong>in</strong>ian Arabs Resistance<br />

Movements, as well as the proliferation <strong>of</strong> groups. 74 And to assuage<br />

the feel<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> Arab nationalism, this group has always hunted for<br />

persons with Israel‟s connection particularly diplomats. For<br />

<strong>in</strong>stance, on 1 st March, 1973, eight members <strong>of</strong> Black September<br />

took over the Saudi Arabian Embassy <strong>in</strong> Khartoum, <strong>and</strong> seized<br />

(London: Croom Helm; 1975) p. 36.<br />

73 Chris N. Okeke, The Theory <strong>and</strong> Practice <strong>of</strong> International Law <strong>in</strong> Nigeria,(Enugu: Fourth Dimension Publishers;1986) p5.


130<br />

several hostages <strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g the U.S. Ambassador, the Deputy Chief<br />

<strong>of</strong> Mission, the Belgian Charge d‟ Affaires, the Jordanian Charge d‟<br />

Affaires <strong>and</strong> the Saudi Arabian Ambassador. Many other diplomats<br />

escaped. The terrorists dem<strong>and</strong>ed the release <strong>of</strong> sixty Palest<strong>in</strong>ian<br />

guerrillas held <strong>in</strong> Jordan, all Arab women deta<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong> Israel, Sirhan<br />

Sirhan (the killer <strong>of</strong> Senator Robert Kennedy) <strong>and</strong> imprisoned<br />

members <strong>of</strong> the Baader Me<strong>in</strong>h<strong>of</strong> gang <strong>in</strong> Federal Germany. But<br />

when negotiations failed, the terrorists executed the two U. S.<br />

diplomats <strong>and</strong> the Belgian Charge d‟ Affaires, on the night <strong>of</strong> 2 nd<br />

March 75 .<br />

Prior to this time, on 9 th October, 1934, K<strong>in</strong>g Alex<strong>and</strong>er <strong>of</strong><br />

Yugoslavia arrived <strong>in</strong> Marseille <strong>and</strong> was met upon arrival by French<br />

Foreign M<strong>in</strong>ister, Louis Barthou <strong>and</strong> General Georges who had<br />

been assigned to the K<strong>in</strong>g as adjutant dur<strong>in</strong>g his stay. Then the<br />

three personalities entered a motorcar <strong>and</strong> accompanied by a<br />

cont<strong>in</strong>gent <strong>of</strong> grade mobiles proceeded down Cannabiere to the War<br />

Memorial where the K<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>tended to honour the French troupe<br />

who fought <strong>and</strong> died beside the Serbs <strong>in</strong> Macedonia. But <strong>in</strong> spite <strong>of</strong><br />

the fact that the street was l<strong>in</strong>ed with Policemen fac<strong>in</strong>g the crowds,<br />

a tall, heavily built man named Petrus Kaleman, who together with<br />

74 Judy S.Vertelsen,Non-State Nations <strong>in</strong> International Politics–Comparative System Analyses(NewYork:Praeger Publisher,1977)p19.<br />

75 David Cartiton <strong>and</strong> Carlos Schaerf, eds. Op. Cit. p. 42.


131<br />

eight other members <strong>of</strong> the outlawed Oustashi organization, headed<br />

by Anta Pavelich who hoped to save Croatia from Yugoslavia <strong>and</strong><br />

unite it <strong>in</strong> a new Austro-Hungary Croatian state, succeeded <strong>in</strong><br />

break<strong>in</strong>g his way through the l<strong>in</strong>e, jumped on the runn<strong>in</strong>g board <strong>of</strong><br />

the k<strong>in</strong>g‟s car <strong>and</strong> fired 10 shots with an automatic rifle <strong>in</strong>to the car<br />

before the was subdued. The k<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> the French Foreign M<strong>in</strong>ister<br />

died <strong>in</strong> the attack while the struggle cont<strong>in</strong>ued. The assass<strong>in</strong>ation<br />

was to have far-reach<strong>in</strong>g consequences. 76 Of course, Croatia today<br />

has become an <strong>in</strong>dependent state recognized by many countries<br />

<strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g the U. S.<br />

Further violation <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity could be caused by<br />

personal reasons. On 29 th February, 1972 two armed Cubans<br />

<strong>in</strong>vaded the Canadian embassy <strong>in</strong> Havana <strong>and</strong> dem<strong>and</strong>ed political<br />

asylum. 77 Similarly, on 27 th January, 1992, aggrieved students <strong>of</strong><br />

Niger Republic <strong>in</strong>vaded their embassy <strong>in</strong> Lagos <strong>and</strong> held<br />

Ambassador Boure<strong>in</strong> Kossomi hostage. The students were<br />

<strong>in</strong>furiated by the repeated non-remittance <strong>of</strong> their scholarship fees.<br />

They only left the embassy follow<strong>in</strong>g assurances from their home<br />

76 Lois M. Bloomfield <strong>and</strong> Gerald F. Fitegerald, Crimes Aga<strong>in</strong>st International Protected<br />

Person : Prevention <strong>and</strong> Punishment – An Analysis <strong>of</strong> the UN Convention, (London :<br />

Praeger Publishers, 1975), p.2<br />

77 Ibid, p.17


132<br />

government that a settlement might be arranged, <strong>and</strong> an immediate<br />

payment <strong>of</strong> an undisclosed sum <strong>of</strong> money. 78<br />

War also could cause the violation <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity<br />

despite the Vienna convention (1961) provision that the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state must even <strong>in</strong> the case <strong>of</strong> armed conflict protect the premises<br />

<strong>of</strong> the mission, together with its property <strong>and</strong> archives. 79 Dur<strong>in</strong>g<br />

the height <strong>of</strong> the Liberia civil war <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> August, 1990 particularly,<br />

the rebel forces <strong>of</strong> the National Patriotic Front <strong>of</strong> Liberia headed by<br />

Mr. Charles Taylor stormed the Nigerian embassy <strong>in</strong> Monrovia.<br />

They took away the Nigerians who sought refuge there, <strong>and</strong> loot<strong>in</strong>g<br />

cars, electronic gadgets <strong>and</strong> everyth<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> value found <strong>in</strong> the<br />

premises. 80 Though it could be conveniently argued that Taylor‟s<br />

action was as a result <strong>of</strong> Nigeria‟s national policy towards Liberia,<br />

which favoured the despotic regime <strong>of</strong> Samuel Doe, the fact<br />

rema<strong>in</strong>s that the state was at war, <strong>and</strong> the immunity the legation<br />

enjoyed was violated because <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>stability caused by the war.<br />

Terrorism is also a factor that causes the violat<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity. Of course, it could be perpetrated by<br />

<strong>in</strong>dividuals who are not state actors as was the case with Nigeria <strong>in</strong><br />

78 Concord Newspapers, Vol. 12, No. 2572, 4th Feb. 1972 p. 1 - 2<br />

79 United Nations, Loc. cit, Article 45.<br />

80 Anger, B.A. Op.Cit. P.19.


133<br />

1994 when an unsuccessful abduction attempt was made on<br />

Umaru Dikko <strong>in</strong> his hideout <strong>in</strong> London. Accord<strong>in</strong>g to reports, the<br />

British Intelligence <strong>of</strong>ficers drugged <strong>and</strong> crated <strong>in</strong> a box found him.<br />

The box was brought to the British St<strong>and</strong>stead Airport where it was<br />

to be loaded <strong>in</strong>to a Nigeria-bound Airways plane. Two Israelis were<br />

reported to be found <strong>in</strong> another crate. There was however a further<br />

report that an <strong>of</strong>ficial <strong>of</strong> Nigerian embassy <strong>in</strong> London was found at<br />

the airport at the time <strong>of</strong> load<strong>in</strong>g, work<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> conjunction with the<br />

Israelis <strong>in</strong> the kidnap attempt. The British authorities <strong>in</strong>furiated by<br />

the attack, arrested <strong>and</strong> deta<strong>in</strong>ed seventeen people, among whom<br />

were some Nigerian diplomats, who accord<strong>in</strong>g to the British <strong>of</strong>ficials<br />

were seen at the scene <strong>of</strong> the airport <strong>in</strong>cident. 81 Though the<br />

Nigerian government strongly denied any <strong>in</strong>volvement <strong>in</strong> the kidnap<br />

bid, the fact rema<strong>in</strong>s that her diplomats were strongly suspected<br />

<strong>and</strong> the immunities they enjoyed were violated. This led to a stra<strong>in</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong> relations <strong>and</strong> the recall <strong>of</strong> heads <strong>of</strong> missions by both countries.<br />

Oppressed <strong>and</strong> deprived people <strong>of</strong> the world tend to vent their<br />

anger <strong>and</strong> assuage their feel<strong>in</strong>g on diplomats, other <strong>in</strong>ternationally<br />

protected persons <strong>and</strong> legations, at home or abroad. For <strong>in</strong>stance,<br />

on 20 th September, 1972, 17 letter-bombs, postmarked Amsterdam<br />

81 Chris N. Okeke, Loc. Cit.


134<br />

<strong>and</strong> addressed to Israeli diplomats <strong>in</strong> many parts <strong>of</strong> the world, were<br />

discovered <strong>and</strong> rendered harmless <strong>in</strong> Brussels, Geneva, Jerusalem,<br />

Montreal, New York, <strong>and</strong> Vienna while on 25 th September, it was<br />

announced that five more had turned up <strong>in</strong> Canberra <strong>and</strong> Sydney<br />

<strong>and</strong> had also been made harmless. In one <strong>of</strong> the unexploded letter<br />

bombs <strong>in</strong> London, the Black September organization was<br />

implicated as be<strong>in</strong>g responsible for this dastardly plan <strong>of</strong> murder by<br />

mail. Aga<strong>in</strong>, the Swiss authorities <strong>in</strong>tercepted five letter bombs at<br />

the airport postal center <strong>in</strong> Geneva on 10 th November, 1972. All<br />

had New Delhi postmarks <strong>and</strong> were addressed either to the Israeli<br />

mission, to the UN Agencies <strong>in</strong> Geneva or to Jews <strong>and</strong> Jewish<br />

organizations, all which were as a result <strong>of</strong> Israeli oppressive policy<br />

<strong>in</strong> the occupied territories. 82<br />

One could go further <strong>and</strong> further to cite <strong>in</strong>stances <strong>of</strong> acts that<br />

engender the violation <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunities, but <strong>in</strong> most cases<br />

those causes are as trivial as the acts are as brutal. Imperialism,<br />

colonialism, neo-colonialism, racism, apartheid <strong>and</strong> regimes <strong>of</strong><br />

terror could cause the violation <strong>of</strong> immunity. Mere disapproval<br />

with a collective decision could trigger the violation <strong>of</strong> immunity as<br />

was the case on 2 nd April, 1992, after the UN secretary council<br />

82 Louis M. Bloomfield <strong>and</strong> Gerald F. Fitzgerald, Loc. Cit.


135<br />

passed a resolution to impose sanctions on Libya if she did not<br />

h<strong>and</strong> over two <strong>of</strong> her nationals accused <strong>of</strong> terrorism to the west <strong>and</strong><br />

with regard to this resolution, the Venezuelan, Russian <strong>and</strong><br />

Austrian embassies were attacked by demonstrations <strong>in</strong> Tripoli<br />

because these countries supported the UN Security Council vote for<br />

sanctions. Sequentially, on 7 th April, aga<strong>in</strong> the Libyan people<br />

demonstrated aga<strong>in</strong>st the visit <strong>of</strong> a UN Peace envoy, <strong>and</strong> also<br />

around the Italian embassy, which represents both the British <strong>and</strong><br />

American <strong>in</strong>terest <strong>in</strong> Libya. Besides even vengeance could lead to<br />

violation <strong>of</strong> immunity as it happened on 5 th April, 1992. The<br />

Iranian opposition movement carried out series <strong>of</strong> attacks on a<br />

number <strong>of</strong> Iranian embassies around the World – Bonn, Brita<strong>in</strong>,<br />

Bern, Canada <strong>and</strong> Iran‟s UN mission <strong>in</strong> the U.S., which were <strong>in</strong><br />

retaliation <strong>of</strong> alleged Iran‟s attack on the movement‟s<br />

establishments <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong>fices, <strong>in</strong> an Iranian air raid <strong>in</strong> Iraq. One th<strong>in</strong>g<br />

common with the latter factor just as others is that they re used to<br />

redress issues justly or unjustly.<br />

State actors could be <strong>in</strong>struments <strong>in</strong> the violation <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity, either by omission or commission, by acts<br />

carried out <strong>in</strong> their home states or abroad. Once <strong>in</strong> the past, the<br />

Iraqi mission <strong>in</strong> Pakistan concealed arms <strong>in</strong> the embassy. The


136<br />

Pakistani government was refused permission to search the<br />

mission premises <strong>of</strong> the Iraqi embassy. The Iraqi diplomats by<br />

nature <strong>of</strong> their work as representatives <strong>of</strong> their state, even if their<br />

government was not <strong>in</strong> the know <strong>of</strong> their action or even if their<br />

government did not sanction, their action, are state actors <strong>and</strong> had<br />

caused the violation <strong>of</strong> the immunity <strong>of</strong> their premises enjoyed 83.<br />

Another set <strong>of</strong> actors that usually cause the violation <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity are such non-state actors like the Palest<strong>in</strong>ian<br />

Arabs <strong>in</strong> the Middle East, Basques <strong>in</strong> Spa<strong>in</strong>, Kurds <strong>in</strong> Turkey <strong>and</strong><br />

Iraq, Welsh <strong>in</strong> Brita<strong>in</strong>, <strong>and</strong> Navajo <strong>in</strong> the U.S 84. By the nature <strong>of</strong> the<br />

agitation for recognition, they are likely to engage <strong>in</strong> bastardly acts<br />

aga<strong>in</strong>st diplomats <strong>and</strong> their legations like the PLO have <strong>of</strong>ten done<br />

aga<strong>in</strong>st USA <strong>and</strong> Israeli diplomats <strong>and</strong> legations. Recently, the<br />

Indian nation (Navajo) or tribe <strong>in</strong> the US has asked for a separate<br />

cont<strong>in</strong>gent to the summer Olympic <strong>in</strong> Barcelona. It is not unlikely<br />

that on a repeated requests <strong>and</strong> refusal, they would engage <strong>in</strong><br />

terrorist attack on US diplomats <strong>and</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises.<br />

Further, groups denied legitimate political status usually<br />

causes the violation <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity. Such groups <strong>in</strong>clude<br />

83 Article 41(3)<strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations, 1961.<br />

84 Bertelsen, Op. Cit. p.223.


137<br />

the Irish Republican Army <strong>in</strong> Northern Irel<strong>and</strong>, the Red Brigades <strong>in</strong><br />

Italy, Black September <strong>in</strong> the Middle East or such other groups as<br />

the two leftist urban guerrilla organization that kidnapped the<br />

Federal German ambassador to Brazil <strong>in</strong> Rio de Janeiro on 11 th<br />

June, 1970. 85<br />

The other set <strong>of</strong> actors <strong>in</strong>clude mobs or groups <strong>of</strong> persons,<br />

who for one reason or the other decide to vent their anger on<br />

persons that enjoy <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity. This was the case with the<br />

mobs <strong>in</strong>vasion <strong>of</strong> US embassy <strong>in</strong> Tehran <strong>in</strong> 1979, or recent Libyans<br />

attack on some embassies <strong>in</strong> Tripoli.<br />

3.7.1 State Responsibilities<br />

The ma<strong>in</strong> aim <strong>of</strong> law <strong>in</strong> society is to ensure orderly conduct.<br />

In so do<strong>in</strong>g, law confers rights to <strong>and</strong> imposes obligations on its<br />

subjects. This general pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> law equally applies to<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law. Responsibility is therefore central to<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law. In the consideration <strong>of</strong> state responsibility, states<br />

are taken as normal subjects <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law. When the law<br />

has bestowed rights <strong>and</strong> duties on states, failure to discharge those<br />

duties may amount to acts <strong>of</strong> omission, which are wrongful. On the<br />

other h<strong>and</strong> some <strong>of</strong> the acts may be wrongful by acts <strong>of</strong><br />

85 David Cariton <strong>and</strong> Carlo Ichaerf, eds. Loc. Cit.


138<br />

commission. Responsibility therefore comes <strong>in</strong> as an <strong>in</strong>cident <strong>of</strong> or<br />

consequence <strong>of</strong> acts commission or omissions that are wrongful.<br />

Wrongful acts or omission <strong>in</strong> law are followed by redress. The<br />

redress may be payment <strong>of</strong> compensation or reparations. In certa<strong>in</strong><br />

situations a mere apology <strong>and</strong> promise not to <strong>in</strong>dulge <strong>in</strong> the act or<br />

omission compla<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>of</strong> might suffice.<br />

In ancient times, it was fashionable for treaties to lay down<br />

duties <strong>and</strong> to specify liabilities <strong>and</strong> the procedure to be followed <strong>in</strong><br />

cases <strong>of</strong> breach. In modern law, legal <strong>in</strong>stitutions like the<br />

International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice <strong>and</strong> other tribunals have developed<br />

rules <strong>of</strong> responsibility. In discuss<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>ternational responsibility<br />

there is always a strong tendency on the part <strong>of</strong> some lawyers to<br />

reduce it to the normal rules <strong>of</strong> human responsibility <strong>in</strong> terms <strong>of</strong><br />

either contractual or delectable. This comparison <strong>in</strong> true sense is<br />

too literal therefore not apt. International responsibility is based on<br />

breaches <strong>of</strong> treaties <strong>and</strong> other responsibilities imposed by<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

Responsibility has been described as:<br />

86 Spanish Zone <strong>of</strong> Morroco Claims<br />

A necessary collorary <strong>of</strong> a right. All rights <strong>of</strong><br />

an <strong>in</strong>ternational character <strong>in</strong>volve<br />

responsibility. 86


139<br />

It is therefore a pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law that, a breach <strong>of</strong><br />

an engagement <strong>in</strong>volves an obligation to make reparation <strong>in</strong> an<br />

adequate form. Reparation is therefore an <strong>in</strong>dispensable<br />

complement <strong>of</strong> a failure to apply a convention <strong>and</strong> there is no<br />

necessity for this to be stated <strong>in</strong> the convention itself. 87 It then<br />

means that the pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational responsibility is not<br />

dependent solely on contractual relationship.<br />

In <strong>in</strong>ternational law, any breach <strong>of</strong> a legal obligation gives rise<br />

to <strong>in</strong>ternational responsibility. Objective test is applied to determ<strong>in</strong>e<br />

responsibility. Less emphasis is placed on the elements <strong>of</strong> dolus<br />

<strong>and</strong> culpa (those are the elements <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>tention <strong>and</strong> the neglect). A<br />

convention or a rule <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>tentional law may create the<br />

obligations breached. Where the acts <strong>of</strong> one state cause <strong>in</strong>jury to<br />

another state; the <strong>in</strong>jured state is entitled to redress. State<br />

responsibility is therefore concerned with circumstances <strong>and</strong><br />

pr<strong>in</strong>ciples, which will ensure redress to the <strong>in</strong>jured state. The<br />

nature <strong>of</strong> the redress will depend on the nature <strong>of</strong> the wrong.<br />

Sometimes the redress is sought through <strong>diplomatic</strong> channels.<br />

Instances where the <strong>in</strong>tegrity <strong>of</strong> the state is at stake, a mere<br />

apology <strong>and</strong> an undertak<strong>in</strong>g not to repeat the act be<strong>in</strong>g compla<strong>in</strong>ed<br />

87 Chorzow Factory (Jurisdiction) case PCIJ (1927) p21


140<br />

<strong>of</strong> may suffice. Where the act has led to a material loss or damage,<br />

the question <strong>of</strong> reparation may arise, <strong>in</strong> this k<strong>in</strong>d <strong>of</strong> situation,<br />

recourse may therefore be had to <strong>in</strong>ternational arbitral tribunals.<br />

The wrong that has brought about the loss may be <strong>of</strong> various types.<br />

It may have arisen from a treaty obligation or <strong>in</strong>juries to the citizen<br />

<strong>of</strong> another state. Where there is a breach or omission <strong>of</strong> a rule <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law; the claim <strong>of</strong> right under municipal law is not<br />

available to the state that is alleged to be <strong>in</strong> breach. Therefore,<br />

where an act has been characterized as an <strong>in</strong>ternational wrong it<br />

can not be affected by the characterization <strong>of</strong> the same act as<br />

lawful under municipal law 88. It appears that the doctr<strong>in</strong>e <strong>of</strong> ultra<br />

vires is not available to states under <strong>in</strong>ternational law when deal<strong>in</strong>g<br />

with state responsibility. Therefore once it is ascerta<strong>in</strong>ed that the<br />

organ or agency <strong>of</strong> the government concerned with the breach <strong>of</strong><br />

the <strong>in</strong>ternational obligation has the authority to perform that duty<br />

it was carry<strong>in</strong>g out, it would not matter if the authority has been<br />

exceeded. It is however imperative that it must be <strong>in</strong>itially<br />

ascerta<strong>in</strong>ed that the organ <strong>of</strong> the state concerned has the right to<br />

perform the duty it was carry<strong>in</strong>g out.<br />

88 Artcle 4 <strong>of</strong> the Work <strong>of</strong> the International Law Commission on State Responsbility


141<br />

The responsibility aris<strong>in</strong>g from breach <strong>of</strong> treaty depends on<br />

the provisions <strong>of</strong> the treaty. In most cases, the question <strong>of</strong><br />

responsibility is centred on the <strong>in</strong>terpretation <strong>of</strong> the provisions <strong>of</strong><br />

the treaty. Where a treaty provision is breached, responsibility<br />

follows. 89<br />

Responsibility <strong>of</strong> a state for a breach <strong>of</strong> contract entered <strong>in</strong>to<br />

by the state <strong>and</strong> aliens or foreign corporations may not necessarily<br />

be <strong>in</strong>ternational <strong>in</strong> character. An <strong>in</strong>ternational responsibility may<br />

arise if apart from the breach <strong>of</strong> the contract, the state concerned<br />

did some other acts, which amount to a denial <strong>of</strong> justice aga<strong>in</strong>st<br />

the alien. However, if under the contract, either expressly or<br />

impliedly, the state concerned <strong>and</strong> contracted with the state <strong>of</strong> the<br />

alien that it would observe certa<strong>in</strong> <strong>of</strong> arrangements with its<br />

citizens, the breach <strong>of</strong> such terms will amount to state<br />

responsibility.<br />

Responsibility imposed on states for expropriation <strong>of</strong> property<br />

<strong>of</strong> a foreigner on its territory is complex. It has gone through<br />

several changes. Economic <strong>in</strong>dependence ensured by the United<br />

Nations declarations <strong>in</strong> 1966 <strong>and</strong> 1973 appears to have legalized<br />

expropriation under certa<strong>in</strong> conditions. If the expropriation is for<br />

89 Chorzow Factory (Indemnitycase) PCIJ Reports (1928) p29


142<br />

public purpose, <strong>and</strong> is carried out <strong>in</strong> accordance with the declared<br />

domestic policy, <strong>and</strong> it does not <strong>in</strong>volve the commission <strong>of</strong> any<br />

unjustified irregularity, no state responsibility will be <strong>in</strong>curred.<br />

States have the right to determ<strong>in</strong>e the extent to which non-<br />

nationals will have rights over the natural resources on their<br />

territory 90. However, every expropriation must be followed by<br />

prompt <strong>and</strong> adequate compensation determ<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong> accordance with<br />

domestic legislation.<br />

The Calvo Clause derived its name from an Argent<strong>in</strong>e jurist,<br />

called Calvo. The clause was popularly used <strong>in</strong> Central <strong>and</strong><br />

Southern America.<br />

It was normally used <strong>in</strong> contracts <strong>in</strong> these regions between<br />

the countries <strong>and</strong> foreign companies or persons. The aim <strong>of</strong> the<br />

clause was to forestall such companies or persons who were<br />

normally granted concessions under the contracts from seek<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

assistance <strong>of</strong> their home government <strong>in</strong> matters aris<strong>in</strong>g out <strong>of</strong> the<br />

contracts.<br />

The aim was to ensure that the dispute aris<strong>in</strong>g under<br />

contracts <strong>in</strong> which concessions were given were settled <strong>in</strong><br />

municipal courts <strong>of</strong> the countries grant<strong>in</strong>g the concessions. The<br />

90 Art 2 para 2 <strong>of</strong> Covenant on Economic, Social, <strong>and</strong> Cultural rights 1966


143<br />

legal effect <strong>of</strong> such clauses has however been a subject <strong>of</strong><br />

conflict<strong>in</strong>g decisions by tribunals. In some cases, these clauses<br />

were declared void on the ground that an <strong>in</strong>dividual cannot<br />

contract out his right to protection by his home government.<br />

Generally however, it was the view that s<strong>in</strong>ce there is no rule<br />

aga<strong>in</strong>st <strong>in</strong>clusion <strong>of</strong> stipulations <strong>in</strong> contracts that all matters<br />

perta<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g to a contract, the jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the local tribunal should<br />

be complete <strong>and</strong> exclusive. The Calvo Clause can only be void if it<br />

attempts to wave <strong>in</strong> general terms the sovereign right <strong>of</strong> a state to<br />

protect its citizens. Also, where such a stipulation purports to b<strong>in</strong>d<br />

the claimant‟s government not to <strong>in</strong>tervene <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> a clear<br />

violation <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

Certa<strong>in</strong> duties <strong>and</strong> obligations are those aris<strong>in</strong>g other than by<br />

contractual means. A breach <strong>of</strong> any <strong>of</strong> these duties leads to<br />

commission <strong>of</strong> a wrong on the part <strong>of</strong> the state caus<strong>in</strong>g the breach.<br />

This type <strong>of</strong> wrong is known as an <strong>in</strong>ternational del<strong>in</strong>quency 91.<br />

International del<strong>in</strong>quencies are <strong>of</strong> several types <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>clude <strong>in</strong>juries<br />

to aliens. These <strong>in</strong>juries <strong>in</strong>clude damage to property, personal<br />

<strong>in</strong>juries, improper arrest by local authorities, failure to accord<br />

justice to aliens. In as much as an alien enter<strong>in</strong>g another state is<br />

91 Starke, J. G. Introduction to International Law (London: Butterworths; 1977) p331.


144<br />

deemed to have surrendered himself to the local jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> that<br />

state, an alien is entitled to some form <strong>of</strong> basic treatment from<br />

which derogation is not permitted by <strong>in</strong>ternational law. Failure to<br />

accord this can warrant his home government to take up the<br />

matter aga<strong>in</strong>st the state caus<strong>in</strong>g the breach.<br />

Responsibility <strong>in</strong> this area <strong>of</strong> the law arises from the doctr<strong>in</strong>e<br />

<strong>of</strong> immutability or attribution.<br />

This is a situation where a wrong occasioned by an agency or<br />

organ <strong>of</strong> a state is attributed or extended to the state itself.<br />

The doctr<strong>in</strong>e is based on two basic considerations:<br />

(i) Whether the organ or agency concerned has the authority to<br />

act on behalf <strong>of</strong> the state, <strong>and</strong><br />

(ii) Whether its conduct is attributable to the state under<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

Where the wrong is attributable, the state becomes liable. In<br />

other words the pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> attribution makes a state which is an<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational person responsible for the acts <strong>of</strong> her organs <strong>and</strong><br />

agencies.<br />

The operation <strong>of</strong> the doctr<strong>in</strong>e <strong>of</strong> attribution is not analogous<br />

with municipal law system. This has been po<strong>in</strong>ted out by the<br />

International Law Commission that:


145<br />

The attribution <strong>of</strong> an act or omission to state<br />

as an <strong>in</strong>ternational legal person is an<br />

operation, which <strong>of</strong> necessity falls with<strong>in</strong> the<br />

scope <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law. As a result it is<br />

dist<strong>in</strong>ct from the parallel operation which<br />

may, but need not necessarily take place<br />

under <strong>in</strong>ternal law.<br />

It is for this reason that the ultra vires rule does not apply to<br />

the doctr<strong>in</strong>e <strong>of</strong> attribution. Once it is established that a state organ<br />

or <strong>of</strong>ficial concerned had authority under the municipal law to<br />

carry out the duty, it can not be argued that the duty has been<br />

exceeded. Thus <strong>in</strong> the Youman‟s case, 92 a Mayor <strong>of</strong> a town <strong>in</strong><br />

Mexico ordered a lieutenant <strong>of</strong> state forces to lead forces for the<br />

purpose <strong>of</strong> quell<strong>in</strong>g a riot <strong>and</strong> attacks on some American citizens.<br />

The troops on arrival opened fire on a house <strong>in</strong> which the American<br />

citizens were liv<strong>in</strong>g lead<strong>in</strong>g to the death <strong>of</strong> one <strong>of</strong> the Americans.<br />

The Mexican Government was held responsible for their action<br />

despite the fact that they acted contrary to <strong>in</strong>structions.<br />

A state has the responsibility to protect the <strong>in</strong>terest <strong>of</strong> her<br />

nationals. This responsibility extends to those nationals who are<br />

even abroad. However this responsibility is exercised subject to the<br />

fundamental rule that every state has a right to exercise<br />

jurisdiction with<strong>in</strong> its area free from control by other states. There<br />

92 Annual Diggest <strong>of</strong> International Law cases (1925-1926) p223


146<br />

is the need therefore to ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong> a balance between these two<br />

responsibilities.<br />

The responsibility to protect citizens is exercised on the basis<br />

that citizens who are abroad should not be denied justice. Denial <strong>of</strong><br />

Justice can arise <strong>in</strong> several ways. It may arise when the citizen <strong>of</strong> a<br />

state is subjected to <strong>in</strong>human treatment even if he has been<br />

imprisoned through the due process <strong>of</strong> law. It will also amount to<br />

denial <strong>of</strong> justice if the citizen‟s property is confiscated illegally<br />

where the judicial agencies <strong>of</strong> the respondent state deny the<br />

citizens <strong>of</strong> the claimant state access to courts for the purpose <strong>of</strong><br />

seek<strong>in</strong>g redress. Denial <strong>of</strong> justice can also occur where the citizen<br />

is subjected to an unfair trial, unwarranted delay <strong>in</strong> the procedure<br />

<strong>and</strong> manifestly unjust judgement 93. Thus <strong>in</strong> the Chatt<strong>in</strong>g Claim,<br />

the general claims commission held that,<br />

93 Starke Op Cit p337<br />

Irregularity <strong>of</strong> court proceed<strong>in</strong>gs is proven<br />

with reference to the absence <strong>of</strong> proper<br />

<strong>in</strong>vestigations, the <strong>in</strong>sufficiency <strong>of</strong><br />

confrontations withhold<strong>in</strong>g from the accused<br />

the opportunity to know all the charges<br />

brought aga<strong>in</strong>st him, undue delay <strong>in</strong> the<br />

proceed<strong>in</strong>gs mak<strong>in</strong>g the hear<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> the court<br />

a mere formality <strong>and</strong> cont<strong>in</strong>ued absence <strong>of</strong><br />

seriousness on the part <strong>of</strong> the part <strong>of</strong> the<br />

court.


147<br />

It has been held that the <strong>in</strong>tervention <strong>of</strong> home government on<br />

account <strong>of</strong> failure <strong>of</strong> justice is justifiable only if the foreigner<br />

concerned must have exhausted all the available local remedies<br />

without result. 94 But it is manifestly clear that the local judicial<br />

authority is not free from control <strong>in</strong> order to enable it exercise<br />

<strong>in</strong>dependent dispensation <strong>of</strong> justice <strong>of</strong> justice, the local remedy rule<br />

need not apply.<br />

Responsibility under <strong>in</strong>ternational law is not strictly based on<br />

the pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> culpa (fault). Therefore <strong>in</strong> the Corfu Channel case, 95<br />

while f<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g Albania culpable <strong>of</strong> breach <strong>of</strong> International obligation<br />

the court observed that:<br />

The court must exam<strong>in</strong>e whether it had been<br />

established by means <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>direct evidence<br />

that Albania had knowledge <strong>of</strong> m<strong>in</strong>e ly<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong><br />

her territorial waters <strong>in</strong>dependently <strong>of</strong> any<br />

connivance on her part <strong>in</strong> this operation.<br />

The pro<strong>of</strong> may be drawn from <strong>in</strong>ferences <strong>of</strong><br />

fact, provided they have not room for any<br />

reasonable doubt.<br />

In the said case, some m<strong>in</strong>es were laid <strong>in</strong> the territorial<br />

waters <strong>of</strong> Albania, which the court found was with its knowledge,<br />

though not necessarily connivance. The Albanian government failed<br />

to notify some British warships that were exercis<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>nocent way<br />

94 Ibid<br />

95 ICJ Report (1949) p4


148<br />

<strong>of</strong> passage <strong>of</strong> this fact. Two <strong>of</strong> the ships were heavily damaged as a<br />

result <strong>of</strong> m<strong>in</strong>es explosion. The culpability <strong>of</strong> Albania was not based<br />

<strong>in</strong> any fault, but on her failure to discharge an <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

obligation.<br />

S<strong>in</strong>ce a state has the right to protect its citizens stay<strong>in</strong>g<br />

abroad, it can <strong>in</strong>tervene <strong>diplomatic</strong>ally or through arbitral tribunals<br />

if her nationals are wronged. The basis <strong>of</strong> this <strong>in</strong>tervention is that<br />

the state concerned has been wronged through her citizens. The<br />

matter becomes the matter between the two states. An <strong>in</strong>jured<br />

national can only get redress through his state. It is propositioned<br />

that s<strong>in</strong>ce the matter has become that <strong>of</strong> the state whose national<br />

is <strong>in</strong>jured, it can press on with the matter even if the <strong>in</strong>jured citizen<br />

waives his right 96. The jurisprudence here is that only states are<br />

recognized claimants before <strong>in</strong>ternational tribunals. Once a state<br />

has taken up a case on behalf <strong>of</strong> one <strong>of</strong> its subjects before an<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational tribunal, <strong>in</strong> the eye <strong>of</strong> the later the state is the sole<br />

claimant 97.<br />

A state can espouse claims for her nationals as well as people<br />

placed under her protection or aliens who have satisfied almost all<br />

conditions for naturalization. The rule therefore is that at the time<br />

96 Starke, J.G. Op Cit. P 342<br />

97 Mavrommatis Palest<strong>in</strong>e Concession case ICJ Reports (1942) p12


149<br />

<strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>jury compla<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>of</strong>, the <strong>in</strong>jured person must be shown to<br />

be the national <strong>of</strong> the state compla<strong>in</strong>ant until the claim has been<br />

decided. This is because,<br />

A nation is <strong>in</strong>jured through <strong>in</strong>jury to its<br />

nationals <strong>and</strong> it alone may dem<strong>and</strong><br />

reparations as not other nation is <strong>in</strong>jured.<br />

As between nationals, the <strong>in</strong>flict<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

<strong>in</strong>jury will necessarily listen to the compla<strong>in</strong>t<br />

<strong>of</strong> only the nation <strong>in</strong>jured. Any other rule<br />

will open wide the door for abuses <strong>and</strong> might<br />

result <strong>in</strong> convert<strong>in</strong>g a strong nation <strong>in</strong>to a<br />

claim agency on behalf <strong>of</strong> those who after<br />

suffer<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>juries should assign their claims<br />

to its nationals or avail themselves <strong>of</strong> its<br />

naturalization laws for the purpose <strong>of</strong><br />

procur<strong>in</strong>g its espousal <strong>of</strong> their claims.<br />

Where the party <strong>in</strong>jured is a company or a corporation, the<br />

nationality rule will apply. The nationality <strong>of</strong> a company is the<br />

country where it is <strong>in</strong>corporated but not the nationality <strong>of</strong> the<br />

shareholders. Thus <strong>in</strong> the Barcelona Traction case, 98 the<br />

International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice upheld the objection raised aga<strong>in</strong>st<br />

Belgium by Spa<strong>in</strong> that, Belgium could not espouse claim on behalf<br />

<strong>of</strong> Barcelona Traction company which was registered <strong>in</strong> Canada,<br />

despite the fact that most <strong>of</strong> the shareholder were <strong>of</strong> Belgian<br />

nationality.<br />

98 ICJ Rports (1970) p3


150<br />

In order to br<strong>in</strong>g a claim <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> a breach <strong>of</strong> an<br />

obligation, a state must first establish its right to do so. The rules<br />

on the subject rest on two suppositions: The first is that the<br />

Defendant State has broken an obligation towards the national <strong>of</strong><br />

the Claimant State. Secondly, only the party to whom an<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational obligation is due can br<strong>in</strong>g a claim <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> its<br />

breach. It is the bond <strong>of</strong> nationality between a state <strong>and</strong> an<br />

<strong>in</strong>dividual alone that confers on the state the right <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

protection. It is a part <strong>of</strong> the function <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> protection that<br />

the right to take up claims <strong>and</strong> to ensure respect for the rules <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law is envisaged. In a claims case, <strong>in</strong>ternational law<br />

<strong>in</strong>sists on close ties <strong>and</strong> genu<strong>in</strong>e connection between an <strong>in</strong>dividual<br />

<strong>and</strong> the Claimant State 99. Where a corporation or company is<br />

<strong>in</strong>volved, the law will be very slow under <strong>in</strong>ternational law to lift the<br />

corporate veil. Therefore, <strong>in</strong> I‟m Alone case, 100 the fact that the real<br />

owners <strong>of</strong> the vessel were Americans, <strong>and</strong> any compensation<br />

awarded for the s<strong>in</strong>k<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> the vessel would end <strong>in</strong> the pockets <strong>of</strong><br />

Americans was treated as irrelevant. In this case, a British<br />

schooner registered <strong>in</strong> Canada was ordered to heave to by a United<br />

99 Notteobohm case, ICJ Reports (1955) p15<br />

100 1935 3RIAA 1609


151<br />

States coastguard vessel on suspicion <strong>of</strong> smuggl<strong>in</strong>g liquor, at the<br />

time <strong>of</strong> prohibition <strong>in</strong> the United States. She fled but was fired at<br />

<strong>and</strong> sunk. The argument that the real owners were American<br />

citizens was discountenanced.<br />

In cases <strong>of</strong> state responsibility, once a claim has been<br />

susta<strong>in</strong>ed, the claimant state is entitled to some damages. This is<br />

whether the <strong>in</strong>jury has caused some material damage, <strong>in</strong>jury,<br />

pecuniary loss or not 101. Also, the fact that the state responsibility<br />

is as a result <strong>of</strong> an <strong>in</strong>jury caused to its own national does not mean<br />

that the damage suffered by the state is identical to the <strong>in</strong>jury<br />

suffered by that national. They are not the same.<br />

Accord<strong>in</strong>g to the PCIJ:<br />

The damage suffered by an <strong>in</strong>dividual is<br />

never… identical <strong>in</strong> k<strong>in</strong>d with that which will<br />

be suffered by the state; it can only afford a<br />

convenient scale for the calculation <strong>of</strong> the<br />

reparation due to the state 102.<br />

For this reason, <strong>in</strong> some <strong>in</strong>stances two separate heads <strong>of</strong><br />

damage may lie from one wrong. One is <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> the damage<br />

suffered by the <strong>in</strong>dividual <strong>and</strong> the other <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>jury<br />

suffered by the Claimant State. In I‟m Alone case, the<br />

commissioners recommended that the United States should pay<br />

101 Starke, J.G. Op Cit p347.<br />

102 Chorzow Factory (Indemnity) case (supra).


152<br />

some money to the Canadian government as well as to the family <strong>of</strong><br />

the capta<strong>in</strong> <strong>and</strong> members <strong>of</strong> the crew who suffered from the illegal<br />

act. Similarly, the International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice <strong>in</strong> its advisory<br />

op<strong>in</strong>ion held that the United Nations could claim compensation<br />

both <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> itself <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong> the damage to <strong>in</strong>dividuals aris<strong>in</strong>g out<br />

<strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>juries suffered by its <strong>of</strong>ficials <strong>in</strong> the course <strong>of</strong> their duties.<br />

When <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunities are violated either by state<br />

actors, non-state actors, groups or persons, there are options<br />

opened to states <strong>in</strong>volved to redress the issue <strong>and</strong> make amend. As<br />

stated <strong>in</strong> the Vienna convention on Diplomatic Relations 1961, it is<br />

the duty <strong>of</strong> all persons enjoy<strong>in</strong>g privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities to<br />

respect the laws <strong>and</strong> regulations <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, but<br />

wherever such person does not observe the clause, the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state has a duty to declare the <strong>diplomatic</strong> staff persona non grata<br />

<strong>and</strong> without hav<strong>in</strong>g to expla<strong>in</strong> its decision. When this happens the<br />

send<strong>in</strong>g state either recalls the person concerned “for<br />

consolation” 103or term<strong>in</strong>ates his functions with the mission.<br />

Worthy <strong>of</strong> note is that a person ma be declared non grata before<br />

arriv<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> the territory <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. 104<br />

103 Norman D. Palmer <strong>and</strong> Howard C. Perk<strong>in</strong>s, Interntional Relations 3rd ed, India ed. (New Delhi : CBS<br />

Publishers <strong>and</strong> Distributors ; 1985), p.89<br />

104 Article 9 <strong>of</strong> the UN charter


153<br />

If the <strong>of</strong>fence was one which should be heard <strong>in</strong> the courts <strong>of</strong><br />

the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, the foreign m<strong>in</strong>istry <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state would<br />

ask the <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission or its superior to waive the immunity<br />

enjoyed by such a diplomat. And should the immunity be waived,<br />

the foreign <strong>of</strong>fice would <strong>in</strong>form the mission or superior concerned<br />

that the diplomat was no longer persona grata, 105 <strong>in</strong> which case,<br />

after the expiration <strong>of</strong> a reasonable period, the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state may<br />

refuse to recognize the person concerned as a member <strong>of</strong> the<br />

mission 106. When the waiver is granted, the diplomat is subject to<br />

prosecution <strong>in</strong> the local court, however, if judgment is passed a<br />

separate waiver is necessary for its execution. 107 Nevertheless,<br />

waiver can be withdrawn. Depend<strong>in</strong>g on the degree <strong>of</strong> sta<strong>in</strong> on<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> relations, states can render apologies.<br />

Accord<strong>in</strong>g to J. G. Starke:<br />

If only its dignity has been affected, a formal<br />

apology from the responsible state or an<br />

assurance aga<strong>in</strong>st the repetition <strong>of</strong> the<br />

matters compla<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>of</strong> will generally be<br />

regarded as sufficient. 108<br />

But when an <strong>in</strong>jury is not as an act <strong>of</strong> a state <strong>of</strong>ficial, but by<br />

non-state nation actors or group or persons, the perpetrator must<br />

105 Norman D. Palmer <strong>and</strong> Howard C. Perk<strong>in</strong>s, Op. cit p. 908<br />

106 Article 9 (2) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention on Diplomatic Relations<br />

107 Article 32. paragraph 4 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 convention<br />

108 J. G. Starke, Introduction to Interntional Law, 9th ed. (London : Butterworth, 1984) p.283.


154<br />

be punished <strong>and</strong> with apology rendered to the send<strong>in</strong>g state by the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. And should the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state fail to punish the<br />

<strong>of</strong>fender it would imply that it has facilitated the commission <strong>of</strong> an<br />

ultra vires act <strong>and</strong> thus has broken an <strong>in</strong>dependent duty <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

But then, if a diplomat commits a grave <strong>of</strong>fence, it may call<br />

for his outright expulsion after the expiration <strong>of</strong> a reasonable period<br />

perhaps twenty four or fort-eight hours as the case may be; or even<br />

deportation. And very <strong>of</strong>ten, this k<strong>in</strong>d <strong>of</strong> measure had led to a<br />

break <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations. Meanwhile, relations may be either<br />

broken or suspended unilaterally.<br />

Besides the above mentioned measures which could be taken<br />

by states as their responsibilities, the United Nations has gone a<br />

step forward <strong>in</strong> her Resolution 3166 (XXVIII) <strong>in</strong> what the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

states can do when the <strong>of</strong>fenders are particularly non-state actors.<br />

In the resolution, the UN has def<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong> Article 2 the crimes<br />

committed <strong>and</strong> likely to be committed aga<strong>in</strong>st <strong>in</strong>ternationally<br />

protected persons <strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents. Article 3 <strong>of</strong> the<br />

same resolution enjo<strong>in</strong>ed each state to take such measures as may


155<br />

be necessary to establish its jurisdiction over the crimes set forth <strong>in</strong><br />

the Article. 109 While Article 7 <strong>of</strong> the said resolution states:<br />

The states party <strong>in</strong> whose territory the<br />

alleged <strong>of</strong>fender is present shall, if it does<br />

not extradite him, submit without exception<br />

whatsoever <strong>and</strong> without undue delay, the<br />

case to its competent authorities for the<br />

purpose <strong>of</strong> prosecution, through proceed<strong>in</strong>gs<br />

<strong>in</strong> accordance with the laws <strong>of</strong> that state 110 .<br />

Short <strong>of</strong> the UN concern is: what happens if the state party,<br />

<strong>in</strong> which the <strong>of</strong>fender commits the crime or f<strong>in</strong>ds himself, refuses to<br />

prosecute the <strong>of</strong>fender or extradite him, or if the state is an<br />

accomplice <strong>in</strong> the <strong>of</strong>fence? S<strong>in</strong>ce the resolution conta<strong>in</strong>s only moral<br />

appeal <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>junctions without any credible coercive threat,<br />

nations can afford to aid the violation <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity with<br />

impunity.<br />

3.8 STATUS OF DIPLOMATS IN NIGERIA<br />

This section is important ow<strong>in</strong>g to the fact that <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law is the expression <strong>of</strong> the collective will <strong>of</strong> states. Accord<strong>in</strong>gly, it<br />

cannot exist <strong>in</strong> a vacuum. For <strong>in</strong>ternational law to f<strong>in</strong>d expression<br />

<strong>in</strong> Nigeria, it must be <strong>in</strong>ternalised <strong>in</strong> Nigeria‟s domestic law.<br />

Accord<strong>in</strong>g to the 1999 constitution:<br />

109 United Nation, Resolution 3166 (XXVIII) <strong>and</strong> Annex 1973 Article 2 <strong>and</strong> 3.<br />

110 Article 7.


156<br />

No treaty between the federation <strong>and</strong> any<br />

other country shall have force <strong>of</strong> law except<br />

to the extent to which any such treaty has<br />

been enacted <strong>in</strong>to law by the National<br />

Assembly’ 111.<br />

Based on the above, the Diplomatic Immunities <strong>and</strong> Privileges<br />

Act, Cap. 99, Laws <strong>of</strong> the Federation <strong>of</strong> Nigeria 1990, is a Nigerian<br />

Legislation. Its provision <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> diplomats <strong>in</strong> Nigeria is<br />

basically the crux <strong>of</strong> this section.<br />

The general rule with regard to the position <strong>of</strong> municipal law<br />

with<strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational sphere is that a state, which has broken a<br />

stipulation <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law, cannot justify itself by referr<strong>in</strong>g to<br />

its domestic legal situation. It is no defence to a breach <strong>of</strong> an<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational obligation to argue that the state acted <strong>in</strong> such a<br />

manner because it was follow<strong>in</strong>g the dictates <strong>of</strong> its own municipal<br />

laws. Any other situation would permit <strong>in</strong>ternational law to be<br />

evaded by the simple method <strong>of</strong> domestic legislation 112.<br />

The Nigerian Act, Cap 99, 1990 def<strong>in</strong>es a diplomat as:<br />

An envoy <strong>of</strong> a foreign sovereign power who is<br />

accredited to the Government <strong>of</strong> Nigeria 113.<br />

111 Section 12 (1) <strong>of</strong> the 1999 Constitution <strong>of</strong> the Federal Republic <strong>of</strong> Nigeria.<br />

112 Shaw, M. N. International Law (3 rd .ed) Cambridge : Cambridge <strong>University</strong> Press; 1991 pp. 104 – 5.<br />

113 Section 22 (1)


157<br />

The Diplomatic Immunities <strong>and</strong> Privileges Act Cap. 99, 1990<br />

also stipulates certa<strong>in</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities for all diplomats<br />

<strong>in</strong> Nigeria. The 1990 Act further states that such diplomats <strong>and</strong><br />

their <strong>of</strong>ficial or domestic staff as well as members <strong>of</strong> their families<br />

will be accorded immunity from any civil or legal process as well as<br />

the <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> their residence <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial archives 114. This<br />

article <strong>of</strong> the Nigerian Act correlates with the provisions <strong>of</strong> the<br />

privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities accorded diplomats <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law,<br />

such that for <strong>in</strong>stance when an Egyptian diplomat is sent to Nigeria<br />

on behalf <strong>of</strong> his home government, he is automatically accorded<br />

immunities as provided <strong>in</strong> the Nigerian act, his family, domestic<br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial staff <strong>and</strong> their families along with him. However, a<br />

Nigerian citizen who is a member <strong>of</strong> staff <strong>of</strong> the diplomat shall not<br />

enjoy such personal immunities.<br />

114 Article 1 (1).<br />

The Article 10 <strong>of</strong> the Act clearly states that:<br />

When a person who is a member <strong>of</strong> the<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficial or domestic staff <strong>of</strong> …is a citizen <strong>of</strong><br />

Nigeria <strong>and</strong> not a citizen <strong>of</strong> the country<br />

concerned… he shall not by reason only <strong>of</strong><br />

his be<strong>in</strong>g a member <strong>of</strong> that family, be<br />

entitled to personal immunities (if any which<br />

would otherwise be conferred on him by law,<br />

or to any exemption…


158<br />

To stress further the concept <strong>of</strong> immunity, the Nigerian law<br />

provides for <strong>in</strong>dividuals or persons who belong to a Commonwealth<br />

country to be protected <strong>and</strong> they also enjoy same immunities as the<br />

Chief Representative <strong>of</strong> a Commonwealth nation.<br />

S<strong>in</strong>ce Nigerian law recognizes <strong>and</strong> regards members <strong>of</strong><br />

Commonwealth nations as foreign envoys, they are therefore<br />

treated <strong>and</strong> accorded the same immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges as the<br />

other <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents. Art. 3 <strong>of</strong> the Nigerian Act states this <strong>and</strong><br />

as such all immunities accorded also to diplomat‟s <strong>of</strong>ficial <strong>and</strong><br />

domestic staff is also accorded those <strong>of</strong> a Chief representative <strong>of</strong> a<br />

Commonwealth Nation (Art. 4 (a – c) ). Immunities are also<br />

accorded Commonwealth representatives attend<strong>in</strong>g a conference <strong>in</strong><br />

Nigeria. This is stated clearly <strong>in</strong> Art. 6 (1) <strong>of</strong> the Act. What this<br />

goes on to imply is that whether the <strong>in</strong>dividual is a diplomat or is<br />

represent<strong>in</strong>g his government at the conference he is treated as a<br />

diplomat. However it must be noted that a Nigerian Citizen who is<br />

either a diplomat or is represent<strong>in</strong>g the country at the conference<br />

will not be accorded any immunity s<strong>in</strong>ce he is a citizen <strong>of</strong> Nigeria.<br />

This is expressly stated <strong>in</strong> Art 6 (4). Consular immunity may also<br />

be conferred on persons regarded as foreign <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers to


159<br />

enable them perform their <strong>consular</strong> functions effectively. They are<br />

also immune from any suit or legal process.<br />

Waiver <strong>of</strong> immunity is permitted under the Nigerian act. A<br />

diplomat is allowed to waive his immunity with the consent <strong>of</strong> his<br />

government <strong>and</strong> waive that <strong>of</strong> any member <strong>of</strong> his staff (Art. 7 (1)).<br />

The question here is how possible is this? In some cases waiver <strong>of</strong><br />

immunity is done usually to br<strong>in</strong>g suit aga<strong>in</strong>st a diplomat who has<br />

<strong>in</strong> one way or the other committed a crime <strong>and</strong> s<strong>in</strong>ce he has<br />

personal immunity, no suit or legal process can be brought aga<strong>in</strong>st<br />

him except if his immunity is waived. How then is it possible for a<br />

diplomat to waive his own immunity <strong>in</strong> such an <strong>in</strong>stance?<br />

Granted, a diplomat can waive his immunity but when this<br />

happens, it means the diplomat is the pla<strong>in</strong>tiff <strong>in</strong> the case. And<br />

when this is done, there is not much that can be done by the<br />

diplomat‟s send<strong>in</strong>g government to extradite him s<strong>in</strong>ce he has<br />

already placed himself under the laws <strong>of</strong> the government <strong>of</strong> the host<br />

country. If the crime committed is murder for <strong>in</strong>stance, it is almost<br />

unlikely if not entirely impossible for a diplomat to waive his own<br />

immunity <strong>and</strong> subject himself to the laws <strong>of</strong> the l<strong>and</strong>.<br />

The M<strong>in</strong>ister also has the power to either confer immunities<br />

or withdraw such immunities on a diplomat with<strong>in</strong> the territories <strong>of</strong>


160<br />

Nigeria. Article 8 <strong>of</strong> the 1990 Nigeria Act states that the Nigerian<br />

M<strong>in</strong>ister has the power to reduce the personal immunities <strong>of</strong> a<br />

diplomat or any member <strong>of</strong> his staff or family where he (the<br />

M<strong>in</strong>ister) feels that such personal immunities exceed those<br />

accorded <strong>in</strong> the territory <strong>of</strong> the foreign sovereign power <strong>and</strong> order<br />

the withdrawal <strong>of</strong> those immunities as it appear to him as proper <strong>in</strong><br />

respect <strong>of</strong> certa<strong>in</strong> classes <strong>of</strong> people. This article however fails to<br />

def<strong>in</strong>e the scope or what can be done proper by the M<strong>in</strong>ister.<br />

The M<strong>in</strong>ister by virtue <strong>of</strong> Part II <strong>of</strong> the 1990 Act can confer<br />

immunity on any person who is a representative <strong>of</strong> an <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

organization, members <strong>of</strong> which are sovereign powers. These are<br />

specified <strong>in</strong> the first schedule, Part II <strong>of</strong> the Act. 115 That<br />

representative <strong>of</strong> International organizations like the United<br />

Nations, African Union, European Economic Community <strong>and</strong><br />

others will also enjoy immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges granted foreign<br />

diplomats <strong>in</strong> Nigeria. These representatives could also <strong>in</strong>clude<br />

counsels <strong>and</strong> agents <strong>of</strong> the International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice.<br />

Inviolability <strong>of</strong> the mission premises is also stated. What this<br />

goes to say is that the citizens or government <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state<br />

has no right to enter the mission premises except with the<br />

115 1990 Nigerian Act on Diplomatic Immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges. Part II : Immuities <strong>and</strong> Privileges <strong>of</strong><br />

International organisations <strong>and</strong> persons connected therewith Article 11 (1 – 4)


161<br />

permission <strong>of</strong> the diplomat. This also covers <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> the<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficial archives <strong>of</strong> the diplomat. 116<br />

Fees, levies, rates, duties, taxes, whenever applicable may be<br />

exempted the diplomats by the Federal M<strong>in</strong>ister <strong>of</strong> F<strong>in</strong>ance who has<br />

the power to grant exemption from such taxations. And this<br />

applies to all categories <strong>of</strong> persons who are diplomats by Nigerian<br />

law <strong>and</strong> are accorded immunities <strong>and</strong> privileged as such. This also<br />

<strong>in</strong>cludes those representatives <strong>of</strong> International organizations<br />

present <strong>in</strong> Nigeria. And such charges or stamp duties <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong><br />

goods belong<strong>in</strong>g to representatives <strong>of</strong> such organizations will be<br />

exempted.<br />

3.7.1 Inherent Limitations<br />

Summarily, the Nigerian Act <strong>of</strong> 1990 protects clearly all<br />

categories <strong>of</strong> diplomats enter<strong>in</strong>g Nigeria, personal immunities are<br />

granted them <strong>and</strong> their staff as well as members <strong>of</strong> their respective<br />

families, there is also <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> the residence <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial<br />

archives <strong>and</strong> exemption from taxes, duties charges <strong>and</strong> so on. Be<br />

these as it may be however; there are certa<strong>in</strong> problems, which are<br />

<strong>in</strong>herent <strong>in</strong> the Act. The Act states that immunity is guaranteed all<br />

diplomats, their family <strong>and</strong> members <strong>of</strong> staff <strong>of</strong> such diplomats.<br />

116 Part I Diplomatic Immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges Act. Article 3


162<br />

This immunity from suit or legal process to an extent allows<br />

flagrant abuses <strong>of</strong> this immunity. This is such that some diplomats<br />

might decide to take the laws <strong>in</strong>to their h<strong>and</strong>s <strong>and</strong> disobey the laws<br />

<strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>and</strong> thereafter plead <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity.<br />

The Act is too broad. For <strong>in</strong>stance, if the Canadian diplomat to<br />

Nigeria is caught driv<strong>in</strong>g recklessly along a road <strong>in</strong> Nigeria, he can<br />

be stopped but if he refuses to stop <strong>and</strong> then due to his reckless<br />

driv<strong>in</strong>g knocks down a Nigeria citizen <strong>and</strong> kills such a person. The<br />

diplomat now pleads <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity. In the real sense he is<br />

protected from any legal proceed<strong>in</strong>gs but the Nigerian citizen has<br />

already been killed <strong>and</strong> what the diplomat will do is probably to<br />

apologize or his send<strong>in</strong>g government will, but the crime itself is<br />

aga<strong>in</strong>st all pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> human rights. The Nigerian citizen who<br />

was killed has a right to use the road just as much as the<br />

Canadian but <strong>in</strong> a situation where the Canadian diplomat violated<br />

traffic rules <strong>and</strong> has gone ahead to commit another <strong>of</strong>fence, it is an<br />

abuse <strong>of</strong> privilege. Us<strong>in</strong>g this example aga<strong>in</strong>, the problem <strong>of</strong> waiver<br />

<strong>of</strong> immunity <strong>and</strong> the possibility <strong>of</strong> the diplomat waiv<strong>in</strong>g his<br />

immunity can also be criticized to a certa<strong>in</strong> extent. The Canadian<br />

diplomat <strong>in</strong> this case will def<strong>in</strong>itely not want to waive his immunity


163<br />

<strong>and</strong> subject himself to the laws <strong>of</strong> Nigeria know<strong>in</strong>g fully well that<br />

such a crime carries a stiff penalty. He is the accused or defendant<br />

<strong>in</strong> this case <strong>and</strong> if so it is most unlikely, if not impossible, for him<br />

to waive his personal immunity.<br />

In the case <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> the premises <strong>of</strong> a mission, the<br />

1961 convention specifies that the citizens or the government <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state have no right to enter the premises except by<br />

permission from the head <strong>of</strong> the mission. The government <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state has a right to protect such a premises from its own<br />

citizens but what stance is for example, the Nigerian government<br />

expected to take or what measure is it expected to take when the<br />

security <strong>of</strong> premises <strong>of</strong> a mission is be<strong>in</strong>g threatened or <strong>in</strong> danger<br />

at the h<strong>and</strong>s <strong>of</strong> the diplomat himself. It has been argued that <strong>in</strong><br />

case <strong>of</strong> fire, the government <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state even without<br />

permission from the head <strong>of</strong> the mission, can enter the premises to<br />

save it but consider for <strong>in</strong>stance that the diplomat <strong>in</strong> charge <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Ghanaian Embassy <strong>in</strong> Nigeria is drunk <strong>and</strong> runn<strong>in</strong>g around lose<br />

with a gun <strong>in</strong> the Embassy <strong>and</strong> is threaten<strong>in</strong>g to shoot his<br />

colleagues <strong>and</strong> staff <strong>and</strong> the Nigerian M<strong>in</strong>ister for Foreign Affairs, is<br />

told <strong>of</strong> such a situation, what is the Nigerian government supposed<br />

or expected to do <strong>in</strong> such a case?


164<br />

Another problem area is that <strong>of</strong> waiver <strong>of</strong> immunity or the<br />

ability for the Nigerian M<strong>in</strong>ister to re-appraise personal immunity <strong>of</strong><br />

a diplomat <strong>and</strong> where it appears to him to exceed certa<strong>in</strong> limits,<br />

order the withdrawal <strong>of</strong> such immunities <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> certa<strong>in</strong> class<br />

<strong>of</strong> people as appear to him to be proper. The act however failed to<br />

def<strong>in</strong>e <strong>in</strong> concrete terms the word „proper‟ what criteria will be used<br />

by the M<strong>in</strong>ister to determ<strong>in</strong>e what is proper. This could also give<br />

room for abuse <strong>of</strong> this privilege by our M<strong>in</strong>isters. The M<strong>in</strong>ister<br />

could decide to issue an order for withdrawal <strong>of</strong> certa<strong>in</strong> personal<br />

immunities based on personal grudge or misunderst<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g. For<br />

<strong>in</strong>stance, may be the Nigerian M<strong>in</strong>ister for Foreign Affairs traveled<br />

to Sierra Leone <strong>and</strong> feels he was not given proper recognition or<br />

someth<strong>in</strong>g he could come down to Nigeria <strong>and</strong> feel he should take it<br />

out on the Sierra Leonian diplomat <strong>in</strong> Nigeria by withdraw<strong>in</strong>g<br />

certa<strong>in</strong> immunities or so. Such Act could be said to give rise to<br />

questions <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>terpretation <strong>in</strong> that certa<strong>in</strong> terms are not well or<br />

clearly def<strong>in</strong>ed.


165<br />

CHAPTER FOUR<br />

SOURCES OF DIPLOMATIC AND CONSULAR LAW<br />

4.1 INTRODUCTION<br />

International law does not operate <strong>in</strong> a vacuum. Its norms<br />

<strong>and</strong> Pr<strong>in</strong>ciples are actualized with<strong>in</strong> specific territorial units. The<br />

relationships between states are carried out by representatives who<br />

must situate at any po<strong>in</strong>t <strong>in</strong> time with<strong>in</strong> the territory <strong>of</strong> one state or<br />

the other.<br />

It has been generally accepted that <strong>in</strong>ternational legal norms<br />

do not receive automatic force <strong>of</strong> law with<strong>in</strong> municipal systems<br />

except to the extent that such municipal systems have <strong>in</strong>corporated<br />

or <strong>in</strong>ternalized such norms. Consequently when discuss<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

legal status <strong>of</strong> the subjects <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law,<br />

reference must always be made to the municipal set up. It is <strong>in</strong> this<br />

ve<strong>in</strong> that the Nigerian law is treated <strong>in</strong> this essay.<br />

The history <strong>of</strong> <strong>practice</strong> <strong>of</strong> grant<strong>in</strong>g <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong><br />

Privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>in</strong> Nigeria is <strong>in</strong>extricably l<strong>in</strong>ked with<br />

United K<strong>in</strong>gdom, its colonizer. The Statute <strong>of</strong> St. Ann 1708 had<br />

remarkable <strong>in</strong>fluence <strong>and</strong> operation <strong>in</strong> Nigeria, so also was the<br />

Diplomatic Immunities <strong>and</strong> Privileges (Extension) Act. After<br />

<strong>in</strong>dependence <strong>in</strong> 1960, Nigeria tried to sanitize its statute law from


166<br />

the Vestiges <strong>of</strong> colonialism. Consequently, the Acts which were <strong>in</strong><br />

operation <strong>in</strong> Nigeria were repealed <strong>and</strong> replaced by the Nigerian<br />

Diplomatic Immunities <strong>and</strong> Privileges ACT, 1962 presently cited as<br />

Cap 99 laws <strong>of</strong> the Federal Republic <strong>of</strong> Nigeria, 1990.<br />

4.2 SCOPE OF THE ACT<br />

4.2.1 Immunities <strong>of</strong> Foreign Envoys <strong>and</strong> Consular<br />

Agents<br />

Foreign envoy is said to mean an envoy <strong>of</strong> a foreign sovereign<br />

power who is accredited to the Government <strong>of</strong> Nigeria. While<br />

“Foreign Consular Officer means a <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficer <strong>of</strong> a foreign<br />

sovereign power who is recognized by the Government <strong>of</strong> Nigeria. 1<br />

Part 1 <strong>of</strong> the 1990 Act provides for immunity from suit <strong>and</strong><br />

legal process <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> residence <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial archives <strong>of</strong><br />

every foreign envoy <strong>and</strong> every foreign <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficer, members <strong>of</strong><br />

the families <strong>of</strong> those persons, the members <strong>of</strong> their <strong>of</strong>ficial or<br />

domestic staff, <strong>and</strong> the members <strong>of</strong> the families <strong>of</strong> their <strong>of</strong>ficial<br />

staff. 2 This Act also renders void any writ or process sued forth or<br />

prosecuted before the com<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>to operation <strong>of</strong> this Act, where any<br />

foreign envoy or foreign <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficer or any member <strong>of</strong> his<br />

1 Section 22 (z)<br />

2 Section 1 (1)


167<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficial or domestic staff is liable to arrest or imprisonment, or his<br />

or their goods or chattels are liable to distress, seizure or<br />

attachment. 3 The Act further provides that immunity from arrest<br />

does not extend to any member <strong>of</strong> the <strong>of</strong>ficial or domestic staff <strong>of</strong> a<br />

foreign envoy or foreign <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficer, unless he records, before<br />

the arrest, the name <strong>of</strong> such persons with the m<strong>in</strong>ister. 4 The<br />

“M<strong>in</strong>ister” as used here means the m<strong>in</strong>ister charged with<br />

responsibility for foreign affairs <strong>and</strong> commonwealth relations. 5<br />

In Alhaji A.G. Ishola Noah vs. His Excellency the British High<br />

Commissioner to Nigeria 6 where the Supreme Court was confronted<br />

with the issue <strong>of</strong> whether it has jurisdiction <strong>in</strong> an action brought<br />

aga<strong>in</strong>st the British High Commissioner; <strong>and</strong> whether an action<br />

brought aga<strong>in</strong>st a foreign envoy is valid. It was held <strong>in</strong>ter alia that<br />

the Supreme Court <strong>of</strong> Nigeria has no orig<strong>in</strong>al jurisdiction <strong>in</strong> an<br />

action brought aga<strong>in</strong>st the British high Commissioner <strong>in</strong> Nigeria,<br />

<strong>and</strong> that the action <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> the High commissioner <strong>and</strong> foreign<br />

envoy is <strong>in</strong>competent, null <strong>and</strong> void.<br />

3 Section 1 (2)<br />

4 Section 1 (3) (a)<br />

5 Section 22 (1)<br />

6 (1980) N.S.C.C. Vol. 12 P. 265.


168<br />

In relation to taxation, the words “exemption” <strong>and</strong> “grant”<br />

have been used. The power <strong>of</strong> exemption from time to time, wholly<br />

or partly from any public tax, duty, rate, levy or fee, <strong>in</strong> relation to a<br />

foreign envoy <strong>and</strong> foreign <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficer has been given to the<br />

Federal m<strong>in</strong>ister <strong>of</strong> f<strong>in</strong>ance. Such discretional exemption by the<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficial <strong>and</strong> domestic staff <strong>and</strong> their families is provided for <strong>in</strong><br />

Article 9. 7 This suggests that how such exemption is to be effected<br />

falls with<strong>in</strong> the prescription <strong>and</strong> dictation <strong>of</strong> the M<strong>in</strong>ister. This is a<br />

departure from the 1961 <strong>and</strong> 1963 Vienna Conventions on<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> relations <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> relations respectively both <strong>of</strong><br />

which have no mention <strong>of</strong> the said m<strong>in</strong>ister.<br />

In relation to waiver <strong>of</strong> immunity <strong>of</strong> foreign envoys <strong>and</strong> foreign<br />

<strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers, section 2 <strong>of</strong> the act provides that each <strong>of</strong> them<br />

could waive any immunity <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>violability with the consent <strong>of</strong> his<br />

Government. He however does not necessarily need consent from<br />

his Government to waive any immunity or <strong>in</strong>violability conferred on<br />

his family or member <strong>of</strong> his domestic or <strong>of</strong>ficial staff <strong>and</strong> their<br />

families.<br />

7 Section 9


169<br />

4.2.2 Immunities <strong>of</strong> Chief Representative <strong>of</strong> a<br />

Commonwealth Country<br />

Section 22 (2) provides that “References <strong>in</strong> this Act to<br />

“commonwealth country “ or to „commonwealth countries‟ shall be<br />

read as references to all or any <strong>of</strong> the follow<strong>in</strong>g countries that is to<br />

say, the United K<strong>in</strong>gdom <strong>and</strong> colonies, Canada, Australia, New<br />

Zeal<strong>and</strong>, India, Pakistan, the federation <strong>of</strong> Rhodesia <strong>and</strong><br />

Nyasal<strong>and</strong>, Ceylon, Ghana, the Federation <strong>of</strong> Malaya, the State <strong>of</strong><br />

S<strong>in</strong>gapore, Cyprus, Sierra Leone, Tanganyika, Ug<strong>and</strong>a, Jamaica<br />

<strong>and</strong> such other countries as the m<strong>in</strong>ister may by order <strong>in</strong> the<br />

Gazette declare for the purposes <strong>of</strong> this Act, <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>cluded the<br />

Republic <strong>of</strong> Irel<strong>and</strong>”.<br />

The Act provides for the immunity <strong>of</strong> a chief representative <strong>of</strong><br />

a commonwealth country. He shall be entitled to immunity from<br />

suit <strong>and</strong> legal process <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> residence <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial<br />

archives as are accorded to a foreign envoy. 8 He is also entitled to<br />

such exemption from taxation from time to time, wholly or partly as<br />

accorded to foreign envoys <strong>and</strong> foreign <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers, by the<br />

M<strong>in</strong>ister <strong>of</strong> F<strong>in</strong>ance.<br />

8 Section 3


170<br />

4.2.3 Immunities <strong>of</strong> Members <strong>of</strong> Staff <strong>and</strong> Families<br />

The members <strong>of</strong> the <strong>of</strong>ficial <strong>and</strong> domestic staff <strong>of</strong> the chief<br />

representative <strong>of</strong> a commonwealth country also have immunity<br />

from suit <strong>and</strong> legal process. Members <strong>of</strong> the families <strong>of</strong> his <strong>of</strong>ficial<br />

staff <strong>and</strong> members <strong>of</strong> the families <strong>of</strong> the chief Representative <strong>of</strong> a<br />

commonwealth country are also entitled to immunity, <strong>and</strong> are also<br />

entitled to such time to time exemption from taxation as the chief<br />

representative <strong>of</strong> a commonwealth country. These immunities do<br />

not extend to such <strong>of</strong>ficial staffs who are citizens <strong>of</strong> Nigeria unless<br />

<strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> th<strong>in</strong>gs done or omitted to be done <strong>in</strong> the course <strong>of</strong><br />

performance <strong>of</strong> his duties. The Chief Representative <strong>of</strong> a<br />

commonwealth country can also waive these immunities without<br />

necessarily seek<strong>in</strong>g consent from his Government except <strong>in</strong> relation<br />

to him. The m<strong>in</strong>ister can also withdraw immunities if by his<br />

assessment, any personal immunities conferred by this Act exceed<br />

those accorded any Nigerian representative by any foreign power. 9<br />

4.2.4 Consular Immunity<br />

Consular immunity can also be conferred on persons <strong>in</strong> the<br />

service <strong>of</strong> the Government <strong>of</strong> any other commonwealth country;<br />

persons <strong>in</strong> the service <strong>of</strong> the Government <strong>of</strong> any territory for whose<br />

9 Section (8) see also Section 16


171<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational relations the Government <strong>of</strong> any such country is<br />

responsible. Such immunity shall cover immunity from suit <strong>and</strong><br />

legal process <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> residence <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial archives as<br />

accorded to foreign <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers. Such power to confer<br />

<strong>consular</strong> immunity by regulation lies with the governor-general,<br />

which he does from time to time, as he deems necessary or<br />

expedient. 10 Exemption from taxation also extends to a person<br />

upon whom <strong>consular</strong> immunity is conferred, <strong>and</strong> a member <strong>of</strong> his<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficial <strong>and</strong> domestic staff <strong>and</strong> their families, <strong>and</strong> members <strong>of</strong> his<br />

own family this exemption does not extend to a member <strong>of</strong> his<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficial or domestic staff if such person is a Nigerian <strong>and</strong> if such a<br />

person is not resident <strong>in</strong> Nigeria for the sole purpose <strong>of</strong> perform<strong>in</strong>g<br />

his duties. 11 Personal immunities as used <strong>in</strong> section 10 <strong>of</strong> the Act<br />

means immunity from suit or legal process (except <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong><br />

th<strong>in</strong>gs done or omitted to be done <strong>in</strong> the course <strong>of</strong> the performance<br />

<strong>of</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial duties) <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>clude <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> residence <strong>and</strong><br />

appearance before any court or other tribunal as a witness. 12<br />

By this <strong>in</strong>terpretation, no immunities are accorded any<br />

person except <strong>in</strong> the actual performance <strong>of</strong>f his <strong>of</strong>ficial duties if<br />

10 Section 20.<br />

11 Section 10.<br />

12 Section 22 (1)


172<br />

such person is a member <strong>of</strong> the domestic or <strong>of</strong>ficial staff <strong>of</strong> a foreign<br />

envoy; or a foreign <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficer; or a chief representative <strong>of</strong> a<br />

commonwealth country or a person upon whom <strong>consular</strong> immunity<br />

is conferred by regulation; or a person attend<strong>in</strong>g a commonwealth<br />

conference <strong>in</strong> Nigeria or a representative or <strong>of</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficer <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Government <strong>of</strong> any country other than Nigeria or <strong>of</strong> any provisional<br />

Government, national committee, or other authority recognized by<br />

the Government <strong>of</strong> Nigeria if he is temporarily resident <strong>in</strong> Nigeria <strong>in</strong><br />

accordance with any arrangement made with the Government <strong>of</strong><br />

Nigeria.<br />

Any person may waive any immunity or <strong>in</strong>violability conferred<br />

on him under regulation.<br />

4.2.5 Immunities <strong>of</strong> Commonwealth Representatives<br />

Immunities are also extended to commonwealth<br />

representatives attend<strong>in</strong>g conferences <strong>in</strong> Nigeria. Such persons<br />

shall have immunity from suit <strong>and</strong> legal process <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong><br />

residence <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial archives, along with their families <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial<br />

<strong>and</strong> domestic staff. These immunities will not commence until a list<br />

compris<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> the representative is compiled <strong>and</strong> published <strong>in</strong> a<br />

Gazette by the m<strong>in</strong>ister. This immunity also extends to such


173<br />

exemption from taxation as will be granted by the m<strong>in</strong>ister <strong>of</strong><br />

f<strong>in</strong>ance, from time to time, wholly or partly.<br />

Where a conference is held <strong>in</strong> Nigeria <strong>and</strong> is attended by<br />

representative <strong>of</strong> the Government or Governments <strong>of</strong> one or more<br />

foreign sovereign powers, the m<strong>in</strong>ister may by notice <strong>in</strong> Gazette<br />

direct that such representative be treated as if he were a foreign<br />

envoy <strong>and</strong> thereby enjoy privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities as such.<br />

Members <strong>of</strong> his <strong>of</strong>ficial staff also enjoy privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities<br />

from time to time as directed by the m<strong>in</strong>ister, as those enjoyed by<br />

members <strong>of</strong> the <strong>of</strong>ficial staff <strong>of</strong> a foreign envoy. The direction to<br />

enjoy such immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges arise only when it appears to<br />

the m<strong>in</strong>ister that doubts may arise as to the extent such<br />

representative <strong>and</strong> their <strong>of</strong>ficial staff are entitled to privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

Immunities. This does not however extend to the Federal or any<br />

regional Government <strong>of</strong> Nigeria. 13 Privileges, Immunities or<br />

<strong>in</strong>violabilities conferred any person by this section can be waived by<br />

such person. 14<br />

4.2.6 Honorary consuls<br />

Privileges are also extended to honorary consuls or trade<br />

commissioners. These privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities which were<br />

13 Section 14.<br />

14 Section 15.


174<br />

accorded honorary consuls <strong>and</strong> trade commissioners before the<br />

com<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>to operation <strong>of</strong> the Act are deemed not to be abrogated or<br />

restricted by the Act. These privileges after the commencement <strong>of</strong><br />

the Act fall with<strong>in</strong> the approval or not <strong>of</strong> the M<strong>in</strong>ister. His approval<br />

which should be <strong>in</strong> writ<strong>in</strong>g is required for the cont<strong>in</strong>uation <strong>of</strong> such<br />

privileges after the commencement <strong>of</strong> the Act.<br />

4.2.7 Immunities <strong>of</strong> International Organizations<br />

From the provisions <strong>of</strong> section 1(1), an organization is that<br />

which the M<strong>in</strong>ister by order declares to be an organization, the<br />

members <strong>of</strong> which are sovereign powers. An <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

organization shall have immunity from suit <strong>and</strong> legal process. And<br />

also <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> residence <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial archives <strong>of</strong> a foreign<br />

envoy. It shall also be exempted from taxation as granted by the<br />

M<strong>in</strong>ister from time to time wholly or partly, <strong>in</strong> relation to goods<br />

imported by the organization for its <strong>of</strong>ficial use <strong>in</strong> Nigeria, <strong>and</strong> also<br />

on the importation <strong>of</strong> any publications <strong>of</strong> the organization directly<br />

imported by it. An organization will also be exempted from<br />

prohibitions <strong>and</strong> restrictions on importation <strong>in</strong> the case <strong>of</strong> any<br />

publications directly imported or exported by it. This is however<br />

subject to compliance with such conditions as are prescribed by<br />

the Federal M<strong>in</strong>ister <strong>of</strong> Health <strong>in</strong> relation to public <strong>in</strong>terest. The


175<br />

organization also has the right to avail itself, for telegraphic<br />

communications sent by it <strong>and</strong> conta<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g any matter <strong>in</strong>tended for<br />

publication by the press.<br />

4.2.8 Immunities And Privileges <strong>of</strong> Representatives, Members <strong>of</strong><br />

Committee, Senior Officers, <strong>and</strong> persons on Missions<br />

The Second schedule to the Act outl<strong>in</strong>es immunities available<br />

to representatives <strong>of</strong> any <strong>of</strong> the organization, senior <strong>of</strong>ficers <strong>and</strong><br />

such persons employed on missions on behalf <strong>of</strong> the organization<br />

convened the organization or <strong>of</strong> any organ there<strong>of</strong>. 15 These<br />

categories <strong>of</strong> persons are entitled to immunity from suit <strong>and</strong> legal<br />

process as is accorded to a foreign envoy. They are also entitled to<br />

<strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> residence <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial archives as is accorded to a<br />

foreign envoy. They are also entitled to such exemption <strong>in</strong> relation<br />

to taxation as granted by the M<strong>in</strong>ister from time to time wholly or<br />

partly. 16<br />

4.2.9 Immunities <strong>and</strong> Privileges <strong>of</strong> Official Staff <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>of</strong> Senior Officer’s Families<br />

Section 22 (1) provides that “member <strong>of</strong> the family” <strong>in</strong> relation<br />

to any person to whom this Act applies, means the spouse or any<br />

child <strong>of</strong> that person. Immunity is extended to the <strong>of</strong>ficial staff <strong>of</strong><br />

15 Section 11 (2) (b)


176<br />

such Senior Officers, representatives <strong>and</strong> persons on mission on<br />

behalf <strong>of</strong> the organization as prescribed by the Second Schedule to<br />

this Act. And accord<strong>in</strong>gly immunity also extends to the members <strong>of</strong><br />

the family <strong>of</strong> an <strong>of</strong>ficer <strong>of</strong> the organization. This immunity is one<br />

from suit <strong>and</strong> legal process ad <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> residence <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial<br />

archives as accorded a foreign envoy. And also such exemption<br />

from taxation as accorded a foreign envoy. 17<br />

4.2.10 Immunities <strong>and</strong> Privileges <strong>of</strong> Other Classes<br />

<strong>of</strong> Officers <strong>and</strong> Servants:<br />

The Third Schedule confers immunities on other classes <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>of</strong>ficers <strong>and</strong> Servants <strong>of</strong> the organization. They have immunity from<br />

suit <strong>and</strong> legal process <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> th<strong>in</strong>gs done or omitted to be<br />

done <strong>in</strong> the course <strong>of</strong> the <strong>of</strong>ficial performance <strong>of</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial duties. They<br />

also enjoy exemption from taxation <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> emoluments<br />

received as <strong>of</strong>ficers or servants <strong>of</strong> the organization. They also enjoy<br />

exemption from taxes on the importation <strong>of</strong> furniture <strong>and</strong> effects<br />

imported at the time <strong>of</strong> first tak<strong>in</strong>g up post <strong>in</strong> Nigeria, the<br />

exemption to be subject to compliance with such conditions as the<br />

16 Section 14.<br />

17 See Fourth Schedule to the Act.


177<br />

Federal M<strong>in</strong>ister <strong>of</strong> F<strong>in</strong>ance may prescribe for the protection <strong>of</strong> the<br />

revenue. 18<br />

4.2.11 Immunities <strong>of</strong> Judges <strong>and</strong> Registrars <strong>of</strong> the ICJ:<br />

Section 12 provides “the M<strong>in</strong>ister from time to time, by order<br />

<strong>in</strong> the Gazette confer on the judges <strong>and</strong> registrars <strong>of</strong> the<br />

International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice established by the charter <strong>of</strong> the<br />

United Nations, <strong>and</strong> on suitors to that Court <strong>and</strong> their agents,<br />

councils, <strong>and</strong> advocates, such immunities, privileges, <strong>and</strong> facilities<br />

as may be required to effect to any resolution <strong>of</strong>, or convention<br />

approved by, the General Assembly <strong>of</strong> the United nations”.<br />

These privileges <strong>in</strong>clude exemption from stamp duty under<br />

the stamp Duties Act <strong>and</strong> from fee or duty charged under any Act,<br />

<strong>and</strong> from any duty chargeable under the law relat<strong>in</strong>g to customs<br />

<strong>and</strong> exercise any good belong<strong>in</strong>g to or acquired by any such<br />

organization or person.<br />

The Diplomatic Immunities <strong>and</strong> privilege Act, 1990, is<br />

constituted ma<strong>in</strong>ly by issues relat<strong>in</strong>g to or connected with<br />

<strong>in</strong>violability, immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> missions, staff<br />

<strong>of</strong> mission, <strong>in</strong>ternational organizations <strong>and</strong> persons connected<br />

therewith.<br />

18 Section 11


178<br />

A careful study <strong>of</strong> the Act reveals a reflection <strong>of</strong> the Vienna<br />

Convention on Diplomatic Relations <strong>of</strong> 1961 <strong>and</strong> to some extent,<br />

the Vienna Convention on Consular Relations <strong>of</strong> 1963 even though<br />

at the time <strong>of</strong> enact<strong>in</strong>g the Act, the 1963 Convention had not yet<br />

been enacted. Term<strong>in</strong>ologies differ to some extent however.<br />

For though the 1990 Act reflects reason ably the Vienna<br />

Convention both on <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations 1961 <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong><br />

relations 1963, there are certa<strong>in</strong> areas the Act has not expressly<br />

made provision for. The Act has made no provision relat<strong>in</strong>g to<br />

question <strong>of</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial communication, <strong>of</strong>ficial correspondence <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> bag <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission. In contrast, the 1961<br />

Convention has made elaborate provisions thereon <strong>in</strong> Article 27.<br />

The Act also <strong>in</strong> relation to taxation has given power to the<br />

M<strong>in</strong>ister <strong>of</strong> F<strong>in</strong>ance to from time to time wholly or partly exempt<br />

from public tax, duty, rate, levy, a foreign envoy or foreign <strong>consular</strong><br />

<strong>of</strong>ficer. This provision does not exactly reflect Article 49 <strong>of</strong> the 1963<br />

convention. But to some extent reflects Article 36 (1) (a) <strong>and</strong> (b) <strong>of</strong><br />

the 1961 Convention which provides that:<br />

The receiv<strong>in</strong>g state shall, <strong>in</strong> accordance with such<br />

laws <strong>and</strong> regulations as it may adopt, permit entry<br />

<strong>of</strong> <strong>and</strong> grant exemption from all custom duties,<br />

taxes…


179<br />

There is no express provision for such power to be conferred<br />

on an <strong>in</strong>dividual as it is <strong>in</strong> the Nigerian Act, conferred on the<br />

M<strong>in</strong>ister <strong>of</strong> F<strong>in</strong>ance. But the provision <strong>in</strong> Article 36 <strong>of</strong> the 1961<br />

Convention that states may adopt laws <strong>and</strong> regulations relat<strong>in</strong>g to<br />

the grant<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> exemption from taxation, justifies the law adopted<br />

<strong>in</strong> the 1990 Act.<br />

Section 1 <strong>of</strong> the Act <strong>of</strong> 1990 has provisions relat<strong>in</strong>g to<br />

immunity from suit <strong>and</strong> legal process <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> residence<br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficials achieves. These provisions reflect the <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong><br />

residence (Article 30) <strong>in</strong> the 1961 conventions, <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong><br />

archives (Art 24); privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>of</strong> private servants <strong>of</strong><br />

members <strong>of</strong> the mission (Art, 37 (4); privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>of</strong><br />

members <strong>of</strong> family <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent (Art, 37 (1)); immunity<br />

from crim<strong>in</strong>al, Civil <strong>and</strong> adm<strong>in</strong>istrative jurisdiction] (Art 31). There<br />

is also a reflection <strong>of</strong> the 1963 Convention on Consular Relations.<br />

These <strong>in</strong>clude <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> <strong>consular</strong> archives <strong>and</strong> documents (Art<br />

33); <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers (Art. 41). However Articles 41<br />

further provides that <strong>in</strong> cases <strong>of</strong> grave crime <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> pursuant to a<br />

decision by a competent judicial authority, a <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficer shall<br />

be liable to arrest <strong>and</strong> detention. The Nigerian Act <strong>of</strong> 1990 does not<br />

draw this exception but <strong>in</strong>stead accords unconditional immunity


180<br />

from legal process <strong>and</strong> suit <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>violability to <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers<br />

(Section1). The Convention on Consular Relations <strong>of</strong> 1963 also<br />

provides that where crim<strong>in</strong>al proceed<strong>in</strong>gs are <strong>in</strong>stituted aga<strong>in</strong>st a<br />

<strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficer he must appear before the competent authority.<br />

This is also not reflected <strong>in</strong> the Act.<br />

There is also no provision <strong>in</strong> either the convention on<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> relations or <strong>consular</strong> relations <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong><br />

Commonwealth countries <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational organizations. In<br />

contrast, there are elaborate provisions relat<strong>in</strong>g to the chief<br />

representatives <strong>of</strong> a Commonwealth country <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

organization. In fact, part 1 <strong>of</strong> the Act which is entitled “immunities<br />

<strong>of</strong> foreign envoys <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers”, is centered on immunities<br />

<strong>of</strong> chief representatives <strong>of</strong> a commonwealth country, members <strong>of</strong><br />

staff <strong>and</strong> families, <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>of</strong> commonwealth<br />

representatives. The whole <strong>of</strong> Part 11 <strong>of</strong> the Act is devoted to<br />

immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational organizations <strong>and</strong><br />

persons connected therewith. The immunity, <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>and</strong><br />

privileges accorded chief representatives <strong>of</strong> Commonwealth<br />

countries by the Act, are exactly the same with those accorded<br />

foreign envoys <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers.


181<br />

A study <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities Act <strong>of</strong><br />

1990 also reveals that it has not been properly composed. The<br />

provision <strong>in</strong> relation to Honorary Consuls or Trade Commissioners<br />

(Section10 (2)) is vague. No stipulation has been made concern<strong>in</strong>g<br />

the specific privileges <strong>of</strong> Honorary Consuls or Trade<br />

Commissioners, except that the Act does not abrogate such<br />

privileges as Section 10 (2) says. Sections that ought to have been<br />

placed one after another have been placed far apart <strong>and</strong> titles do<br />

not always make proper reference to the contents there<strong>in</strong>. An<br />

example here is the case concern<strong>in</strong>g immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges <strong>of</strong><br />

foreign envoys <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers, <strong>and</strong> chief representative <strong>of</strong><br />

commonwealth countries discussed above. This provision seems to<br />

suggest that foreign envoys <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers are same with<br />

chiefs <strong>of</strong>, <strong>and</strong> Governments <strong>of</strong> commonwealth countries.<br />

Too much power has also been given “The M<strong>in</strong>ister” <strong>and</strong> the<br />

M<strong>in</strong>ister <strong>of</strong> F<strong>in</strong>ance. The powers to charge, exempt, decl<strong>in</strong>e, direct,<br />

modify, declare confer, notify, revoke, amend, approve, etc.<br />

conferred on the two m<strong>in</strong>isters <strong>in</strong> Sections<br />

6,8,9,10,11,12,13,14,15,16,17,18 <strong>and</strong> 19, seem to leave too much<br />

to the determ<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> the two M<strong>in</strong>isters. These powers may not<br />

only be abused but may eventually lead to corruption.


182<br />

Privileges, Immunities <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>violability has been more<br />

carefully <strong>and</strong> neatly grouped <strong>in</strong> the Vienna conventions. The<br />

Nigerian Act makes assimilation tedious <strong>and</strong> difficult by scatter<strong>in</strong>g<br />

immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges <strong>of</strong> members <strong>of</strong> families <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

agents, members <strong>of</strong> technical <strong>and</strong> adm<strong>in</strong>istrative staff, members <strong>of</strong><br />

service staff, <strong>and</strong> private servants <strong>of</strong> members <strong>of</strong> mission <strong>and</strong> their<br />

families, <strong>in</strong> sections 1, 2 (1), 4, 6(1), 8, 9(1) (I) (j), 10 (1) (g), <strong>in</strong>stead<br />

<strong>of</strong> emulat<strong>in</strong>g the 1961 Convention which was <strong>in</strong> force before its<br />

enactment.<br />

Also the Governor – General mentioned <strong>in</strong> Section 20 rema<strong>in</strong>s<br />

unidentified throughout the Act. the <strong>in</strong>terpretation section – says<br />

noth<strong>in</strong>g concern<strong>in</strong>g him. And yet he plays the powerful role <strong>of</strong><br />

mak<strong>in</strong>g regulations from time to time as he th<strong>in</strong>ks necessary or<br />

expedient.<br />

By way <strong>of</strong> recommendations, the Act has out lived its<br />

usefulness. It should be reenacted reflect<strong>in</strong>g the Vienna convention<br />

on both Consular <strong>and</strong> Diplomatic Relations s<strong>in</strong>ce it was enacted<br />

before the Convention on Consular Relations 1963 came <strong>in</strong>to force<br />

<strong>and</strong> should not use such sweep<strong>in</strong>g words as “foreign envoys” <strong>and</strong><br />

“<strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers” to mean <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents or heads <strong>of</strong> mission,<br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers or head <strong>of</strong> <strong>consular</strong> post. It should reflect <strong>in</strong>


183<br />

terms, forms <strong>and</strong> pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> the conventions, s<strong>in</strong>ce Nigeria is a<br />

signatory to these conventions.<br />

It should also be a document that affords easy<br />

comprehension. Sections, parts, subsections should be used with<br />

precision <strong>and</strong> titles should reflect the sections thereunder. A study<br />

<strong>of</strong> the Act will reveal <strong>in</strong> greater detail the necessity <strong>of</strong> this<br />

recommendation.<br />

4.3 GENERAL SOURCES OF DIPLOMATIC AND CONSULAR<br />

LAW<br />

Diplomatic <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law is a branch <strong>of</strong> public<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law that governs <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> relationship<br />

between states <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational system. A discussion <strong>of</strong> the<br />

sources <strong>of</strong> Diplomatic <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law must start from sources <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>of</strong> which it is a vital part.<br />

The last <strong>and</strong> present centuries have witnessed a greater<br />

impetus to the development <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law than at any<br />

previous stage <strong>of</strong> its history. This is a natural result <strong>of</strong> the grow<strong>in</strong>g<br />

<strong>in</strong>terdependence <strong>of</strong> states, <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong> the vastly <strong>in</strong>creased <strong>in</strong>tercourse<br />

between them due to all k<strong>in</strong>ds <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ventions that overcome the<br />

difficulties <strong>of</strong> time, space <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>tellectual communication. New


184<br />

rules had to be found or devised to meet <strong>in</strong>numerable new<br />

situations.<br />

International law, as we know it today, is that <strong>in</strong>dispensable<br />

body <strong>of</strong> rules regulat<strong>in</strong>g for the most part <strong>of</strong> the relations between<br />

states, without which it would be virtually impossible for them to<br />

have steady <strong>and</strong> frequent <strong>in</strong>tercourse. In the absence <strong>of</strong> some<br />

system <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law, the <strong>in</strong>ternational society <strong>of</strong> states could<br />

not enjoy the benefits <strong>of</strong> trade <strong>and</strong> commerce, <strong>of</strong> exchange <strong>of</strong> ideas,<br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong> normal rout<strong>in</strong>e communication.<br />

Whereas previously the <strong>in</strong>ternational society could rely on the<br />

relatively slow process <strong>of</strong> custom for the formation <strong>of</strong> rules <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law, modern exigencies called for a speedier method<br />

<strong>of</strong> law mak<strong>in</strong>g, all <strong>of</strong> which now exist.<br />

The essence <strong>of</strong> this chapter is therefore to enumerate,<br />

exam<strong>in</strong>e <strong>and</strong> discuss sources <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>and</strong> the relevance<br />

<strong>of</strong> these sources to <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law, with a view to<br />

expos<strong>in</strong>g how they contribute to the development <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law. It is also <strong>in</strong>tended to determ<strong>in</strong>e the relationship between this<br />

branch <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>and</strong> municipal law <strong>of</strong> states consider<strong>in</strong>g<br />

the fact that the contents <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational agreements are


185<br />

actualized with<strong>in</strong> the municipal system where the diplomatists<br />

reside.<br />

4.4 THE CONCEPT OF SOURCES OF DIPLOMATIC AND<br />

CONSULAR LAW<br />

Accord<strong>in</strong>g to Gasiokwu:<br />

Any general <strong>in</strong>quiry <strong>in</strong>to the concept <strong>of</strong> sources <strong>of</strong>i<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law must <strong>in</strong> pr<strong>in</strong>ciple be<br />

l<strong>in</strong>ked with the sources <strong>of</strong> public <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law, the former be<strong>in</strong>g a branch <strong>of</strong> the later. 19<br />

The above is connotative <strong>of</strong> the fact that the concept <strong>of</strong> sources<br />

<strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law must <strong>in</strong>curably be l<strong>in</strong>ked with the<br />

sources <strong>of</strong> public <strong>in</strong>ternational law. This is because <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>consular</strong> law is a vital branch <strong>of</strong> public <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

says:<br />

Accord<strong>in</strong>g to J.G. Starke:<br />

The material „sources‟ <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law may be<br />

def<strong>in</strong>ed as the actual materials from which an<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational lawyer determ<strong>in</strong>es the rule<br />

applicable to a given situation. 20<br />

Comment<strong>in</strong>g on the above quotation by Starke, D.W Greig<br />

From the above, it is clear that „sources‟ is<br />

understood to mean evidence <strong>of</strong> applicable rule,<br />

which the lawyer can lean on <strong>in</strong> a given situation,<br />

which is where the relevant rules can be found. 21<br />

19 Gasiokwu, M.U <strong>and</strong> Dakas, C.J., Contemporary Issues <strong>and</strong> Basic Documents on Diplomatic <strong>and</strong><br />

Consular Law (<strong>Jos</strong>: Mono Exp. 1997) p. 36<br />

20 Starke, J. G., Introduction to International Law (9 th Ed.) (London: Butterworths; 1984) p.31<br />

21 Gaiokwu <strong>and</strong> Dakas, Loc. Lit.


186<br />

As follow-up to what has already been discussed, Salmond,<br />

attempts to expla<strong>in</strong> the dist<strong>in</strong>ction between „formal‟ <strong>and</strong> material<br />

„sources‟ <strong>in</strong> the follow<strong>in</strong>g terms:<br />

A formal source is that from which a rule <strong>of</strong> law<br />

derives its force <strong>and</strong> validity. The material sources, on<br />

the other h<strong>and</strong>, are those from which is derived the<br />

matter, not the validity <strong>of</strong> the law. The material source<br />

applies to the substance <strong>of</strong> the rule to which the<br />

formal source gives the force <strong>and</strong> the nature <strong>of</strong> law. 22<br />

Sequel to the above, for <strong>in</strong>stance, a rule will be legally b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g<br />

if it meets the requirements <strong>of</strong> a custom, which is a formal source<br />

<strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law, <strong>and</strong> its substance will be <strong>in</strong>dicated by state<br />

<strong>practice</strong>, which is the material source <strong>of</strong> the custom.<br />

G.I Tunk<strong>in</strong> expresses his views that:<br />

Sources …. are the f<strong>in</strong>al outcome <strong>of</strong> the normcreat<strong>in</strong>g<br />

process… it refers to the issue concern<strong>in</strong>g<br />

where… legal norms should be sought. 23<br />

Gasiokwu sums it up <strong>in</strong> the follow<strong>in</strong>g words:<br />

Consequently any <strong>in</strong>quiry <strong>in</strong>to sources <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>in</strong> general, <strong>and</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>consular</strong> law <strong>in</strong> particular should be construed to<br />

mean an <strong>in</strong>quiry concern<strong>in</strong>g where <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

legal norms should be located <strong>and</strong> hence which<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational norms are legally b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> which<br />

are not. 24<br />

22 Maclean, R. Public International Law, (15 th ed.) (The Commonwealth Law Book Programme; 1994) P.9<br />

23 Tunk<strong>in</strong>, G. I. (ed.), International Law, (Moscow: progress Publishers; 1982) P. 268<br />

24 Gasiokwu <strong>and</strong> Dakas, Loc. Cit.


187<br />

4.5 SOURCES OF GENERAL INTERNATIONAL LAW<br />

The present century has witnessed a greater impetus to the<br />

development <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law than any previous stage <strong>of</strong> its<br />

history. This is a natural result <strong>of</strong> the grow<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>terdependence <strong>of</strong><br />

states <strong>and</strong> the vast <strong>in</strong>creased <strong>in</strong>tercourse between them. The<br />

<strong>in</strong>crease <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>tercourse has become possible because <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ventions<br />

that have overcome the difficulties <strong>of</strong> time, space <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>tellectual<br />

communication. New rules had to be found or devised to meet<br />

<strong>in</strong>numerable situations.<br />

International law as we know it today is that <strong>in</strong>dispensable<br />

body <strong>of</strong> rules regulat<strong>in</strong>g for most part the relationship between<br />

states, without which it will be virtually impossible for them to have<br />

steady <strong>and</strong> frequent <strong>in</strong>tercourse. In fact, it is an expression <strong>of</strong> the<br />

necessity <strong>of</strong> their natural relationship. In the absence <strong>of</strong> some<br />

system <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law, the <strong>in</strong>ternational society <strong>of</strong> states could<br />

not enjoy the benefits <strong>of</strong> trade <strong>and</strong> commerce, exchange <strong>of</strong> ideas<br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong> normal rout<strong>in</strong>e communication.<br />

Whereas previously, <strong>in</strong>ternational society <strong>of</strong> states could rely<br />

on the relatively slow process <strong>of</strong> custom for the formation <strong>of</strong> rules <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law, modern exigencies call for a speedier method <strong>of</strong><br />

law mak<strong>in</strong>g all <strong>of</strong> which are now exist<strong>in</strong>g. This call for speedier


188<br />

method <strong>of</strong> law mak<strong>in</strong>g f<strong>in</strong>ally led to establishment <strong>of</strong> the<br />

International Law Commission under the auspices <strong>of</strong> the United<br />

Nations, for the codification <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law. This chapter<br />

therefore enumerates <strong>and</strong> exam<strong>in</strong>es these sources <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law, <strong>and</strong> to show how they contribute to the development <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

When referr<strong>in</strong>g to sources <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law, <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

lawyers usually beg<strong>in</strong> by reference to Article 38 <strong>of</strong> the Statute <strong>of</strong> the<br />

International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice. This provision, is adopted from the<br />

same Article <strong>in</strong> the Statute <strong>of</strong> the Permanent Court <strong>of</strong> International<br />

Justice which operated under the League <strong>of</strong> Nations system, is<br />

frequently regarded as enumerat<strong>in</strong>g all the sources <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law. While there is little doubt that Article 38(1) does embody the<br />

most important sources <strong>of</strong> law, it is <strong>in</strong>creas<strong>in</strong>gly becom<strong>in</strong>g the case<br />

that <strong>in</strong>ternational lawyers will have regard to <strong>in</strong>struments <strong>and</strong><br />

pr<strong>in</strong>ciples that do not fit <strong>in</strong>to this structure. General Assembly<br />

resolutions, <strong>in</strong>ternational trade <strong>practice</strong>, treaties not yet <strong>in</strong> force<br />

<strong>and</strong> pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> equity widely drawn are becom<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>creas<strong>in</strong>gly<br />

important additional sources <strong>of</strong> law. 25 It rema<strong>in</strong>s the case, however,<br />

that any exam<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> the sources <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law must<br />

25 Maclean, op. cit. P. 8 .


189<br />

beg<strong>in</strong> with an assessment <strong>of</strong> the provisions <strong>of</strong> Article 38(1) <strong>of</strong> the<br />

statute <strong>of</strong> the International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice.<br />

The Court, whose function is to decide <strong>in</strong> accordance with<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law such disputes as are submitted to it, shall apply:<br />

(a) International conventions, whether general or particular,<br />

establish<strong>in</strong>g rules expressly recognized by the contest<strong>in</strong>g<br />

states;<br />

(b) International custom, as evidence <strong>of</strong> a general <strong>practice</strong><br />

accepted as law;<br />

(c) The general pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> law recognized by civilized nation;<br />

(d) Subject to provisions <strong>of</strong> Article 59 judicial decisions <strong>and</strong> the<br />

teach<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>of</strong> the most highly qualified publicists <strong>of</strong> the various<br />

nations, as subsidiary means for the determ<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> rules <strong>of</strong><br />

law.<br />

The sources enumerated <strong>in</strong> Article 38(1) are not stated to<br />

represent a hierarchy but they do represent an order <strong>of</strong> importance,<br />

which <strong>in</strong> <strong>practice</strong> the court may be expected to observe. 26<br />

For <strong>in</strong>stance, if there is a dispute between two states, the first<br />

po<strong>in</strong>t an <strong>in</strong>ternational tribunal will exam<strong>in</strong>e will be the treaty<br />

govern<strong>in</strong>g the particular relationship breached, <strong>and</strong> if there is no<br />

treaty then custom will be exam<strong>in</strong>ed. But it is possible that neither<br />

26 Ibid.


190<br />

treaty nor custom may be apparent for the <strong>in</strong>ternational tribunal to<br />

base its decision upon. In such a situation an <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

tribunal will have recourse to the general pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law recognized by civilized nations. But if the conventions,<br />

<strong>practice</strong>s <strong>and</strong> pr<strong>in</strong>ciples are not clear from evidences <strong>of</strong> the<br />

contest<strong>in</strong>g states, the tribunal may resort to judicial decisions <strong>and</strong><br />

techniques <strong>of</strong> the most highly qualified publicists <strong>of</strong> the various<br />

nations as subsidiary means for the determ<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> the rules <strong>of</strong><br />

law.<br />

However, Gasiokwu cit<strong>in</strong>g P.K Menon says:<br />

27 Gasiokwu <strong>and</strong> Dakas, Op. cit P. 37<br />

From the word<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>of</strong> Article 38(d) <strong>of</strong> the statute <strong>of</strong><br />

the ICJ it is obvious that the sources <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law fall <strong>in</strong>to two categories, namely<br />

primary <strong>and</strong> subsidiary sources. The primary<br />

sources are (1) <strong>in</strong>ternational conventions, whether<br />

general or particular, establish<strong>in</strong>g rules expressly<br />

recognized by the contest<strong>in</strong>g states; (2)<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational customs, as evidence <strong>of</strong> a general<br />

<strong>practice</strong> accepted as law, <strong>and</strong> (3) the general<br />

pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> law recognized by civilized nations.<br />

The subsidiary sources…. Are judicial decisions<br />

<strong>and</strong> techniques <strong>of</strong> the most highly qualified<br />

publicists <strong>of</strong> the various nations? It is thus clear<br />

that the primary sources <strong>and</strong> the subsidiary<br />

sources are not placed on the same foot<strong>in</strong>g.<br />

Judicial decisions <strong>and</strong> techniques <strong>of</strong> publicists are<br />

not <strong>in</strong>dependent sources but are mere subsidiary<br />

means for the determ<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> rules <strong>of</strong> law? 27


191<br />

From the forego<strong>in</strong>g, the sources <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law can be<br />

categorized as follows:<br />

(i) Treaties<br />

(ii) Custom<br />

(iii) General pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> law recognized by civilized nations<br />

(iv) Judicial decisions <strong>and</strong> the writ<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>of</strong> em<strong>in</strong>ent jurists<br />

4.5.1 Treaties<br />

A treaty can be def<strong>in</strong>ed as an <strong>in</strong>ternational agreement<br />

between states or a state <strong>and</strong> other entities. The Vienna Convention<br />

on the law <strong>of</strong> Treaties, 1969, def<strong>in</strong>es a treaty as an agreement<br />

whereby two or more states establish or seek to establish a<br />

relationship between themselves governed by <strong>in</strong>ternational law 28.<br />

However a treaty is not just an agreement between states,<br />

there can be a treaty between states <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

organizations or non-state entity. Treaties are <strong>of</strong> two types:<br />

(a) Law mak<strong>in</strong>g treaties:<br />

These constitute direct sources <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law. Custom,<br />

which is the oldest source <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law, was lack<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong><br />

terms <strong>of</strong> regulat<strong>in</strong>g common <strong>in</strong>terests <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational society <strong>of</strong><br />

states. As a result, law-mak<strong>in</strong>g treaties were evolved to meet these<br />

28 Articule 2 vienna Convention on the Law <strong>of</strong> treaties 1969


192<br />

dem<strong>and</strong>s. From the 19 th century law-mak<strong>in</strong>g treaties were given a<br />

great applause.<br />

These treaties constra<strong>in</strong> rules <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law that are <strong>of</strong><br />

general or fairly general application.<br />

There is the United Nations Treaty series be<strong>in</strong>g compiled s<strong>in</strong>ce<br />

1946 by the United Nations. These series conta<strong>in</strong> treaties entered<br />

<strong>in</strong>to under the auspices <strong>of</strong> the United Nations. The United Nations<br />

Charter also enjo<strong>in</strong>s every member nation to register with its<br />

Secretariat any treaty entered <strong>in</strong>to with another country. Failure to<br />

comply with this though does not <strong>in</strong>validate the treaty, it leads to<br />

non recognition <strong>of</strong> the treaty by all the organs <strong>of</strong> the organization.<br />

A treaty may be bilateral; that is when it <strong>in</strong>volves only two<br />

contract<strong>in</strong>g parties, it is multilateral when it <strong>in</strong>volves more than<br />

two contract<strong>in</strong>g parties. A treaty b<strong>in</strong>ds only parties to it. Any non-<br />

party that <strong>in</strong>tends to be bound by the provisions <strong>of</strong> the treaty must<br />

<strong>in</strong>dicate <strong>in</strong>tention to be so bound.<br />

(b) Treaty contracts:<br />

These do not constitute direct source <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

They could be between parties or signatories or they may constitute<br />

particular law. This expla<strong>in</strong>s the use <strong>of</strong> the phrase, <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

conventions whether general or particular… appear<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> art 38(1)<br />

(1) <strong>of</strong> the ICJ statute.


193<br />

The dist<strong>in</strong>ction between law mak<strong>in</strong>g treaty <strong>and</strong> treaty contract<br />

is that, a treaty contract is more likely to be term<strong>in</strong>ated by the<br />

outbreak <strong>of</strong> war between the parties than a law mak<strong>in</strong>g treaty.<br />

Treaties are the major <strong>in</strong>struments <strong>of</strong> co-operation <strong>in</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational relations. Co-operation <strong>of</strong>ten <strong>in</strong>volves a change <strong>in</strong> the<br />

relative positions <strong>of</strong> the states <strong>in</strong>volved. For <strong>in</strong>stance, rich nations<br />

give f<strong>in</strong>ancial support to poor nations.<br />

Treaties are <strong>of</strong>ten used as <strong>in</strong>strument <strong>of</strong> change <strong>and</strong> to some<br />

extent treaties have begun to replace customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

Where there is an agreement about rules <strong>of</strong> customary<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law, they are codified by rules <strong>of</strong> treaty. Where there<br />

is a disagreement or uncerta<strong>in</strong>ty, states tend to settle disputes by<br />

ad hoc compromises, which also take the form <strong>of</strong> treaties.<br />

4.5.2 Custom<br />

S<strong>in</strong>ce ancient times, rules <strong>of</strong> custom evolved after a long<br />

historical process result<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> their recognition <strong>and</strong> acceptance by<br />

the <strong>in</strong>ternational community as law. Custom is said to be the oldest<br />

<strong>and</strong> most important source <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law. However, certa<strong>in</strong><br />

factors have reduced the importance <strong>of</strong> customs as a source <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law. These factors are:


194<br />

(a) The unprecedented <strong>in</strong>crease <strong>in</strong> the number <strong>of</strong> treaties by<br />

states <strong>in</strong> the last century.<br />

(b) The codification <strong>of</strong> rules <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law, as<br />

law mak<strong>in</strong>g treaties by the International Law Commission.<br />

(c) Evidence <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law can be found <strong>in</strong> the<br />

actual <strong>practice</strong> <strong>of</strong> states.<br />

This can be found <strong>in</strong> published materials on <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

relations between states, from statements made by government<br />

spokesmen, press releases at <strong>in</strong>ternational conferences <strong>and</strong> also<br />

from state laws <strong>and</strong> judicial decisions <strong>of</strong> municipal courts.<br />

Evidence <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law may sometimes be found<br />

<strong>in</strong> the writ<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational lawyers <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> judgements <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational tribunals, which are mentioned as subsidiary means<br />

for determ<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> rules <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>in</strong> Article 38 (1) (d) <strong>of</strong><br />

the ICJ Statute.<br />

A case <strong>in</strong> po<strong>in</strong>t <strong>in</strong> is the Pacquette Habana 29. In this case, the<br />

United States Supreme Court after exam<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g with great care <strong>and</strong><br />

precision <strong>of</strong> all the available facts <strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g treaties, state <strong>practice</strong>s,<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> correspondences, municipal courts‟ decisions <strong>and</strong> the<br />

writ<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>of</strong> jurists accepted the existence <strong>of</strong> a valid customary rule.<br />

29 (1900) 175 us 677, 700-7001.


195<br />

Similarly, <strong>in</strong> 1963 the British Government had adopted a number<br />

<strong>of</strong> regulations for the prevention <strong>of</strong> collision at the sea. In 1864, the<br />

American Congress virtually adopted the same regulations, as did<br />

most <strong>of</strong> the maritime states with<strong>in</strong> a short span <strong>of</strong> time. So when a<br />

British ship, the Scotia collided <strong>in</strong> mid ocean with the Berkshire,<br />

an American vessel, which was not carry<strong>in</strong>g the lights required by<br />

the new regulations <strong>and</strong> as a result <strong>of</strong> the collision, the Berkshire<br />

sunk. The bone <strong>of</strong> contention was whether the courts should apply<br />

the new customary rules that had evolved from the adoption <strong>of</strong> the<br />

British rules, or the general maritime rules, which were <strong>in</strong> force<br />

before the British regulations. In opt<strong>in</strong>g to apply the new rules to<br />

the case the United State Supreme Court lay<strong>in</strong>g the fault on the<br />

Berkshire said:<br />

It is not giv<strong>in</strong>g to the new statutes <strong>of</strong> any nation<br />

extraterritorial effect, it is not treat<strong>in</strong>g them as<br />

general maritime laws, but it is the recognition <strong>of</strong><br />

the historical fact that by common consent <strong>of</strong><br />

mank<strong>in</strong>d these rules have been acquiesced <strong>in</strong> as<br />

<strong>of</strong> general obligation. Of that fact we th<strong>in</strong>k we may<br />

take judicial notice. 30<br />

Similarly, <strong>of</strong>ficial or military manuals may <strong>in</strong>dicate the<br />

existence <strong>of</strong> a course <strong>of</strong> conduct followed by states concern<strong>in</strong>g<br />

military affairs. In Rv Keyn 31, Lord Coleridge clarified the question<br />

<strong>of</strong> evidence <strong>of</strong> custom <strong>in</strong> the follow<strong>in</strong>g terms:<br />

30 The Scotia (1871) 14 Wallace 170.<br />

31 (1876) 2 EXD 63


196<br />

The law <strong>of</strong> nations is that collection <strong>of</strong> usages<br />

which civilized states have agreed to observe <strong>in</strong><br />

the deal<strong>in</strong>gs with one another. What these usages<br />

are whether a particular one has or has not been<br />

agreed must be a matter <strong>of</strong> evidence. Treaties <strong>and</strong><br />

acts <strong>of</strong> states are but evidence <strong>of</strong> the agreement <strong>of</strong><br />

nations. And do not <strong>in</strong> this country at least per se<br />

b<strong>in</strong>d the tribunal. Neither certa<strong>in</strong>ly does the<br />

consensus <strong>of</strong> jurists, but is evidence <strong>of</strong> agreement<br />

<strong>of</strong> nations on <strong>in</strong>ternational po<strong>in</strong>ts <strong>and</strong> on such<br />

po<strong>in</strong>ts when they arise, the English courts will<br />

give effect as part <strong>of</strong> English law to such<br />

agreements 32<br />

Treaties too can be evidence <strong>of</strong> customary law. If a treaty<br />

claims to be declaratory <strong>of</strong> customary law, or is <strong>in</strong>tended to codify<br />

customary law, it can be quoted as evidence <strong>of</strong> customary law even<br />

aga<strong>in</strong>st a state that is not a party to the treaty. Such a state is not<br />

bound by the treaty but by customary law. If such a state can<br />

produce other evidence to show that the treaty misrepresents<br />

customary law, it can disregard the rule stated <strong>in</strong> the treaty. (This<br />

possibility applies only to non-state parties to the treaty.) There is<br />

also the likelihood that customary law may metamorphose <strong>in</strong> order<br />

to conform to an earlier treaty.<br />

For <strong>in</strong>stance, the declaration <strong>of</strong> Paris 1856 altered certa<strong>in</strong><br />

rules about the conduct <strong>of</strong> war at sea. As a treaty, it only applies<br />

between parties to it. Subsequently however, the rules conta<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong><br />

32 R.V. Keyn (1876) 2 EXD 63


197<br />

the declaration were accepted by a large number <strong>of</strong> other states as<br />

rules <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

A resolution passed at a meet<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> an <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

organization is not conclusive evidence <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law.<br />

It has been exam<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong> conjunction with all the other<br />

available evidence <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law. It may thus be<br />

possible to prove that the resolution is not a correct state <strong>of</strong><br />

customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

4.5.3 Elements <strong>of</strong> custom<br />

There are certa<strong>in</strong> constitutive elements, which are required<br />

for the evolution <strong>of</strong> the pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

There are certa<strong>in</strong> tests, which will have to be satisfied by a <strong>practice</strong><br />

before it can assume a rule <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

These <strong>in</strong>clude:<br />

(a) The problem <strong>of</strong> repetition (uniformity <strong>and</strong> consistency)<br />

It is an established pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> law that a s<strong>in</strong>gle precedent is<br />

not sufficient for the creation <strong>of</strong> a rule <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law, which is usually formed by a constant <strong>and</strong> reciprocal <strong>practice</strong>.<br />

Thus <strong>in</strong> the Asylum case, 33 a Peruvian national who was charged<br />

33 ICJ Reports (1950) 276


198<br />

with the <strong>of</strong>fence <strong>of</strong> rebellion sought refuge <strong>in</strong> the Colombian<br />

embassy <strong>in</strong> Peru. A Convention on asylum between Colombia <strong>and</strong><br />

Peru provided that a political fugitive granted asylum was entitled<br />

to safe conduct to enable him leave the country. The Peruvian<br />

government rejected the Colombian government contention that it<br />

was for the state grant<strong>in</strong>g asylum to make a decision b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g on<br />

the territorial state as to the nature <strong>of</strong> the <strong>of</strong>fence for which the<br />

fugitive was be<strong>in</strong>g tried. The ICJ cit<strong>in</strong>g the provisions <strong>of</strong> Art 38 <strong>of</strong><br />

its Statute held that a customary rule must be based on “a<br />

constant <strong>and</strong> uniform usage".<br />

The court refused to recognize the existence <strong>of</strong> a custom as<br />

claimed by Colombia. The grounds were that the evidence disclosed<br />

so much uncerta<strong>in</strong>ty <strong>in</strong> the exercise <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> asylum <strong>and</strong> the<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficial views expressed on several occasions that it was impossible<br />

to discern any constant <strong>and</strong> uniform usage that might give rise to a<br />

custom.<br />

It can be deduced from the decision <strong>of</strong> the court that what<br />

prevented the formation <strong>of</strong> a rule <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>in</strong><br />

the Asylum case 34 was not the absence <strong>of</strong> repetition, but the<br />

presence <strong>of</strong> major <strong>in</strong>consistencies <strong>in</strong> the <strong>practice</strong>. On the other<br />

34 ICJ Reports (1950) p 276


199<br />

h<strong>and</strong>, m<strong>in</strong>or <strong>in</strong>consistencies <strong>in</strong> the <strong>practice</strong> do not prevent the<br />

creation <strong>of</strong> a rule <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law 35. However, <strong>in</strong> the<br />

case <strong>of</strong> the United States Nationals <strong>in</strong> Morocco, the ICJ held that<br />

where there is no <strong>practice</strong> which, goes aga<strong>in</strong>st an alleged rule <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law, a very small amount <strong>of</strong> <strong>practice</strong> is sufficient to<br />

create a rule <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law 36.<br />

b) Generality <strong>of</strong> <strong>practice</strong><br />

Under the provisions <strong>of</strong> Article 38 (1) <strong>of</strong> the ICJ Statute, it<br />

appears that the <strong>practice</strong> has to be universal before it can be<br />

accepted as general. It is a fact that it is difficult to formulate any<br />

def<strong>in</strong>ite rule as to the number <strong>of</strong> states, which must adopt a<br />

<strong>practice</strong> before a rule <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law, can be<br />

created. However, the courts have been given a wide <strong>and</strong><br />

undeterred discretion to determ<strong>in</strong>e the number <strong>and</strong> importance <strong>of</strong><br />

states whose participation is necessary for creat<strong>in</strong>g rules <strong>of</strong><br />

customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law. A state that relies on a custom has<br />

the obligation to whom to the satisfaction <strong>of</strong> the court that the<br />

custom is <strong>of</strong> general application. 37 In this case, British fishermen<br />

had been fish<strong>in</strong>g over the coast <strong>of</strong> Norway s<strong>in</strong>ce 1906 <strong>and</strong> at<br />

35 Ango-Norwagian Fisheries case ICJ Reports (1950) 276<br />

36 Akehurst, M A Modern Introduction to International Law (London : George Allen & Unw<strong>in</strong> ; (1978) p28<br />

37 The Anglo-Norwagian Fisheries Case ICJ Report (1950) p276


200<br />

different times certa<strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>cidents led to <strong>diplomatic</strong> exchanges about<br />

Norway‟s coastal limits. The Norwegian limit <strong>of</strong> four miles <strong>of</strong><br />

territorial sea had been established by Royal Decree <strong>in</strong> 1812 <strong>and</strong><br />

later Decrees <strong>of</strong> 1869, 1881 <strong>and</strong> 1889 cont<strong>in</strong>ued the policy <strong>of</strong> 1812.<br />

By a Decree <strong>of</strong> July 12 1935, Norway applied the system <strong>in</strong> a<br />

stricter manner than before. The United K<strong>in</strong>gdom contested the<br />

validity <strong>of</strong> the new l<strong>in</strong>e after a series <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>cidents <strong>in</strong>volv<strong>in</strong>g British<br />

vessels. The UK had not formally protested the position <strong>of</strong> the<br />

basel<strong>in</strong>e until 1933 <strong>and</strong> its silence was taken as acquiescence.<br />

b) Op<strong>in</strong>io juris sive necessitis<br />

This is the psychological conviction on the part <strong>of</strong> the states<br />

that a certa<strong>in</strong> form <strong>of</strong> conduct is required by <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

Rules <strong>of</strong> customary International law evolve from similar <strong>and</strong><br />

repeated <strong>practice</strong>s <strong>of</strong> states repeated with conscious conviction <strong>of</strong><br />

the parties that they are act<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> the fulfillment <strong>of</strong> a legal<br />

obligation.<br />

It is however difficult draw<strong>in</strong>g dist<strong>in</strong>ction between permission<br />

<strong>and</strong> rules impos<strong>in</strong>g duties as was illustrated <strong>in</strong> the Lotus case 38.<br />

In this case, as a result <strong>of</strong> negligence on the part <strong>of</strong> the<br />

French naval <strong>of</strong>ficer, a French merchant ship collided with a<br />

38 PCIJ Reports (1927) p28


201<br />

Turkish merchant ship. As a Turkish rule, crim<strong>in</strong>al prosecution <strong>in</strong><br />

matters <strong>of</strong> collision with respect to persons belong<strong>in</strong>g to a ship<br />

could be brought only before the court <strong>of</strong> the state whose flag the<br />

ship flew. France therefore had no jurisdiction to try the <strong>of</strong>ficer for<br />

manslaughter.<br />

The issue was whether Turkey had jurisdiction to try the<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficer. The PCIJ accepted the Turkish argument that there was<br />

permissive rule empower<strong>in</strong>g Turkey to try the <strong>of</strong>ficer. Similarly, <strong>in</strong><br />

the North Sea Cont<strong>in</strong>ental shelf cases, 39 the ICJ <strong>in</strong>sisted on strict<br />

pro<strong>of</strong> <strong>of</strong> op<strong>in</strong>io juris. In this case, the rule <strong>in</strong> Article 6 <strong>of</strong> the Geneva<br />

Convention on the Cont<strong>in</strong>ental Shelf 1958, concern<strong>in</strong>g equi-distance<br />

special circumstances Pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> delimit<strong>in</strong>g the cont<strong>in</strong>ental shelf<br />

was held by the court not to have become a rule <strong>of</strong> customary<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law merely on the grounds <strong>of</strong> subsequent <strong>practice</strong><br />

based on the convention.<br />

In order for a rule <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law to develop,<br />

it must have at some stage been possible to discern from the<br />

conduct <strong>of</strong> a group <strong>of</strong> states that they should act <strong>in</strong> that way.<br />

39 ICJ Reports (1969) p3


d) Duration <strong>of</strong> a <strong>practice</strong><br />

202<br />

The question <strong>of</strong>ten arises as to the length <strong>of</strong> time required<br />

before a rule will be accepted as a customary rule <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law. Where there is consistency, the period <strong>of</strong> time over which a<br />

given <strong>practice</strong> has been adhered to is a relevant, though seldom<br />

vital factor. Usually, a long established usage will be more readily<br />

accepted by a tribunal as giv<strong>in</strong>g rise to a rule <strong>of</strong> customary<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

Certa<strong>in</strong> rules have developed fairly quickly <strong>and</strong> matured from<br />

a short time <strong>of</strong> <strong>practice</strong> <strong>in</strong>to customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

4.5.4 General pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> law recognized by civilized nations<br />

The <strong>in</strong>sertion <strong>of</strong> this phrase <strong>in</strong> the ICJ statute came <strong>in</strong> order<br />

to provide a solution <strong>in</strong> cases where treaties <strong>and</strong> custom provide no<br />

guidance. It was feared that the court might be unable to decide<br />

some cases because <strong>of</strong> lacunae <strong>in</strong> treaty law <strong>and</strong> customary law.<br />

The phrase is however not def<strong>in</strong>ed anywhere <strong>in</strong> the statute. This<br />

has given room for several speculations as to the so-called “civilized<br />

nations” <strong>and</strong> the recognized pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> law”. As regards the<br />

“Civilized nations,” it is op<strong>in</strong>ed that <strong>in</strong> the early period <strong>of</strong><br />

development, <strong>in</strong>ternational law was dom<strong>in</strong>ated if not exclusively<br />

dictated by European states. These states were the repository <strong>of</strong>


203<br />

civilization, it is therefore not out <strong>of</strong> place to believe that the<br />

drafters <strong>of</strong> the ICJ Statute had these countries <strong>in</strong> m<strong>in</strong>d.<br />

However, so many events have taken place s<strong>in</strong>ce then<br />

therefore, alter<strong>in</strong>g the monopoly <strong>of</strong> knowledge hitherto held by<br />

these European countries. And many other countries <strong>of</strong> the world<br />

<strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g Africa now serve <strong>in</strong> the same <strong>in</strong>ternational organizations<br />

with these countries, it may be argued that they can rightly claim<br />

to belong to the “civilized nations”.<br />

Concern<strong>in</strong>g the “general pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> law”, the ICJ <strong>and</strong> other<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational tribunals have tried to make some pronouncements<br />

on what the phrase means. In as much as these pronouncements<br />

are not consistent, they helped to give an <strong>in</strong>sight <strong>in</strong>to what the<br />

phrase is all about. Some decisions <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational tribunals<br />

suggest that these pr<strong>in</strong>ciples refer to those applicable <strong>in</strong> municipal<br />

courts. In the Damage to Portuguese Colonies <strong>in</strong> South Africa, 40 It<br />

was stated:<br />

40 (1928) Arbitration 2 RTAA 13 101<br />

That the absence <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law applicable to<br />

the case, the arbitrators consider that they should<br />

fill the gap by decid<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> accordance with<br />

pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> equality, while keep<strong>in</strong>g with<strong>in</strong> the<br />

spirit <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law, applied by analogy, <strong>and</strong><br />

tak<strong>in</strong>g account <strong>of</strong> its evolution.


204<br />

Generally speak<strong>in</strong>g, the phrase has been def<strong>in</strong>ed to mean:<br />

(a) General pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law; <strong>and</strong><br />

(b) General Pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> municipal law<br />

4.5.5 Judicial decisions<br />

The <strong>in</strong>ternational court <strong>of</strong> justice, which took over from its<br />

predecessor, the Permanent Court <strong>of</strong> International Justice, is about<br />

the only exist<strong>in</strong>g permanent World Court with a general<br />

jurisdiction. The judgements <strong>and</strong> advisory op<strong>in</strong>ions <strong>of</strong> the Court<br />

have helped <strong>in</strong> no little way towards the development <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law. This is despite the fact that the decisions <strong>of</strong> the<br />

court do not create precedents <strong>of</strong> general b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g force. Article 59<br />

<strong>of</strong> the ICJ Statute is very explicit on this. The Article is to the effect<br />

that, the decision <strong>of</strong> the court <strong>in</strong> any matter b<strong>in</strong>ds the parties <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong> respect to the particular dispute only. The Court has however<br />

cont<strong>in</strong>ued to draw <strong>in</strong>spiration from its past decisions as a way <strong>of</strong><br />

analogy <strong>and</strong> guidance.<br />

Municipal court decisions do also help <strong>in</strong> throw<strong>in</strong>g light to<br />

several <strong>in</strong>ternational law issues especially as are perceived by<br />

states.


205<br />

4.5.6 Writ<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>of</strong> em<strong>in</strong>ent jurists<br />

The world „publicists‟ as enshr<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong> the provisions <strong>of</strong> Article<br />

38(1) (d) <strong>of</strong> the ICJ Statute means learned writers.<br />

Like judicial decisions, writ<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>of</strong> jurists can be evidence <strong>of</strong><br />

rules <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law. They also help <strong>in</strong> develop<strong>in</strong>g<br />

new rules <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

4.5.7 Equity <strong>and</strong> natural justice<br />

Equity is used here as a synonym for justice. Those who look<br />

up to equity as a source <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>of</strong>ten appeal to natural<br />

law <strong>in</strong> order to strengthen their argument <strong>and</strong> to avoid accusation<br />

<strong>of</strong> subjectivism.<br />

Thus, the three terms, equity, natural justices <strong>and</strong> good<br />

conscience tend to merge <strong>in</strong>to one another. Dur<strong>in</strong>g the 16 th <strong>and</strong><br />

17 th centuries, natural law was a major source <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

Some times judges <strong>and</strong> arbitrators do <strong>in</strong>voke equitable<br />

considerations. A judge or an arbitrator can always use equality to<br />

<strong>in</strong>terpret or fill gaps <strong>in</strong> the law but he may not give a decision ex<br />

aequo et bono (that is accord<strong>in</strong>g to the concepts <strong>of</strong> justice <strong>and</strong><br />

fairness), unless he has been expressly authorized to do so.<br />

Whatever the position may have been <strong>in</strong> the past, it is<br />

doubtful whether equity forms a source <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law today.


206<br />

Lawyers <strong>and</strong> judges <strong>in</strong> municipal courts frequently appeal to<br />

considerations <strong>of</strong> equity <strong>and</strong> justice when the authorities are<br />

divided on a po<strong>in</strong>t <strong>of</strong> law, but that does not lead to equity be<strong>in</strong>g<br />

regarded as a source <strong>of</strong> municipal law or <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

4.5.8 Hierarchy <strong>of</strong> sources<br />

There is much argument as to weather the sources <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law are mentioned <strong>in</strong> a hierarchical order by Article<br />

38(1) <strong>of</strong> the Statutes <strong>of</strong> the International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice.<br />

The views have always ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong>ed that the sources are not<br />

mentioned <strong>in</strong> a hierarchical order but ma<strong>in</strong>ly complementary <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>terrelated 41.<br />

S<strong>in</strong>ce the 19 th century, treaties have come to play an<br />

important role <strong>in</strong> the development <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law. It has been<br />

accepted that treaties are more superior <strong>in</strong> the development <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law. The question <strong>of</strong>ten aris<strong>in</strong>g is as regards what<br />

happens <strong>in</strong> situations where there is a conflict between a treaty <strong>and</strong><br />

an accepted or established pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law. In the SS<br />

Wimbledon case, the PCIJ held that the treaty should take<br />

precedence over customary rules <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law. However,<br />

problems may arise where a custom has been clearly established<br />

<strong>and</strong> then a treaty cover<strong>in</strong>g the same subject comes <strong>in</strong>to force. The<br />

41 Nicaraguav United States <strong>of</strong> America (1986) ICJ Reports 14


207<br />

provisions <strong>of</strong> the treaty takes precedence, provided at least by the<br />

Vienna convention on the Law <strong>of</strong> Treaties, 1969, they are not <strong>in</strong><br />

conflict with peremptory norms <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law referred to as<br />

jus cogens. Treaties like the Vienna Convention on the Diplomatic<br />

Relations, 1961 <strong>and</strong> on the Law <strong>of</strong> the Sea, 1982 codified exist<strong>in</strong>g<br />

rules <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

When a treaty first comes <strong>in</strong>to force it overrides customary<br />

law as between the parties to the treaty. One <strong>of</strong> the reasons why<br />

countries enter <strong>in</strong>to treaties is that they regard rules <strong>of</strong> customary<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law on the subject as <strong>in</strong>adequate. Where a treaty<br />

cases be<strong>in</strong>g used, a new rule <strong>of</strong> customary law usually emerges.<br />

Thus treaties <strong>and</strong> custom are equal <strong>in</strong> authority the later <strong>in</strong> time<br />

prevails.<br />

S<strong>in</strong>ce general pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> law is to fill any gaps <strong>in</strong> treaty law<br />

<strong>and</strong> customary law, it is implied that general pr<strong>in</strong>ciples are<br />

subord<strong>in</strong>ate to treaty law <strong>and</strong> customary law, that is treaty law <strong>and</strong><br />

customary law prevail over general pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> law <strong>in</strong> the event <strong>of</strong><br />

conflict.<br />

Under the provisions <strong>of</strong> Article 38 (1) (d) <strong>of</strong> the statute,<br />

judicial decisions <strong>and</strong> writ<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> publists have been described as<br />

“subsidiary means for the determ<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> rules <strong>of</strong> law”. This<br />

suggests that they are subord<strong>in</strong>ate to treaty law, customary law


208<br />

<strong>and</strong> general pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> law. Judicial decisions normally carry<br />

more weight than writ<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>of</strong> em<strong>in</strong>ent jurists but there is no hard<br />

<strong>and</strong> fast rule, much depends on quality <strong>of</strong> the reason<strong>in</strong>g which the<br />

judge or writer employs. It is doubtful whether equity is a source <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law at all today. Even if it is, existence <strong>of</strong> such doubts<br />

would appear to <strong>in</strong>dicate that it is at most a very low-rank<strong>in</strong>g<br />

source.<br />

4.5.9 Peremptory norms <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law: jus cogens<br />

It has been seen that <strong>in</strong>ternational law developed from the<br />

consistent <strong>practice</strong>s <strong>and</strong> usages <strong>of</strong> states. These <strong>practice</strong>s <strong>and</strong><br />

usages through the passage <strong>of</strong> time, consistency <strong>and</strong> psychological<br />

expectations crystallized <strong>in</strong>to a body <strong>of</strong> rules <strong>of</strong> conduct recognized<br />

as law. From these processes, certa<strong>in</strong> behavioural patterns<br />

expected <strong>of</strong> states became established that their non-observance is<br />

no longer permissible by <strong>in</strong>ternational community. This is what<br />

underlies the concept <strong>of</strong> jus cogens. Though it predates the Vienna<br />

Convention on the Law <strong>of</strong> Treaties <strong>of</strong> 1969, the Convention<br />

recognized its existence <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>corporated <strong>of</strong> 1969; the Convention<br />

recognized its existence <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>corporated it. For the purpose <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Convention, it is def<strong>in</strong>ed as,<br />

A body <strong>of</strong> peremptory pr<strong>in</strong>ciples or norms from<br />

which derogation is not permitted <strong>and</strong> which may


209<br />

therefore operate to <strong>in</strong>validate a treaty or an<br />

agreement between states to the extent <strong>of</strong> the<br />

<strong>in</strong>consistency with any <strong>of</strong> such pr<strong>in</strong>ciples or<br />

norms. 42<br />

The concept draws analogy from the municipal law doctr<strong>in</strong>e <strong>of</strong><br />

public policy, which at common law renders any contract, which<br />

<strong>of</strong>fends it to be void. Like public policy, jus cogens presents a<br />

problem <strong>of</strong> precise def<strong>in</strong>ition but is usually used as a basis <strong>of</strong><br />

void<strong>in</strong>g treaty obligations that are onerous or as a means <strong>of</strong><br />

exercis<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>terference <strong>in</strong> domestic jurisdiction.<br />

Under customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law, jus cogens means the<br />

body <strong>of</strong> those general rules <strong>of</strong> law whose non-observance may affect<br />

the very essence <strong>of</strong> the legal system which they belong, to such an<br />

extent that the subject <strong>of</strong> law may not be under pa<strong>in</strong> <strong>of</strong> absolute<br />

nullity depart from them <strong>in</strong> virtue <strong>of</strong> particular agreement. 43<br />

One major problem <strong>of</strong> the concept is the difficulty <strong>of</strong> its<br />

identification. It is generally accepted that new peremptory norms<br />

can emerge 44. This presupposes that it can develop just like other<br />

rules <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

However, there is lack <strong>of</strong> consensus as to the pr<strong>in</strong>ciples that<br />

constitute norms <strong>of</strong> jus cogens. Some <strong>of</strong> the generally accepted<br />

42 Article 53 <strong>of</strong> the Convention on the Law <strong>of</strong> Treaties <strong>of</strong> 1969.<br />

43 S<strong>in</strong>mclair, I.M. The Vienna Convention on the Law <strong>of</strong> Treaties, 1969 p3<br />

44 Article 64 <strong>of</strong> the 1969 Convention


210<br />

norms <strong>in</strong>clude prohibition aga<strong>in</strong>st the threat or use <strong>of</strong> force, the<br />

doctr<strong>in</strong>e <strong>of</strong> pacta sunt serv<strong>and</strong>a.<br />

It has also been suggested that the pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> equality <strong>of</strong><br />

states, <strong>and</strong> peaceful settlement <strong>of</strong> disputes constitute norms <strong>of</strong> jus<br />

cogens.<br />

These norms are conditioned by the <strong>in</strong>terest <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

community as a whole. It can therefore render <strong>in</strong>operative usages<br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>practice</strong>s, which conflict with it 45. But even <strong>in</strong> this area, the<br />

controversy surround<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>ternational law due to doctr<strong>in</strong>al<br />

deference rears its head. Schwarzenberger, an extreme positivist is<br />

<strong>of</strong> the view that, the evidence <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law on the level <strong>of</strong><br />

unorganized <strong>in</strong>ternational society fails to bear out any claim for the<br />

existence <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational jus cogens 46.<br />

He reiterates the arguments <strong>of</strong> the positivist by say<strong>in</strong>g that<br />

the absence <strong>of</strong> central government with courts <strong>of</strong> coercive <strong>and</strong><br />

compulsory jurisdiction to formulate rules ak<strong>in</strong> to those <strong>of</strong> public<br />

policy on the national level denies any mean<strong>in</strong>gful comparison<br />

between the two.<br />

45 Starke, JG Introduction to International Law (London: Butterworths; 1977) p65<br />

46 Shwarsemberger, G. International law <strong>and</strong> Order p29


211<br />

4.5.10 Resolutions <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational organizations<br />

One aspect not mentioned by Article 38 (1) <strong>of</strong> the Statue <strong>of</strong><br />

the International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice as a source <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law<br />

but one that needs mention are the resolutions adopted on the floor<br />

<strong>of</strong> International organizations, especially the United Nations<br />

Organization, which has become very dom<strong>in</strong>ant <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

sphere.<br />

International organizations are a relatively recent<br />

phenomenon <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law. Their entry <strong>in</strong>to the sphere <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law has brought many changes to the subject. As<br />

regards the resolutions passed by these organizations, one view<br />

appears certa<strong>in</strong> that such resolutions do not have the force <strong>of</strong> law<br />

except if such resolutions have been persistently observed, then<br />

they become b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g as rules <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law. 47<br />

From this view, it is discernible that resolutions <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational organizations can serve as evidence <strong>of</strong> <strong>practice</strong>s <strong>of</strong><br />

states on such aspects <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law that such resolutions<br />

deal with. If this is the case, then, resolutions <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

organizations merely contribute <strong>in</strong> some way <strong>in</strong> the formation <strong>of</strong><br />

rules <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law. The contribution is <strong>in</strong> the<br />

sense that when an issue <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational concern is tabled <strong>and</strong><br />

47 Sloan, B., General Assembly Resolutions Revisited, 58 BYBIL (1987) 93


212<br />

debated on the floor <strong>of</strong> an organization, the views <strong>of</strong> several states<br />

are made known through their representatives based on the<br />

contributions that they have made on the debate. Resolutions<br />

adopted are based on these views <strong>and</strong> st<strong>and</strong>po<strong>in</strong>t. In some<br />

<strong>in</strong>stances, these resolutions are adopted unanimously without<br />

debate. It can safely be taken that such resolutions represent state<br />

<strong>practice</strong>s on the issues tabled <strong>and</strong> considered. As has been<br />

succ<strong>in</strong>ctly put, when the United Nations General Assembly<br />

resolution proclaims pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>and</strong> law<br />

adopted unanimously, it represents the law as generally accepted<br />

<strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational community. 48<br />

International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice <strong>and</strong> other <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

tribunals have also tended to give considerable weight to General<br />

Assembly resolutions as evidence <strong>of</strong> state <strong>practice</strong>.<br />

In the Nicaraguan case, 49 the ICJ relied almost exclusively on<br />

the General Assembly resolution when it stated the law on the use<br />

<strong>of</strong> force <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>tervention.<br />

4.5.11 Non b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g st<strong>and</strong>ards: s<strong>of</strong>t law<br />

Mention must also be made <strong>of</strong> some non b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>strument<br />

that spell out rules <strong>of</strong> conduct that are not <strong>in</strong>tended to be legally<br />

48 UN Oct A/ Ac 105/c.2 SR.20 p.11<br />

49 ICJ Reports (1986) p. 184


213<br />

b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> therefore cannot be enforced <strong>in</strong> court. Though not<br />

legally b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g, they have some <strong>in</strong>fluences on <strong>in</strong>ternational law<br />

because they may eventually harden <strong>in</strong>to customs. Such non-<br />

b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>struments, policies <strong>and</strong> declarations are what constitute<br />

s<strong>of</strong>t law. Examples <strong>of</strong> s<strong>of</strong>t law <strong>in</strong>clude the Hels<strong>in</strong>ki F<strong>in</strong>al Act <strong>of</strong><br />

1975; the Bonn Declaration on International Terrorism <strong>of</strong> 1978 <strong>and</strong><br />

the Rio Declaration on the Environment <strong>and</strong> Development <strong>of</strong> 1992.<br />

The ma<strong>in</strong> value <strong>of</strong> s<strong>of</strong>t law is that it functions as a device to<br />

overcome a deadlock <strong>in</strong> relations between states pursu<strong>in</strong>g<br />

conflict<strong>in</strong>g ideological or economic aims.<br />

Their development <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational legal system is as a<br />

result <strong>of</strong> some imperfections <strong>in</strong> the system. International legal<br />

system is imperfect <strong>and</strong> immature as compared to national legal<br />

systems because <strong>of</strong> the absence <strong>of</strong> formal organizational structures<br />

that ensure compliance with passed legislation.<br />

The term has however come under heavy criticisms from<br />

several writers. Accord<strong>in</strong>g to Sztucki, there can be no two levels or<br />

species <strong>of</strong> law. Someth<strong>in</strong>g is either law or not law. Secondly,<br />

accord<strong>in</strong>g to him, the concept is counter productive because it<br />

creates illusory expectations or even <strong>in</strong>consistencies <strong>of</strong> compliance<br />

with what no one is obliged to comply with.


214<br />

Despite the above criticisms, s<strong>of</strong>t law is important for the<br />

development <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law. This is so because when<br />

representatives <strong>of</strong> different states meet <strong>and</strong> express sentiments on<br />

a global issue, these sentiments are bound to <strong>in</strong>fluence state<br />

<strong>practice</strong>s on such matters which may ultimately harden <strong>in</strong>to op<strong>in</strong>io<br />

juris which will crystallize <strong>in</strong>to legally b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g rules <strong>of</strong> customary<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

4.6 INTERNATIONAL CONVENTIONS (TREATIES) AS SOURCES OF<br />

DIPLOMATIC AND CONSULAR LAW<br />

Treaties represent a source <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law, the<br />

importance <strong>of</strong> which is ever <strong>in</strong>creas<strong>in</strong>g. Accord<strong>in</strong>g to Article 2 <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Vienna convention on the law <strong>of</strong> Treaties, a treaty can be def<strong>in</strong>ed<br />

as:<br />

An agreement whereby two or more states<br />

establish or seek to establish a relationship<br />

between themselves governed by <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law. 50<br />

A treaty, which accepted as be<strong>in</strong>g similar to a contractual<br />

agreement, can also be def<strong>in</strong>ed as “a written agreement-giv<strong>in</strong>g rise<br />

to <strong>in</strong>ternational rights <strong>and</strong> obligations between states”. 51<br />

50 Anger B.A. & J<strong>and</strong>e G. Basic Pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> International Law (Makurdi : Oracle Bus<strong>in</strong>ess Ltd ; 2004) p12.<br />

51 Ibid.


215<br />

The effect <strong>of</strong> any treaty lead<strong>in</strong>g to the formation <strong>of</strong> rules <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law depends however on the nature <strong>of</strong> the treaty<br />

convened. Two types <strong>of</strong> treaties shall be looked <strong>in</strong>to:<br />

Law-mak<strong>in</strong>g treaties, which lay down rules <strong>of</strong> universal or<br />

general application; <strong>and</strong><br />

Treaty-contracts, this refers to a treaty between two or more<br />

states deal<strong>in</strong>g with a special matter concern<strong>in</strong>g these states<br />

exclusively.<br />

The law-mak<strong>in</strong>g treaty is directly a source <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law. It developed out <strong>of</strong> the urgent dem<strong>and</strong>s <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

society <strong>of</strong> state for the regulation <strong>of</strong> its common <strong>in</strong>terests which<br />

custom could not meet. These urgent dem<strong>and</strong>s arose from the<br />

changes, which were transform<strong>in</strong>g the whole structure <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational life, that is, the <strong>in</strong>dustrial <strong>and</strong> economic<br />

developments, <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational communications, which were<br />

br<strong>in</strong>g<strong>in</strong>g states <strong>in</strong>to closer <strong>in</strong>tercourse with each other, <strong>and</strong> made<br />

their relationship complex. This complexity made the call for law-<br />

mak<strong>in</strong>g treaty necessary, especially concern<strong>in</strong>g areas like Red<br />

Cross work, the protection <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>dustrial property, the protection <strong>of</strong>


216<br />

submar<strong>in</strong>e cables, the suppression <strong>of</strong> the slave trade, control <strong>of</strong><br />

narcotics, just to mention a few. 52<br />

The law-mak<strong>in</strong>g treaty is <strong>of</strong> two types:<br />

Enunciat<strong>in</strong>g rules <strong>of</strong> universal <strong>in</strong>ternational law, example, the<br />

United Nations Charter;<br />

Lay<strong>in</strong>g down <strong>of</strong> fairly general rules. Some multilateral treaties<br />

are to a large extent either confirmatory <strong>of</strong> or represent a<br />

codification <strong>of</strong> customary rules, as the Vienna convention on<br />

Diplomatic Relations <strong>of</strong> 18 April, 1961.<br />

Treaty contracts are not directly a source <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law<br />

as law-mak<strong>in</strong>g treaties. They may however, between parties or<br />

signatories, constitute particular laws; hence the use <strong>of</strong> the<br />

expression „particular‟ conventions <strong>in</strong> Article 38(1)(a) <strong>of</strong> the statute<br />

<strong>of</strong> the ICJ. Such treaties also lead to the formation <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law through the operation <strong>of</strong> the pr<strong>in</strong>ciples govern<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

development <strong>of</strong> customary rules. Two cases will be considered here.<br />

First, a series or a recurrence <strong>of</strong> treaties lay<strong>in</strong>g down a similar<br />

rule may produce a pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law to the<br />

same effect. Such treaties are thus a step <strong>in</strong> the process whereby a<br />

rule <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational custom emerges.<br />

52 Ibid.


217<br />

Treaties share this function with <strong>diplomatic</strong> acts, state laws,<br />

state judicial decisions <strong>and</strong> the <strong>practice</strong> <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

organizations. An illustration is the series <strong>of</strong> bilateral extradition<br />

treaties concluded dur<strong>in</strong>g the 19 th century from which such general<br />

rules, as those that the nationals <strong>of</strong> the state dem<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g<br />

extradition <strong>and</strong> nationals <strong>of</strong> third states are extraditable, were<br />

deduced <strong>and</strong> were considered as be<strong>in</strong>g general application.<br />

Secondly, it may happen with a treaty orig<strong>in</strong>ally concluded<br />

between a limited numbers <strong>of</strong> parties only, that a rule <strong>in</strong> it be<br />

generalized by subsequent <strong>in</strong>dependent acceptance <strong>of</strong> imitation. In<br />

this case, the treaty represents the <strong>in</strong>itial stage <strong>in</strong> the process <strong>of</strong><br />

reassurance <strong>of</strong> usage by which customary rules <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law<br />

have evolved. Thus, for <strong>in</strong>stance, the rule “free ship, free goods”,<br />

that is, that enemy goods carried on a neutral vessel are <strong>in</strong> general<br />

immune from belligerent action, first appeared <strong>in</strong> treaty <strong>of</strong> 1650<br />

between Spa<strong>in</strong> <strong>and</strong> the United prov<strong>in</strong>ces, <strong>and</strong> became established<br />

only at a much later period after a long process <strong>of</strong> generalization<br />

<strong>and</strong> recognition.<br />

4.6.1 Basic treaties on <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law<br />

Perhaps until after the Second World War, <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>consular</strong> <strong>practice</strong> was almost entirely regulated by customary


218<br />

norms. The only exist<strong>in</strong>g treaty then was the 1815 Congress <strong>of</strong><br />

Vienna on the ranks <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> representatives with Anchen<br />

Protocol <strong>of</strong> 1818 as a supplement. After the Second World War,<br />

under the United Nations, some treaties were concluded for<br />

purposes <strong>of</strong> codify<strong>in</strong>g the progressive development <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law.<br />

Some <strong>of</strong> these <strong>in</strong>clude the 1961 Vienna convention on<br />

Diplomatic Relations which entered <strong>in</strong>to force <strong>in</strong> 1964; the 1963<br />

Vienna Convention on Consular Relations which came <strong>in</strong>to force <strong>in</strong><br />

1967, the 1969 New York Convention on the Prevention <strong>and</strong><br />

Punishment <strong>of</strong> Crimes aga<strong>in</strong>st Internationally protected person,<br />

<strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g Diplomatic Agents which came <strong>in</strong>to force <strong>in</strong> 1977, the<br />

1975 Vienna convention on the Representatives <strong>of</strong> States <strong>in</strong> their<br />

Relations with International Organizations <strong>of</strong> a Universal<br />

Character.<br />

The Correspond<strong>in</strong>g terms <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> Privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational organizations are usually conta<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong><br />

their charters. Two basic conventions are <strong>in</strong> force with regard to the<br />

United Nations <strong>and</strong> its specialized Agencies namely; the 1946<br />

convention on the privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunities <strong>of</strong> the UN specialized<br />

Agencies. The UN <strong>and</strong> its specialized Agencies have also bilateral


219<br />

agreements with host states on questions <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities. The privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>of</strong> regional organizations<br />

are governed by regional agreements.<br />

4.7 INTERNATIONAL CUSTOM AS SOURCE OF DIPLOMATIC<br />

AND CONSULAR LAW<br />

Until after the several world wars <strong>and</strong> before the Vienna<br />

congress <strong>of</strong> 1815, custom dom<strong>in</strong>ated <strong>and</strong> regulated <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>consular</strong> relations between states.<br />

The ICJ <strong>in</strong> the Asylum Case: Columbia vs. Peru (1950) 53<br />

described custom as a constant <strong>and</strong> uniform usage, accepted as<br />

law, that is those areas <strong>of</strong> state <strong>practice</strong>s which arise as a result <strong>of</strong><br />

a belief by state that they are obliged by law to act <strong>in</strong> the manner<br />

described.<br />

Brownlie lists evidence <strong>of</strong> custom to <strong>in</strong>clude <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

correspondence, policy statements, press releases, <strong>and</strong> the<br />

op<strong>in</strong>ions <strong>of</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial legal advisers, <strong>of</strong>ficial manuals on legal<br />

questions, executive decisions <strong>and</strong> <strong>practice</strong>s, orders to naval forces,<br />

comments by governments on drafts produced by the <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law commission, state legislation, <strong>in</strong>ternational <strong>and</strong> national<br />

judicial decision, recitals <strong>in</strong> treaties <strong>and</strong> own <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

53 Maclean, op. cit. P. 11.


220<br />

<strong>in</strong>struments a pattern <strong>of</strong> treaties <strong>in</strong> the same form, the <strong>practice</strong>s <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational organs, <strong>and</strong> resolutions relat<strong>in</strong>g to legal questions <strong>in</strong><br />

the UN General Assembly. 54<br />

Follow<strong>in</strong>g the Asylum Case, four questions rema<strong>in</strong>ed for<br />

consideration:<br />

- What duration <strong>of</strong> <strong>practice</strong> is required?<br />

- How uniform <strong>and</strong> consistent must the <strong>practice</strong> be to give use<br />

to a rule <strong>of</strong> law?<br />

- How is the court to determ<strong>in</strong>e the subjective element <strong>in</strong><br />

<strong>practice</strong> that is an acceptance that the custom is based on law?<br />

- How general must the <strong>practice</strong> be <strong>in</strong> order to b<strong>in</strong>d third<br />

states?<br />

The jurisprudence <strong>of</strong> the ICJ <strong>in</strong>dicates that no particular<br />

duration is required for <strong>practice</strong> to become law provided that the<br />

consistency <strong>and</strong> generality <strong>of</strong> a <strong>practice</strong> are provided. In the North<br />

Sea Cont<strong>in</strong>ental Shelf Case (1969) 55 it was recognized that there is<br />

no precise length <strong>of</strong> time dur<strong>in</strong>g which a <strong>practice</strong> must exist; simply<br />

that it must be followed long enough to show that the other<br />

requirements <strong>of</strong> a custom are satisfied.<br />

54 Ibid<br />

55 Ibid. P. 13


221<br />

It is clear that major <strong>in</strong>consistencies <strong>in</strong> <strong>practice</strong> will prevent<br />

the creation <strong>of</strong> a rule <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law. However,<br />

complete uniformity is not required <strong>and</strong> m<strong>in</strong>or <strong>in</strong>consistencies will<br />

not prevent the creation <strong>of</strong> a customary rule provided that there is<br />

substantial <strong>practice</strong> should be both extensive <strong>and</strong> virtually<br />

uniform! This question <strong>of</strong> the uniformity <strong>and</strong> consistency <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>practice</strong> was returned to by the court <strong>in</strong> the Nicaragua Case<br />

(Nicaragua Vs US; Merits, (1986) 56 where the ICJ <strong>in</strong>dicated that it<br />

was not necessary that all state <strong>practice</strong> be rigorously consistent <strong>in</strong><br />

order to establish a rule <strong>of</strong> custom.<br />

To assume the status <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law the rule<br />

<strong>in</strong> question must be regarded by states as be<strong>in</strong>g b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> law,<br />

that is that they are under a legal obligation to obey it.<br />

The recognition <strong>of</strong> a particular rule as a rule <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law by a large number <strong>of</strong> states raises a presumption that the rule<br />

is generally recognized. Such a rule will be b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g on states<br />

generally <strong>and</strong> an <strong>in</strong>dividual state may only oppose its application<br />

by show<strong>in</strong>g that it has persistently objected to the rule from the<br />

date <strong>of</strong> its first formulation.<br />

56 Ibid.


222<br />

In the Anglo Norwegian Fisheries Case (1951) for example, the<br />

court reject<strong>in</strong>g the UK argument that the 10-mile clos<strong>in</strong>g l<strong>in</strong>e for<br />

bays was a rule <strong>of</strong> customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law. The rule would<br />

appear to be <strong>in</strong> application as aga<strong>in</strong>st Norway, <strong>in</strong>asmuch as she<br />

has always opposed any attempt to apply it to the Norwegian Coast.<br />

In this ve<strong>in</strong> there are customary rules <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>consular</strong> <strong>practice</strong> that have been accepted <strong>and</strong> codified as law.<br />

These <strong>in</strong>clude the <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> premise <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong><br />

posts, <strong>in</strong>volution <strong>of</strong> archives <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> missions <strong>and</strong> members <strong>of</strong><br />

the <strong>diplomatic</strong> staff, <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> the private residence <strong>of</strong> a<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> staff, etc.<br />

4.8 GENERAL PRINCIPLES OF LAW AS SOURCE OF<br />

DIPLOMATIC AND CONSULAR LAW<br />

General pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> law <strong>of</strong> civilized nation is another source<br />

<strong>of</strong> law used by European countries <strong>in</strong> their relation with one<br />

another before the codification <strong>of</strong> law to be used by the subjects <strong>of</strong><br />

the <strong>in</strong>ternational arena. In the absence <strong>of</strong> a treaty or other loophole<br />

or <strong>in</strong>ternational customary law, the general pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> laws<br />

recognized by civilized nations come <strong>in</strong>to reckon<strong>in</strong>g.<br />

These pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>in</strong>clude respect for acquired right or vested<br />

right, peaceful coexistence, sovereign equality <strong>of</strong> states, fair <strong>and</strong>


223<br />

equal treatment, just to mention a few. These general pr<strong>in</strong>ciples are<br />

less a material source <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law than a particular<br />

<strong>in</strong>stance <strong>of</strong> judicial reason <strong>and</strong> logic which the most authoritative<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational tribunal <strong>of</strong> the day is specially enjo<strong>in</strong>ed to employ. In<br />

other words, they are so well established <strong>and</strong> known that the<br />

judges who apply them do not require precedent to lean on <strong>in</strong> do<strong>in</strong>g<br />

so.<br />

The major problem aris<strong>in</strong>g from use <strong>of</strong> these pr<strong>in</strong>ciples is the<br />

question surround<strong>in</strong>g the def<strong>in</strong>ition <strong>of</strong> the concept „civilized nation‟.<br />

There is no generally accepted def<strong>in</strong>ition <strong>of</strong> this concept; what<br />

might be termed „civilized nations‟ by a set <strong>of</strong> people might not be<br />

so with other groups <strong>of</strong> people.<br />

Another problem is also created by the question <strong>of</strong> the<br />

determ<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> general pr<strong>in</strong>ciples. In some states, a particular<br />

legal system is <strong>in</strong> <strong>practice</strong> or existence, for example almost<br />

unrealistic.<br />

57 Ibid. P.18<br />

Accord<strong>in</strong>g to Lord Phillimore:<br />

The general pr<strong>in</strong>ciples referred to … were those,<br />

which were accepted by all nations <strong>in</strong> foro<br />

domestico, such as certa<strong>in</strong> pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong><br />

procedure, the pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> good faith, <strong>and</strong> the<br />

pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> res judicata. 57


224<br />

In this way private law, be<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> general more developed than<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law has provided a reserve store <strong>of</strong> legal pr<strong>in</strong>ciples<br />

upon which <strong>in</strong>ternational law can draw.<br />

Oppenheim states that:<br />

The <strong>in</strong>tention is to authorize the correct court to<br />

apply the general pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> municipal<br />

jurisprudence, <strong>in</strong> particular <strong>of</strong> private law, <strong>in</strong> so<br />

far they are applicable to relations <strong>of</strong> states. 58<br />

One other difficulty <strong>in</strong> evaluat<strong>in</strong>g the role <strong>of</strong> these general<br />

pr<strong>in</strong>ciples, however, is that Article 38(1)(C) does not make clear if it<br />

is referr<strong>in</strong>g to general pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law recognized by<br />

civilized nations or general pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> law <strong>in</strong> the broadest sense,<br />

<strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> private law which have their counterpart <strong>in</strong><br />

most developed legal systems.<br />

4.9 JUDICIAL DECISIONS AND TEACHINGS OF THE MOST<br />

apply:<br />

58 Ibid.<br />

HIGHLY QUALIFIED PUBLICIST AS SOURCES OF<br />

DIPLOMATIC AND CONSULAR LAW<br />

Article 38(1)(d) <strong>of</strong> the status <strong>of</strong> the ICJ directed the court to


225<br />

… Subject to the provision <strong>of</strong> Article 59 judicial<br />

decisions <strong>and</strong> the teach<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> the highly qualified<br />

publicists <strong>of</strong> the various nations as subsidiary<br />

means for the determ<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> rules <strong>of</strong> law. 59<br />

Article 59 <strong>of</strong> the status <strong>of</strong> the court provides that the decision<br />

<strong>of</strong> the court has no b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g force except between the parties <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong><br />

respect <strong>of</strong> that particular case. 60<br />

There is, therefore, no b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g authority <strong>of</strong> precedent <strong>in</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational court <strong>and</strong> tribunal cases do not<br />

make law. Judicial decisions are not therefore, strictly speak<strong>in</strong>g a<br />

formal source <strong>of</strong> law. It can be argued, however that if an<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational tribunal is unable to discover an exist<strong>in</strong>g treaty or<br />

customary rule relevant to a dispute, any rule that the tribunal<br />

adopts <strong>in</strong> decid<strong>in</strong>g the case will, <strong>in</strong> theory at least, form a new rule<br />

<strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law. Several decisions <strong>of</strong> the ICJ have <strong>in</strong>troduced<br />

<strong>in</strong>novations <strong>in</strong>to <strong>in</strong>ternational law which have subsequently won<br />

general acceptance. For <strong>in</strong>stance:<br />

In The Anglo-Norwegian Fisheries Case (1951) 61, Norway had<br />

promulgated a series <strong>of</strong> decrees as the base l<strong>in</strong>e <strong>of</strong> Norwegian<br />

territorial waters the general l<strong>in</strong>e <strong>of</strong> the Skjaergaard – a series <strong>of</strong><br />

59 Maclean, Loc. Cit.<br />

60 Article 59 <strong>of</strong> the Statute <strong>of</strong> The International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice<br />

61 International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice Report, P. 116.


226<br />

isl<strong>and</strong>s <strong>and</strong> rocks stretch<strong>in</strong>g along Norway‟s north-western coast,<br />

<strong>of</strong>ten at considerable distance from the ma<strong>in</strong> l<strong>and</strong>. As a result a<br />

large area <strong>of</strong> what was from the ma<strong>in</strong>l<strong>and</strong>. As a result a large area<br />

<strong>of</strong> what was formally high seas became enclosed as Norwegian<br />

national waters <strong>and</strong> closed to British fish<strong>in</strong>g.<br />

The UK contested the legality <strong>of</strong> Norway‟s act before the ICJ.<br />

The court held that the method <strong>of</strong> basel<strong>in</strong>e employed by Norway<br />

was not contrary to <strong>in</strong>ternational law given, <strong>in</strong>ter alia, the special<br />

geographical facts <strong>in</strong>volved <strong>and</strong> the economic <strong>in</strong>terests peculiar to<br />

the region.<br />

The court <strong>in</strong> effect, therefore, created a new rule <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law for the delimitation <strong>of</strong> the territorial sea <strong>in</strong> those<br />

parts <strong>of</strong> the world where peculiar geographical <strong>and</strong> economic<br />

factors are present.<br />

And <strong>in</strong> The Reparation Case (1949) 62, the ICJ was asked to<br />

advice whether the United Nations had the right to present a claim<br />

on the <strong>in</strong>ternational place aga<strong>in</strong>st a state for <strong>in</strong>juries suffered by<br />

the United Nations <strong>of</strong>ficials <strong>in</strong> the performance <strong>of</strong> their duties. The<br />

court decided that the United Nations could claim damages under<br />

62 International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice Reports, P. 174


227<br />

International law aga<strong>in</strong>st state responsible for <strong>in</strong>juries suffered by<br />

its <strong>of</strong>ficials.<br />

The courts‟ decision that such a power could be implied from<br />

the express functions entrusted to the organization was clearly an<br />

extension <strong>of</strong> the rights <strong>of</strong> the organization as laid down <strong>in</strong> the<br />

charter <strong>and</strong> thus created a new pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

Article 38(d) directs the court to apply:<br />

The teach<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>of</strong> the most highly qualified<br />

publicists <strong>of</strong> the various nations, as subsidiary<br />

means for determ<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> rules <strong>of</strong> law. 63<br />

Although this source once constitutes evidence <strong>of</strong> customary<br />

law, learned writ<strong>in</strong>gs can also play a subsidiary role <strong>in</strong> develop<strong>in</strong>g<br />

new rules <strong>of</strong> law. The contributions <strong>of</strong> writers such as Grotius,<br />

Bynkershoek <strong>and</strong> Vattel were very important to the formation <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>and</strong> development <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law, <strong>and</strong> writers <strong>of</strong> general works,<br />

such as Openheim, Hall, Hyde, Guggenheim <strong>and</strong> Rousseau, have<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational reputations. Although it is sometimes argued that<br />

some writers reflect national <strong>and</strong> other prejudices, their op<strong>in</strong>ions<br />

are used widely by legal advisers to states, arbitral tribunals <strong>and</strong><br />

courts.<br />

63 Article 38 paragraph 1 (d) <strong>of</strong> the Statute <strong>of</strong> the International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice.


228<br />

It must be noted that other sources <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law<br />

<strong>in</strong>clude General Assembly resolutions <strong>and</strong> resolutions <strong>of</strong> other<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational organization. A recent example <strong>in</strong> which resolutions <strong>of</strong><br />

the General Assembly were held to be reflective <strong>of</strong> customary<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law arose <strong>in</strong> the Nicaragua Case (1986) 64. In that case<br />

majority <strong>of</strong> the court considered that GAR 2625 (1970) on<br />

pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> International Law Concern<strong>in</strong>g Friendly Relations <strong>and</strong><br />

Cooperation Among States was illustrative <strong>of</strong> customary law.<br />

Equity also plays a role <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational judicial process <strong>in</strong><br />

the correction <strong>of</strong> over-rigorous law, <strong>in</strong> the fill<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> gaps, <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> the<br />

abrogation <strong>of</strong> law. 65<br />

Treaties not yet <strong>in</strong> force may also be persuasive as between<br />

those states that have signed <strong>and</strong> ratified the treaty. This could<br />

also be significant <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational judicial process.<br />

Draft treaties <strong>and</strong> tests adopted by the International Law<br />

Commission can also be considered as evidence <strong>of</strong> law.<br />

A number <strong>of</strong> commentators have suggested that there is a<br />

develop<strong>in</strong>g body <strong>of</strong> lex mercatoria, which may be applied by<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational courts <strong>and</strong> tribunals <strong>in</strong> the case <strong>of</strong> disputes <strong>in</strong>volv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

64 Maclean, op. cit. P.24<br />

65 O’Connell, D.P. International law for Students (London: Stevens & sons; 1971) P.6


229<br />

questions <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational trade. International trade <strong>practice</strong> <strong>and</strong><br />

usages therefore play a role <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational judicial process.


230<br />

CHAPTER FIVE<br />

INTERNATIONALLY PROTECTED PERSONS<br />

5.1 INTRODUCTION<br />

The advantages that accrue to states all over the world as a<br />

result <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>teraction among them are numerous. As a matter <strong>of</strong><br />

fact the study <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational relations <strong>in</strong> <strong>contemporary</strong> times is<br />

an <strong>in</strong>troduction to the art <strong>and</strong> science <strong>of</strong> the survival <strong>of</strong> mank<strong>in</strong>d.<br />

If civilization is killed with<strong>in</strong> the next thirty years, it will not be<br />

killed by fam<strong>in</strong>e or plague but by foreign policy <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

relations. Possess<strong>in</strong>g unprecedented <strong>in</strong>struments for national<br />

action <strong>in</strong> the forms <strong>of</strong> ideologies <strong>and</strong> weapons, the nation-States<br />

have become even more dangerous vehicles <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

conflict.<br />

People have very much <strong>in</strong> common <strong>in</strong> human nature, human<br />

needs <strong>and</strong> human hopes; but so far we have been <strong>in</strong>curably<br />

diverse <strong>in</strong> our own languages, cultures, religion, philosophies, <strong>and</strong><br />

(most <strong>of</strong> all) governments. Although people are <strong>in</strong>curably diverse,<br />

they are also <strong>in</strong>escapably <strong>in</strong>terdependent. And <strong>in</strong> some respects<br />

this <strong>in</strong>terdependence has <strong>in</strong>creased <strong>in</strong> this day <strong>of</strong> the shr<strong>in</strong>k<strong>in</strong>g<br />

world.


231<br />

The world is <strong>in</strong>terdependent <strong>in</strong> far more ways than simply<br />

politics <strong>and</strong> power. It is known vaguely that science, technology,<br />

<strong>and</strong> medic<strong>in</strong>e are “<strong>in</strong>ternational” but few <strong>of</strong> us have stopped to<br />

th<strong>in</strong>k just what this means. It means, <strong>in</strong> sober fact; that no people<br />

<strong>and</strong> no country <strong>in</strong> the world could have reached its present level <strong>of</strong><br />

technology, prosperity, <strong>and</strong> health-nor could it ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong> its<br />

present rate <strong>of</strong> progress without the decisive aid <strong>of</strong> foreign<br />

discoveries <strong>and</strong> foreign contribution.<br />

No county could keep many <strong>of</strong> its own people alive without<br />

the help <strong>of</strong> foreigners. In our hospitals <strong>and</strong> doctors‟ <strong>of</strong>fices,<br />

thous<strong>and</strong>s <strong>of</strong> lives are saved daily by the application <strong>of</strong> discoveries<br />

<strong>and</strong> medic<strong>in</strong>es developed by scientists <strong>in</strong> other countries. And if<br />

tomorrow all remedies developed by foreigners should lose their<br />

power, the number <strong>of</strong> dead <strong>in</strong> our streets would be appall<strong>in</strong>g.<br />

Based on the above, <strong>in</strong>teraction <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational system<br />

is <strong>in</strong>evitable. The very survival <strong>of</strong> the system depends on it. S<strong>in</strong>ce<br />

states must <strong>in</strong>teract, their agents must do so on their behalf.<br />

These agents who are representatives <strong>of</strong> states are accorded<br />

protection with<strong>in</strong> the system to ensure their effectiveness.<br />

Over the years this <strong>in</strong>teraction has proved not only to<br />

redeem tensions <strong>and</strong> wars among states, it has also provided


232<br />

mutual cooperation among them for the advancement <strong>of</strong> mank<strong>in</strong>d<br />

<strong>and</strong> peace. Likewise, <strong>in</strong>ternational organisations <strong>and</strong> their agents<br />

have also become <strong>in</strong>struments <strong>of</strong> development <strong>and</strong> provision <strong>of</strong><br />

many <strong>in</strong>frastructures <strong>and</strong> services like rural electrification,<br />

irrigation canals, pipe-borne water, educational materials,<br />

vacc<strong>in</strong>es, etc especially <strong>in</strong> the develop<strong>in</strong>g world.<br />

The 1973 United Nations resolution 3661(XXVIII), which was<br />

adopted on the 14 th December, 1973, <strong>and</strong> came <strong>in</strong>to force on 20 th<br />

February, 1974, other legal documents have provided a clear<br />

def<strong>in</strong>ition <strong>of</strong> the k<strong>in</strong>d <strong>of</strong> persons to enjoy <strong>in</strong>ternational protection<br />

whenever they f<strong>in</strong>d themselves <strong>in</strong> countries outside their own.<br />

Thus, for example, the Netherl<strong>and</strong>s legislation <strong>of</strong> 1651,<br />

which is one <strong>of</strong> the earliest <strong>in</strong> this regard, forbade violation <strong>of</strong><br />

emissaries <strong>of</strong> foreign states. The English crim<strong>in</strong>al law, Italian<br />

crim<strong>in</strong>al code <strong>and</strong> the OAS convention followed <strong>in</strong> the same ve<strong>in</strong>.<br />

More so, dur<strong>in</strong>g the 1950s <strong>and</strong> 1960s, the International Law<br />

Commission was confronted with the question <strong>of</strong> legal status,<br />

privileges, immunities <strong>and</strong> facilities <strong>of</strong> diplomats <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong><br />

<strong>of</strong>ficers. The pioneer<strong>in</strong>g work <strong>of</strong> this commission resulted <strong>in</strong> the<br />

adoption <strong>of</strong> the l<strong>and</strong>mark Vienna Conventions on Diplomatic<br />

Relations (1961) <strong>and</strong> Consular Relations (1963).


233<br />

However, it is necessary to observe that there are limited or<br />

clearly def<strong>in</strong>ed circumstances under which <strong>in</strong>dividuals can travel<br />

abroad <strong>and</strong> expect special protection. For <strong>in</strong>stance, <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

agents or foreign envoys can only enjoy special protection on their<br />

accreditation to def<strong>in</strong>ite states or on their be<strong>in</strong>g assigned to<br />

undertake special missions abroad. In the case <strong>of</strong> monarchs,<br />

Heads <strong>of</strong> State, Foreign Affairs M<strong>in</strong>isters, etc., they can only be<br />

granted special protection by the receiv<strong>in</strong>g or host states on<br />

previous <strong>in</strong>formation <strong>of</strong> their <strong>in</strong>tended visits.<br />

Moreover, the bilateral relations among states coupled with<br />

the concept <strong>of</strong> reciprocity strengthen the necessity for grant<strong>in</strong>g<br />

special protection to certa<strong>in</strong> personalities whenever they are<br />

abroad.<br />

The ability <strong>of</strong> states to ensure protection for the<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons has become an issue <strong>of</strong> prestige<br />

<strong>and</strong> acceptable norm <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational community.


234<br />

5.2 INTERNATIONALLY PROTECTED PERSONS<br />

The 1973 United Nations (New York) Convention on the<br />

Prevention <strong>and</strong> Punishment <strong>of</strong> Crimes Aga<strong>in</strong>st Internationally<br />

Protected Persons, Includ<strong>in</strong>g Diplomatic Agents, which was<br />

adopted by the General Assembly Resolution 31661 def<strong>in</strong>es<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternationally protected Persons under its Article 1 as follows:<br />

(a) A head <strong>of</strong> State, <strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g any member <strong>of</strong> a collegial body<br />

perform<strong>in</strong>g the function <strong>of</strong> a Head <strong>of</strong> State, under the<br />

constitution <strong>of</strong> the State concerned, a Head <strong>of</strong> Government<br />

or a M<strong>in</strong>ister for Foreign Affairs, whenever any such person<br />

is <strong>in</strong> a foreign state, as well as his family who accompany<br />

him;<br />

(b) Any representative or <strong>of</strong>ficial <strong>of</strong> a State or any <strong>of</strong>ficial or<br />

other agent <strong>of</strong> an <strong>in</strong>ternational organization <strong>of</strong> an<br />

<strong>in</strong>tergovernmental character who, at the time when <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong><br />

the place where a crime aga<strong>in</strong>st him, his <strong>of</strong>ficial premises,<br />

his private accommodation or his means <strong>of</strong> transport is<br />

committed, is entitled pursuant to <strong>in</strong>ternational law to<br />

special protection from any attack on his person, freedom or


235<br />

dignity, as well as members <strong>of</strong> his family form<strong>in</strong>g part <strong>of</strong> his<br />

household. 1<br />

Another legal document, which provides def<strong>in</strong>ition <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons, is the United K<strong>in</strong>gdom<br />

Suppression <strong>of</strong> Terrorism Act <strong>of</strong> 1978. Section 4(2) <strong>of</strong> Paragraph 6<br />

<strong>of</strong> the Act def<strong>in</strong>es such person as:<br />

(a) a person who at the time <strong>of</strong> the act is Head <strong>of</strong> State, a<br />

member <strong>of</strong> a body which performs the functions <strong>of</strong> Head <strong>of</strong><br />

State under the Constitution <strong>of</strong> the State, a Head <strong>of</strong><br />

Government or a m<strong>in</strong>ister <strong>of</strong> Foreign Affairs <strong>and</strong> is outside<br />

the territory <strong>of</strong> the State <strong>in</strong> which he holds <strong>of</strong>fice;<br />

(b) a person who at the time <strong>of</strong> the Act is a representative or<br />

an <strong>of</strong>ficial <strong>of</strong> a State or agent <strong>of</strong> an <strong>in</strong>ternational organization<br />

<strong>of</strong> an <strong>in</strong>tergovernmental character, is entitled under<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law to special protection from attack on his<br />

person, freedom dignity <strong>and</strong> does not fall with<strong>in</strong> the<br />

preced<strong>in</strong>g paragraph;<br />

(c) a person who at the time <strong>of</strong> the act is a member <strong>of</strong> the family<br />

<strong>of</strong> another person mentioned <strong>in</strong> either <strong>of</strong> the preced<strong>in</strong>g<br />

paragraph; <strong>and</strong><br />

1 See Article I (a) <strong>and</strong> (b) <strong>of</strong> the 1973 Convention on the Prevention <strong>and</strong> Punishment <strong>of</strong> Crimes Aga<strong>in</strong>st<br />

Internationally Protected Persons, Includ<strong>in</strong>g Diplomatic Agents.


236<br />

(i) If the other person as mentioned <strong>in</strong> paragraph (a) above,<br />

is accompany<strong>in</strong>g him; or<br />

(ii) If the other person is mentioned <strong>in</strong> paragraph b) above, as<br />

a member <strong>of</strong> his household; <strong>and</strong> if <strong>in</strong> any proceed<strong>in</strong>gs a<br />

question arises as to whether a person is or was a protected<br />

person, a certificate issued by or under the authority <strong>of</strong> the<br />

security or state <strong>and</strong> stat<strong>in</strong>g any fact relat<strong>in</strong>g to the question<br />

shall be conclusive evidence <strong>of</strong> that fact. 2<br />

In addition to the above def<strong>in</strong>itions, other experts on<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law have also def<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>and</strong> written a lot on the need<br />

to grant special protection to certa<strong>in</strong> categories <strong>of</strong> persons who for<br />

one reason or the other f<strong>in</strong>d themselves abroad. However, the<br />

categorical def<strong>in</strong>ition <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons by<br />

Franciszek Przetacznik <strong>in</strong>cludes any <strong>of</strong> the follow<strong>in</strong>g:<br />

(a) Head <strong>of</strong> State together with members <strong>of</strong> his or her<br />

Collegial body <strong>in</strong> foreign States;<br />

(b) A head <strong>of</strong> Government together with members <strong>of</strong> his or her<br />

collegial body <strong>in</strong> foreign states;<br />

(c) A m<strong>in</strong>ister <strong>of</strong> foreign affairs together with members <strong>of</strong> his or her<br />

collegial body <strong>in</strong> foreign states;<br />

2 See International legal materials, Vol. 17, 1978, P.1132


237<br />

(d) A Diplomatic Agent <strong>in</strong> a foreign state;<br />

(e) A Diplomatic member <strong>of</strong> a special Mission <strong>in</strong> a foreign state;<br />

(f) A <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficer;<br />

(g) A Diplomatic member <strong>of</strong> a permanent mission to an<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational organization;<br />

(h) A <strong>diplomatic</strong> member <strong>of</strong> a delegation to an <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

conference;<br />

(i) A Diplomatic member <strong>of</strong> an observer delegation to an<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational conference 3.<br />

From what has been seen so far, <strong>in</strong>ternationally protected<br />

persons can be def<strong>in</strong>ed to be those persons who by their<br />

representative or functional roles on behalf <strong>of</strong> states or<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational organisations <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational system are<br />

accorded immunities or certa<strong>in</strong> privileges by <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

The essence <strong>of</strong> these immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges is to ensure their<br />

effectiveness <strong>in</strong> the performance <strong>of</strong> their functions. S<strong>in</strong>ce they are<br />

agents <strong>of</strong> states or <strong>in</strong>ternational organisations effort is made by<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law to shield them from the municipal laws <strong>of</strong> host<br />

states.<br />

3 Przetacznik, F. Protection <strong>of</strong> Officials <strong>of</strong> Foreign States Accord<strong>in</strong>g to International Law (London:<br />

Nijh<strong>of</strong>f Publishers; 1983) P.1


238<br />

The various def<strong>in</strong>itions <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons<br />

so far exam<strong>in</strong>ed show some consistency <strong>in</strong> which category <strong>of</strong><br />

persons constitute this class. Broadly categorised, <strong>in</strong>ternationally<br />

protected persons <strong>in</strong>clude the follow<strong>in</strong>g:<br />

(i) Diplomatic agents;<br />

(ii) Consular <strong>of</strong>ficers;<br />

(iii) Special missions<br />

(iv) Heads <strong>of</strong> Government <strong>and</strong> heads <strong>of</strong> states.<br />

(v) Representatives to <strong>in</strong>tergovernmental organizations; <strong>and</strong><br />

(vi) International <strong>of</strong>ficials.<br />

5.3 SCOPE OF PROTECTION<br />

Under this the follow<strong>in</strong>g will be considered:


5.3.1 Diplomatic Agents<br />

239<br />

The Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations<br />

dist<strong>in</strong>guishes between the immunity <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents, which<br />

<strong>in</strong>cludes heads <strong>of</strong> the mission <strong>and</strong> members <strong>of</strong> staff hav<strong>in</strong>g<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> rank. 4 It allows immunity to the adm<strong>in</strong>istrative <strong>and</strong><br />

technical staff <strong>of</strong> a mission only <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial acts. This also<br />

<strong>in</strong>cludes the family <strong>of</strong> diplomats so long as they form part <strong>of</strong> their<br />

households, <strong>and</strong> leaves open the possibility <strong>of</strong> a wife or children<br />

who are nationals <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state hav<strong>in</strong>g no immunities at<br />

all. 5 The personal immunity <strong>of</strong> the diplomat is provided for <strong>in</strong> the<br />

Vienna convention on Diplomatic Relations.<br />

4 Article 1 (e) <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations, 1961.<br />

5 Article 37 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 convention


240<br />

The Convention provides for complete immunity from<br />

adm<strong>in</strong>istrative <strong>and</strong> civil proceed<strong>in</strong>gs. This is not with respect to<br />

real actions <strong>in</strong>volv<strong>in</strong>g private immovable property situated <strong>in</strong> the<br />

territory <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. And also not held on behalf <strong>of</strong> the<br />

mission; actions <strong>in</strong> succession <strong>in</strong> which the diplomat is executor<br />

or heir; <strong>and</strong> actions relat<strong>in</strong>g to any pr<strong>of</strong>essional or commercial<br />

activity exercised by the <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state<br />

outside his <strong>of</strong>ficial functions. 6 There are dist<strong>in</strong>ctions between a<br />

diplomat‟s liability under the law <strong>and</strong> his liability to legal process.<br />

It is with respect to the latter only that he is immune. 7 So far as<br />

crim<strong>in</strong>al acts are concerned there is no question <strong>of</strong> prosecution<br />

dur<strong>in</strong>g the duration <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity. There are many<br />

<strong>in</strong>stances where recall <strong>of</strong> the diplomat has been the remedy<br />

resorted to. However, whatever the situation regard<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong>ficial<br />

acts, it is clear that with respect to non-<strong>of</strong>ficial acts a diplomat is<br />

as much a subject <strong>of</strong> the local law as anyone else, even the<br />

crim<strong>in</strong>al law. 8 The assertion by O‟Connell above suggests that<br />

when not perform<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong>ficial acts the diplomat is a subject <strong>of</strong> local<br />

law as anyone else. This is not exactly correct, except when a<br />

6 Article 31 (a)-(c). Also see Article 42 <strong>of</strong> the same Convention.<br />

7 O’Connell, D.P. International Law for Students (London: Stevens & Sons Ltd.; 1971) P. 363.<br />

8 Ibid.


241<br />

diplomat engages <strong>in</strong> hostage tak<strong>in</strong>g, traffick<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> narcotics,<br />

enslavement, genocide, murder, all <strong>of</strong> which fall outside the<br />

functions <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission, can he be subject to local law.<br />

In R. Vs. A.B. 9, a clerk <strong>in</strong> the United States Embassy <strong>in</strong> London<br />

was alleged to have violated the <strong>of</strong>ficial secrets Act. The Clerk was<br />

prosecuted <strong>and</strong> convicted because his immunity was waived, <strong>and</strong><br />

he was not <strong>in</strong> the strict sense a diplomat.<br />

As far as crim<strong>in</strong>al process is concerned the <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent<br />

enjoys immunity 10.<br />

This would appear to be a necessary rule to avoid the<br />

<strong>in</strong>terference with <strong>diplomatic</strong> freedom, which is attendant upon<br />

penal proceed<strong>in</strong>gs. The convention declares a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent not<br />

to be liable to any form <strong>of</strong> arrest <strong>of</strong> detention.<br />

It provides:<br />

9 (1941) I. K. B. 454<br />

10. Article 31 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention<br />

11. Article 29<br />

The person <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent shall be<br />

<strong>in</strong>violable. He shall not be liable to any form<br />

<strong>of</strong> arrest or detention. The receiv<strong>in</strong>g state<br />

shall treat him with due respect <strong>and</strong> take<br />

all appropriate steps to prevent any attack<br />

on his person, freedom or dignity. 11


242<br />

Article 29 above accords absolute <strong>in</strong>violability to a<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agent even if he performs an act that lacks dignity; the<br />

Convention provides that such lack <strong>of</strong> dignity should be protected.<br />

This Article completely makes it impossible to regulate the<br />

excesses <strong>of</strong> diplomats.<br />

This Article also fails to take cognizance <strong>of</strong> emergency<br />

situations. Should a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent be allowed to fire a shot<br />

freely <strong>in</strong>to a crowd with a gun? Will any effort to restra<strong>in</strong> him<br />

amount to a violation <strong>of</strong> his person, freedom or dignity?<br />

What if he gets drunk <strong>and</strong> br<strong>and</strong>ishes a gun <strong>in</strong> a market<br />

place or is chok<strong>in</strong>g life out <strong>of</strong> a national <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state?<br />

Can this provision be rigidly applied? Should he not be arrested or<br />

stopped from threaten<strong>in</strong>g human life? Will this violate his<br />

immunity as provided for by Article 29?


243<br />

To this rule <strong>of</strong> immunity from arrest there is a possible<br />

exception <strong>in</strong> the case where a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent must be put under<br />

constra<strong>in</strong>t <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>terest <strong>of</strong> local order, though the constra<strong>in</strong>t<br />

must be no more than is necessary nor endure longer than<br />

necessary. 12 There are two famous historical precedents <strong>in</strong> the<br />

cases <strong>of</strong> Gyllenburg <strong>and</strong> Cellamase, both <strong>of</strong> them ambassadors<br />

who were arrested for conspiracy, the one aga<strong>in</strong>st George 1 <strong>in</strong><br />

1717, the other aga<strong>in</strong>st the Regent Orleans <strong>in</strong> 1718. 13 The arrest<br />

was justified by the emergency <strong>and</strong> by the necessity for preserv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

the security <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state.<br />

In respect <strong>of</strong> taxes generally, the convention exempts<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agents except <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> sales (purchase) tax,<br />

property taxes, estate duties, taxation on private <strong>in</strong>come, charges<br />

for services rendered, <strong>and</strong> stamp duties with respect to<br />

immovable property .14<br />

12.<br />

O’Connell, op. Cit. P. 364.<br />

13.<br />

Ibid<br />

14.<br />

Article 33 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention


244<br />

The Convention provides that the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state shall grant<br />

exemption from all customs duties on articles imported for <strong>of</strong>ficial<br />

use or for personal use <strong>of</strong> the diplomat <strong>and</strong> his family, <strong>and</strong><br />

personal baggage is to be exempt from <strong>in</strong>spection unless there are<br />

serious grounds for presum<strong>in</strong>g that it conta<strong>in</strong>s other than <strong>of</strong>ficial<br />

or personal items. 15<br />

The Convention also upholds the immunity <strong>of</strong> the<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agent from subpoena. He may not be summoned as a<br />

witness any more than as a party to proceed<strong>in</strong>gs, but his<br />

immunity can be waived. 16<br />

The Vienna Convention secures same <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>and</strong><br />

protection for a diplomat‟s private residence, papers <strong>and</strong> property<br />

as is secured to the premises <strong>of</strong> his mission. 17<br />

The Convention def<strong>in</strong>es the <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission premises to<br />

be the build<strong>in</strong>g or part <strong>of</strong> build<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>and</strong> the l<strong>and</strong> ancillary thereto,<br />

irrespective <strong>of</strong> ownership, used for the purpose <strong>of</strong> the mission<br />

<strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g the residence <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the mission. 18<br />

D.P. O‟Connell <strong>in</strong> try<strong>in</strong>g to draw up a dist<strong>in</strong>ction between<br />

immunity <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>violability says:<br />

15. Articles 34 <strong>and</strong> 36<br />

16. Articles 31 (2) <strong>and</strong> Article 32. Also see R. Vs. A.B. (1941) I.K.B 454.<br />

17. Article 30<br />

18. Article 1 (e)


245<br />

The term “<strong>in</strong>violability” is sometimes used<br />

to refer to the privileges which a diplomat<br />

enjoys from the legal process <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, when it means immunity,<br />

<strong>and</strong> at other times it is used <strong>in</strong> the more<br />

restricted sense <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> dignity,<br />

<strong>in</strong>volv<strong>in</strong>g the idea that the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state is<br />

responsible to the send<strong>in</strong>g one to ensure<br />

the most vigilant protection <strong>of</strong> the diplomat<br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises from violence <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>sult. 19.<br />

The above quotation connotes that the local authorities have<br />

limited rights <strong>of</strong> access to <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>tervention with<strong>in</strong> an embassy,<br />

<strong>and</strong> have a special duty to preserve it from <strong>in</strong>sult or <strong>in</strong>vasion. The<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state is responsible to the send<strong>in</strong>g one to ensure the<br />

most vigilant protection <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises from violence<br />

or <strong>in</strong>sult. This sums up the words <strong>of</strong> the convention:<br />

The premises <strong>of</strong> the mission shall be<br />

<strong>in</strong>violable. The agents <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state<br />

may not enter them except with the consent<br />

<strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the mission. 20<br />

19 As cited by Bloomfield, I. M. Fitzgerald, G.F.Crimes Aga<strong>in</strong>st Internationally Protected<br />

Persons:Prevention <strong>and</strong> Punishment – An Analysis <strong>of</strong> the UN Convention (London: Praeger publishers;<br />

1975) p. 31<br />

20. Article 22 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention.


246<br />

The premises <strong>of</strong> the mission, their furnish<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>and</strong> other<br />

property thereon <strong>and</strong> the means <strong>of</strong> transport <strong>of</strong> the mission shall<br />

also be immune from search, requisition, attachment or<br />

execution. 21 The convention however provides that the <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

premises be used only <strong>in</strong> a manner consistent with the functions<br />

<strong>of</strong> the mission. 22<br />

The <strong>diplomatic</strong> premise is also exempt from all national<br />

regional or municipal dues <strong>and</strong> taxes whether owned or leased,<br />

other than such as represent payment for specific services<br />

rendered. 23<br />

21 .Article 22(3).<br />

22. Article 44(3)<br />

23. Article 23(1).


247<br />

The provision <strong>of</strong> the 1961 convention above regard<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

<strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> premises <strong>of</strong> the mission takes no cognizance <strong>of</strong><br />

cases <strong>of</strong> emergency. For example, the situation <strong>in</strong> which the<br />

premises present a press<strong>in</strong>g danger to the surround<strong>in</strong>g district by<br />

reason <strong>of</strong> fire break<strong>in</strong>g out or use as a fir<strong>in</strong>g po<strong>in</strong>t, or to counter-<br />

measures <strong>in</strong> case <strong>of</strong> a use <strong>of</strong> the premises by the staff <strong>of</strong> the<br />

mission for unlawful purpose. In such situations, is the consent <strong>of</strong><br />

the head <strong>of</strong> the mission still necessary before the agents <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state enter the premises? If they enter the premises <strong>of</strong><br />

the mission without consent, will a defense <strong>of</strong> humanitarian<br />

<strong>in</strong>tervention avail them? In respect <strong>of</strong> the above argument, the<br />

suggestion has been raised that the right to self-defense may be<br />

applicable <strong>in</strong> this context. It was used to justify the search <strong>of</strong><br />

personnel leav<strong>in</strong>g the Libyan Embassy from where a shot was fired<br />

that killed a police constable follow<strong>in</strong>g a peaceful demonstration<br />

that took place outside the embassy on 17 April 1984, <strong>in</strong> London.<br />

Diplomatic relations was broken. In this case the possibility was<br />

noted that <strong>in</strong> certa<strong>in</strong> limited circumstances self-defense might be<br />

used to justify entry <strong>in</strong>to an embassy.


248<br />

5.3.2 Legal implications <strong>of</strong> the violation <strong>of</strong> premises <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> missions<br />

It is clear from the forego<strong>in</strong>g that the laws govern<strong>in</strong>g<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> relations are conta<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong> a number <strong>of</strong><br />

codified treaties which have already been enumerated <strong>in</strong> this<br />

work. Parties to treaties are under obligation to abide by the rules<br />

or pr<strong>in</strong>ciples conta<strong>in</strong>ed there<strong>in</strong>. In order to produce a calm <strong>and</strong><br />

peaceful atmosphere for the performance <strong>of</strong> duties, there have<br />

been <strong>in</strong>stances where parties to these treaties respect <strong>consular</strong> as<br />

well as <strong>diplomatic</strong> archives <strong>and</strong> the premises, which house them.<br />

Customarily, portions <strong>of</strong> such premises are occupied by the<br />

foreign <strong>in</strong>terests section <strong>of</strong> the mission or <strong>of</strong>fice <strong>of</strong> the protect<strong>in</strong>g<br />

powers. The <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> promises is so universally<br />

accepted that a protect<strong>in</strong>g power would be justified <strong>in</strong> protest<strong>in</strong>g<br />

on its own behalf any violation <strong>of</strong> such promises entrusted to its<br />

care. From the experience <strong>of</strong> World War II, a protect<strong>in</strong>g power may<br />

properly protect on its own <strong>in</strong>itiative any <strong>in</strong>fr<strong>in</strong>gement <strong>of</strong> its rights<br />

under the Geneva Prisoners <strong>of</strong> War Convention, if the local state<br />

<strong>and</strong> the protected power are parties to that convention.


249<br />

As a means <strong>of</strong> protect<strong>in</strong>g such <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises, it is<br />

important for the notification to be given to the occupy<strong>in</strong>g<br />

authorities as soon as possible <strong>in</strong> order that no pretext may exist<br />

for violat<strong>in</strong>g the <strong>diplomatic</strong> property even when under neutral<br />

protection.<br />

Furthermore, the <strong>of</strong>ficer assum<strong>in</strong>g the custody frequently<br />

raises over such premises the flag <strong>of</strong> the protect<strong>in</strong>g power. This is<br />

a procedure long sanctioned by usage, although it appears to have<br />

been employed less frequently <strong>in</strong> recent years than was formerly<br />

the case.<br />

When the Germans entered Lyon <strong>in</strong> July 1940, they forcibly<br />

broke <strong>in</strong>to the British consulate <strong>and</strong> removed a number <strong>of</strong><br />

correspondence files, despite the fact that the build<strong>in</strong>g was<br />

conspicuously posted with notices bear<strong>in</strong>g the seal <strong>of</strong> the<br />

American Consulate <strong>and</strong> the signature <strong>of</strong> the American Consul<br />

General.<br />

Hav<strong>in</strong>g breached these <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunities with impunity,<br />

the question that comes to m<strong>in</strong>d is what is the position <strong>of</strong> the law<br />

where these rules are violated? What remedies are available to the<br />

aggrieved parties? These <strong>and</strong> other issues will now be considered.


250<br />

It is common knowledge that whenever laws are drafted,<br />

provision is made for the <strong>in</strong>corporation <strong>of</strong> panel actions <strong>in</strong>to the<br />

<strong>in</strong>strument with a view to punish<strong>in</strong>g violators <strong>of</strong> the law. One<br />

would have expected that these treaties should have the<br />

correspond<strong>in</strong>g panel sections <strong>and</strong> appropriate remedies available<br />

to the aggrieved parties. Sadly, the Conventions are silent on the<br />

matter. In effect, this creates lacunae thereby leav<strong>in</strong>g room for<br />

parties to act <strong>in</strong> forms <strong>in</strong>consistent with the <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

obligations imposed on them as is conta<strong>in</strong>ed with<strong>in</strong> the treaties.<br />

However, aggrieved parties have the right to sue the<br />

default<strong>in</strong>g parties <strong>in</strong> a court <strong>of</strong> competent jurisdiction. The court<br />

that has jurisdiction to try matters relat<strong>in</strong>g to <strong>in</strong>ternational law is<br />

the International Court <strong>of</strong> Justice, established pr<strong>in</strong>cipally by<br />

Article 7 <strong>of</strong> the Charter <strong>of</strong> the United Nations.<br />

The Instrument govern<strong>in</strong>g the function<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> the court is the<br />

Statute <strong>of</strong> the ICJ, which forms an <strong>in</strong>tegral part <strong>of</strong> the Charter 24.<br />

The ICJ is vested with the jurisdiction to enterta<strong>in</strong> disputes<br />

between member nations on contentious issues as well as hav<strong>in</strong>g<br />

advisory capacity or disputes <strong>of</strong> an <strong>in</strong>ternational character, which<br />

the parities thereto submit to it. 25<br />

24 Article 92 <strong>of</strong> the U.N. Charter<br />

25 Article 65, 66, 67 <strong>and</strong> 68 <strong>of</strong> the Statute <strong>of</strong> the ICJ


251<br />

In its preamble, the U.N. Charter provides as follows:<br />

“We the peoples <strong>of</strong> the United Nations Determ<strong>in</strong>ed…<br />

…to establish conditions under which<br />

justice <strong>and</strong> respect for the obligations<br />

aris<strong>in</strong>g from treaties <strong>and</strong> other sources <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law can be ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong>ed… have<br />

resolved to comb<strong>in</strong>e our reports to<br />

accomplish these aims.<br />

What this provision stipulates is that states, which have<br />

submitted themselves as parties to <strong>in</strong>ternational treaties, are<br />

legally bound to fulfil <strong>and</strong> uphold the provisions conta<strong>in</strong>ed<br />

there<strong>in</strong>. Unfortunately, events which seem to be unfold<strong>in</strong>g show<br />

that states have little or no regard for these rules <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong><br />

mission premises.<br />

In some cases, despite the rul<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> the ICJ States have<br />

cont<strong>in</strong>uously <strong>and</strong> consistently failed to comply with decisions <strong>of</strong><br />

the court. One l<strong>and</strong>mark case is the celebrated case <strong>of</strong> U.S.A. V<br />

Islamic Republic <strong>of</strong> Iran. 26<br />

This matter was brought before the ICJ on the 29 th<br />

November, 1979. On the 4 th <strong>of</strong> November, Iranian authorities<br />

forcefully entered the American Embassy <strong>in</strong> Tehran, as well as the<br />

consulates <strong>in</strong> Tabriz <strong>and</strong> Shiraz.<br />

26 Cited <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational Legal Materials,Vol.19 No.1 General List No.64, (The american Soceity <strong>of</strong><br />

International Law, May, 1980) p.553


252<br />

Agents <strong>of</strong> the Iranian authorities <strong>in</strong> addition, held as hostage<br />

all staff <strong>of</strong> the mission <strong>and</strong> non-<strong>diplomatic</strong> American citizens,<br />

some <strong>of</strong> whom were taken <strong>and</strong> kept <strong>in</strong> the Iranian Foreign Affairs<br />

M<strong>in</strong>istry. The aim <strong>of</strong> the action <strong>of</strong> the Iranian authorities was to<br />

force the United States Government to bow to certa<strong>in</strong> dem<strong>and</strong>s<br />

such as stopp<strong>in</strong>g all forms <strong>of</strong> terrorist activities aga<strong>in</strong>st the Iranian<br />

government, <strong>and</strong> also to avoid meddl<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternal affairs <strong>of</strong><br />

Iran.<br />

The U.S Government on its part, made a public outcry before<br />

proceed<strong>in</strong>g to the ICJ. She was dem<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g the Court to order the<br />

immediate <strong>and</strong> unconditional release <strong>of</strong> All-American hostages<br />

(the <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> non-diplomats alike). And the immediate<br />

vacation <strong>of</strong> the promises, which was be<strong>in</strong>g, violated contrary to<br />

norms <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational conventions <strong>in</strong> force between the two<br />

countries <strong>and</strong> long established rules <strong>of</strong> general <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

That the Iranian government be made to pay reparations for the<br />

violations <strong>in</strong> a sum to be determ<strong>in</strong>ed by the ICJ.


253<br />

Iran on its part, refused to enter appearance <strong>in</strong> the court,<br />

nor was it represented when hear<strong>in</strong>g commenced <strong>in</strong> March 1980,<br />

despite the fact that Iran had been put on notice long before that<br />

date. The Iranian authorities cont<strong>in</strong>ued the subjection <strong>of</strong> the<br />

embassy premises to occupation <strong>and</strong> embassy staff (<strong>and</strong> other<br />

Americans) as hostage. This gave rise to repeated <strong>and</strong> multiple<br />

breaches by the U.S Government, <strong>of</strong> the applicable rules <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law. The ICJ held that Iran had <strong>in</strong>deed violated <strong>and</strong><br />

was still violat<strong>in</strong>g obligations owed by it to the U.S. under the<br />

conventions; <strong>and</strong> must take steps to redress the situation<br />

culm<strong>in</strong>at<strong>in</strong>g from the events <strong>of</strong> the 4 th <strong>of</strong> November, 1979. In<br />

addition, Iran was under an obligation to make reparation to the<br />

U.S. government, the form <strong>and</strong> amount <strong>of</strong> such reparation was to<br />

be settled by the court. Despite the pronouncements <strong>of</strong> the court,<br />

Iran refused to comply with the decision. This led the U.S.<br />

government to impose trade sanctions upon Iran. Indeed, this is a<br />

clear-cut case <strong>of</strong> gross violation <strong>of</strong> mission premises <strong>and</strong> a total<br />

disregard for court orders, which is tantamount to contempt <strong>of</strong><br />

court.


254<br />

It appears from the forego<strong>in</strong>g that judgements <strong>of</strong> the ICJ<br />

cannot be enforced. This may not be unconnected with the fact<br />

that there is no effective mach<strong>in</strong>ery for the execution <strong>and</strong><br />

enforcement <strong>of</strong> the courts judgement, thereby creat<strong>in</strong>g yet another<br />

lacuna <strong>in</strong> the statute, <strong>and</strong> mak<strong>in</strong>g a mockery <strong>of</strong> the idea <strong>of</strong><br />

br<strong>in</strong>g<strong>in</strong>g court actions aga<strong>in</strong>st recalcitrant states.<br />

Article 94(2) <strong>of</strong> the Charter provides:<br />

If any party to a case fails to perform<br />

obligations <strong>in</strong>cumbent upon a state under a<br />

judgement rendered by the Court, the other<br />

party may have recourse to the Security<br />

Council, which may, if it deems necessary,<br />

make recommendations or decide upon<br />

measures to be taken to give effect to the<br />

judgement.<br />

As a result <strong>of</strong> the nonchalant attitude <strong>of</strong> States <strong>in</strong> comply<strong>in</strong>g<br />

with court orders, aggrieved states are sometimes forced to take<br />

retaliatory steps to show their disenchantment over such<br />

<strong>in</strong>cidents <strong>of</strong> violation like the U.S did <strong>in</strong> the USA V IRAN case. This<br />

certa<strong>in</strong>ly does not augur well for either party as well as other<br />

members <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational community as this could load to an<br />

unpleasant scourge <strong>of</strong> war.


255<br />

5.3.3 Measures taken aga<strong>in</strong>st the violation <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

immunities<br />

Follow<strong>in</strong>g the <strong>in</strong>cessant <strong>and</strong> arbitrary <strong>in</strong>crease <strong>in</strong> the rate <strong>of</strong><br />

violations <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunities, <strong>and</strong> privileges especially as it<br />

relates to attacks <strong>and</strong> occupation <strong>of</strong> mission premises, the United<br />

Nations General Assembly Adopted a convention <strong>in</strong> 1973.<br />

This was designed to prevent <strong>and</strong> punish crimes aga<strong>in</strong>st<br />

persons enjoy<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>ternational protection, with the <strong>in</strong>clusion <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agents. The Convention provides for the co-operation <strong>of</strong><br />

states <strong>in</strong> activity oppos<strong>in</strong>g such violations. The Convention further<br />

provides that each <strong>of</strong> its signatories must <strong>in</strong>itiate crim<strong>in</strong>al<br />

proceed<strong>in</strong>gs aga<strong>in</strong>st or else extradite to the correspond<strong>in</strong>g state<br />

persons on its territory who are accused <strong>of</strong> attack<strong>in</strong>g mission<br />

premises or means <strong>of</strong> transportation, murder or kidnapp<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong><br />

persons enjoy<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>ternational protection.<br />

The General Committee <strong>of</strong> the General Assembly adopted a<br />

resolution by which it explored all violations <strong>of</strong> the pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>and</strong><br />

rules <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law govern<strong>in</strong>g <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong><br />

relations.


256<br />

This recommendation was given on 15 th <strong>of</strong> December 1980.<br />

This implored all states to observe <strong>and</strong> implement them <strong>and</strong><br />

strongly condemned all acts <strong>of</strong> violence aga<strong>in</strong>st <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>consular</strong> missions <strong>and</strong> representatives.<br />

It urged <strong>in</strong> particular all states to ensure, <strong>in</strong> conformity with<br />

their <strong>in</strong>ternational obligations, the protection, security <strong>and</strong> safety<br />

<strong>of</strong> such missions <strong>and</strong> representative with<strong>in</strong> their jurisdiction,<br />

<strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g tak<strong>in</strong>g measures to prohibit their illegal activities<br />

aga<strong>in</strong>st their security <strong>and</strong> safety by persons, groups or<br />

organizations. 27<br />

Other measures <strong>in</strong>clude the imposition <strong>of</strong> sanctions, which<br />

could be economic, political <strong>and</strong> social <strong>in</strong> nature or worse still, the<br />

severance <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> ties, until strict compliance is adhered to.<br />

A not so common measure may be a recommendation by the<br />

United Nations Security Council to expel any members who<br />

consistently <strong>and</strong> persistently violate the pr<strong>in</strong>ciples conta<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong><br />

the charter. 28<br />

5.3.4 Consular Officers<br />

That the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state owes a special duty <strong>of</strong> protection to a<br />

consul is a rule recognised <strong>in</strong> several Consular Conventions. An<br />

27 Yearbook <strong>of</strong> the United Naitons, (1980) Vol. 34.<br />

28 Artcle 6, could be read together with Article 94 (2), U.N. Charter


257<br />

example <strong>of</strong> this is the Pan-Convention on Consular Agents 1928<br />

<strong>and</strong> the United States - United K<strong>in</strong>gdom Consular Convention<br />

1951.<br />

The 1963 Vienna Convention on <strong>consular</strong> Relations<br />

prescribes that consuls must respect the laws <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state <strong>and</strong> may not carry on for pr<strong>of</strong>essional pr<strong>of</strong>it any pr<strong>of</strong>essional<br />

or commercial activity.<br />

The <strong>consular</strong> convention is more restrictive than the<br />

correspond<strong>in</strong>g section <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> convention, which states<br />

unequivocally that the person <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent shall be<br />

<strong>in</strong>violable. He shall not be liable to any form <strong>of</strong> arrest or detention.<br />

The receiv<strong>in</strong>g state shall treat him with due respect <strong>and</strong> shall take<br />

all appropriate steps to prevent any attack on his person, freedom<br />

or dignity. In contrast, the convention on <strong>consular</strong> relations<br />

provides:<br />

29. Article 40, Vienna convention on <strong>consular</strong> Relations, 1963.<br />

The receiv<strong>in</strong>g state shall treat <strong>consular</strong><br />

<strong>of</strong>ficers with due respect <strong>and</strong> shall take all<br />

appropriate steps to prevent any attack on<br />

their persons, freedom or dignity. 29


258<br />

This provision on protection <strong>of</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers does not use<br />

the word “<strong>in</strong>violable”. Rather it provides only that the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state shall treat him with respect <strong>and</strong> protect him from attack on<br />

his freedom, person or dignity.<br />

As compared to that <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers, the <strong>consular</strong><br />

<strong>of</strong>ficers can be arrested or deta<strong>in</strong>ed pend<strong>in</strong>g trial if they commit a<br />

grave crime, when duly ordered by the competent judicial<br />

authority.<br />

In such cases only they may be imprisoned or otherwise<br />

restricted, provided their steps are <strong>in</strong> execution <strong>of</strong> a judicial<br />

decision <strong>of</strong> f<strong>in</strong>al effect. 30 Consular <strong>of</strong>ficers are entitled to immunity<br />

from civil <strong>and</strong> adm<strong>in</strong>istrative jurisdiction from the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state<br />

<strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> acts performed <strong>in</strong> the exercise <strong>of</strong> <strong>consular</strong> functions.<br />

Two civil actions not covered by immunity are those aris<strong>in</strong>g<br />

out <strong>of</strong> a contract concluded by a <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficer. And that <strong>of</strong> a<br />

<strong>consular</strong> employee <strong>in</strong> which he did not contract expressly or<br />

impliedly as an agent <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state, <strong>and</strong> those by a third<br />

state party for damage aris<strong>in</strong>g from an accident <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state caused by a vehicle, vessel or aircraft. 31<br />

30. Article 41 (1-3)<br />

31. McClanahan, G.V. Diplomatic Immunity: Pr<strong>in</strong>ciples, Practices, <strong>and</strong> Problems. (London : C. Hurst &<br />

Co. Publishers ltd.; 1989) P. 60


259<br />

In contrast to <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents, the members <strong>of</strong> a <strong>consular</strong><br />

post are expected to serve as witnesses <strong>in</strong> court <strong>in</strong> some cases.<br />

They are however not obliged to give evidence or produce<br />

documents concern<strong>in</strong>g matters connected with the exercise <strong>of</strong><br />

their function. 32<br />

A <strong>consular</strong> witness has some significant privileges <strong>in</strong> that no<br />

coercive measure or penalty may be applied to him should he<br />

decl<strong>in</strong>e to give evidence.<br />

This provision could have considerable importance to a<br />

consul <strong>in</strong> some develop<strong>in</strong>g or highly authoritarian countries.<br />

The Vienna convention provides for exemption from taxation<br />

<strong>of</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficers, employees <strong>and</strong> members <strong>of</strong> their families<br />

form<strong>in</strong>g part <strong>of</strong> their households, except <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> sales <strong>and</strong><br />

purchase tax, estate duties <strong>and</strong> taxation on private <strong>in</strong>comes.<br />

Personal baggage may only be <strong>in</strong>spected if there is serious reason<br />

to believe that it conta<strong>in</strong>s articles other than those exempt from<br />

duty. 33<br />

32. Article 31.<br />

33. O’Connell, op. Cit. P. 372.


260<br />

In relation to <strong>consular</strong> premises, the convention provides<br />

that local authorities cannot enter the <strong>consular</strong> premises except<br />

with the consent <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the <strong>consular</strong> post or <strong>of</strong> his<br />

designee, or <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g<br />

states… 34<br />

In case <strong>of</strong> emergency requir<strong>in</strong>g prompt protective action, the<br />

consent <strong>of</strong> head <strong>of</strong> the <strong>consular</strong> post may be assumed, another<br />

departure from the case with <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises.<br />

5.3.5 Special Missions<br />

Members <strong>of</strong> special missions <strong>of</strong> high rank <strong>and</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

staff <strong>of</strong> the special mission enjoy immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges to the<br />

extent provided by the Vienna convention on Diplomatic Relations<br />

for Diplomatic agents <strong>and</strong> their families. The technical <strong>and</strong><br />

adm<strong>in</strong>istrative staff <strong>of</strong> special missions enjoy the same immunity<br />

<strong>and</strong> privileges like those <strong>of</strong> a Diplomatic mission as prescribed by<br />

the 1961 Vienna convention. Specifically, the privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities <strong>of</strong> members <strong>of</strong> special missions 1969.<br />

The personal <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> members <strong>of</strong> the special mission<br />

is <strong>in</strong>terest<strong>in</strong>gly provided for by Article 29 <strong>of</strong> the 1969 convention<br />

just like that <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent under the 1961 convention.<br />

34. Article 31(2)


261<br />

The premises <strong>of</strong> the special mission is provided for <strong>in</strong> Article<br />

25 <strong>of</strong> the 1969 convention. In contrast to the case <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

agents under the 1961 convention, the 1969 convention provides:<br />

… The agents <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g states may<br />

not enter the said premises, except with the<br />

consent <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the special mission<br />

or, if appropriate, <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the<br />

permanent <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission <strong>of</strong> the<br />

send<strong>in</strong>g state accredited to the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state. Such consent may be assumed <strong>in</strong><br />

case <strong>of</strong> fire or other disaster that seriously<br />

endangers public safety, <strong>and</strong> only <strong>in</strong> the<br />

event that it has not been possible to obta<strong>in</strong><br />

the express consent <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the<br />

special mission or, where appropriate, <strong>of</strong><br />

the head <strong>of</strong> the permanent mission. 35<br />

In comment<strong>in</strong>g on Article 25 <strong>of</strong> the Draft Convention<br />

prepared by it, the ILC stated as follows:<br />

35. Article 25(1) <strong>of</strong> the convention on special Missions, 1969.<br />

The <strong>of</strong>ficers <strong>of</strong> special missions are quite<br />

established <strong>in</strong> premises which already enjoy<br />

the privileges <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>violability. This is so if<br />

they are <strong>in</strong> the build<strong>in</strong>g occupied by the<br />

permanent <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission <strong>of</strong> the<br />

send<strong>in</strong>g state. But if the special mission<br />

occupies premises <strong>of</strong> its own, they must, <strong>of</strong><br />

course, enjoy <strong>in</strong>violability.


262<br />

The 1969 Convention stipulates that the private<br />

accommodation <strong>of</strong> the representatives <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>in</strong> their<br />

special mission <strong>and</strong> members <strong>of</strong> its <strong>diplomatic</strong> staff shall enjoy the<br />

same <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>and</strong> protection as the premises <strong>of</strong> the special<br />

mission. 36<br />

In this regard the 1969 Convention reproduces without any<br />

change <strong>of</strong> substance the provisions <strong>of</strong> Article 30 <strong>of</strong> the 1961<br />

convention.<br />

5.3.6 Heads Of State And Heads Of Government<br />

Under <strong>in</strong>ternational law, as exceptional<br />

perfection attaches a person with the status<br />

<strong>of</strong> head <strong>of</strong> State or head <strong>of</strong> government.<br />

Such a person is entitled to special<br />

protection whenever he is <strong>in</strong> a foreign state<br />

<strong>and</strong> whatever may be the nature <strong>of</strong> his visit<strong>of</strong>ficial,<br />

un<strong>of</strong>ficial or private. 37<br />

A head <strong>of</strong> state or government who travels abroad is<br />

protected by customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law. Problems <strong>of</strong> protection<br />

may arise if no prior arrangements had been made for such visit,<br />

or where the visitor‟s identity is not known. If both <strong>of</strong> these are <strong>in</strong><br />

place, the protection due to this category <strong>of</strong> person is at no time <strong>in</strong><br />

doubt. The statement below confirms this further:<br />

36. Article 30<br />

37. Bloomfield <strong>and</strong> Fitzgerald, Op. Cit. P. 28.


And by the one below:<br />

263<br />

States are obliged by <strong>in</strong>ternational law to<br />

provide legal protection for this class <strong>of</strong><br />

persons by enact<strong>in</strong>g legislations mak<strong>in</strong>g<br />

<strong>of</strong>fences aga<strong>in</strong>st these persons more<br />

severely punishable than <strong>in</strong> the case <strong>of</strong><br />

comparable <strong>of</strong>fences aga<strong>in</strong>st private<br />

<strong>in</strong>dividuals. 38<br />

The head <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state, when he<br />

leads a special mission, shall enjoy <strong>in</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state or <strong>in</strong> a third state the<br />

facilities, privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities<br />

accorded by <strong>in</strong>ternational law to heads <strong>of</strong><br />

state on an <strong>of</strong>ficial visit. 39<br />

The protection outl<strong>in</strong>ed above extends to heads <strong>of</strong><br />

government, the m<strong>in</strong>ister for foreign affairs <strong>and</strong> other persons <strong>of</strong><br />

high rank, when they take part <strong>in</strong> a special mission <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state. 40 This agrees with Article 50(2) <strong>of</strong> the ILC Draft.<br />

It is pert<strong>in</strong>ent to note that the expression “persons <strong>of</strong> high<br />

rank” does not refer to persons who, because <strong>of</strong> the functions they<br />

perform <strong>in</strong> a mission, are given by their state a particularly high<br />

rank. But to persons who hold positions <strong>in</strong> their home states <strong>and</strong><br />

are temporarily called upon to take part <strong>in</strong> a delegation to an<br />

organ or a conference.<br />

38. Ibid.<br />

39. Article 21(1) <strong>of</strong> the convention on special missions, 1969.<br />

40. Article 21(2).


264<br />

In Canada, the provision made for the visits <strong>of</strong> heads <strong>of</strong> state<br />

<strong>and</strong> other dignitaries from abroad <strong>in</strong>cludes arrangements on<br />

behalf <strong>of</strong> the government <strong>of</strong> Canada for special protection <strong>and</strong><br />

security guards <strong>of</strong> honour <strong>and</strong> ceremony on the occasion <strong>of</strong> visits<br />

abroad by the governor-general <strong>and</strong> other personages represent<strong>in</strong>g<br />

Canada. The protocol division <strong>of</strong> the Department <strong>of</strong> External<br />

Affairs cooperates with Canadian missions abroad <strong>in</strong><br />

arrangements for receiv<strong>in</strong>g dist<strong>in</strong>guished visitors. 41<br />

5.3.7 Representatives To Intergovernmental Organizations<br />

Exist<strong>in</strong>g provisions concern<strong>in</strong>g the personal <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong><br />

representatives <strong>of</strong> members to the UN are found <strong>in</strong> the convention<br />

on the privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>of</strong> the United Nations, 1946,<br />

Article IV sections 11-16.<br />

The question <strong>of</strong> the personal <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> representatives<br />

to other <strong>in</strong>tergovernmental organizations is covered by article v<br />

sections 13-17 <strong>of</strong> the convention on the privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities<br />

<strong>of</strong> the specialized Agencies, 1947.<br />

The 1971 ILC Draft Articles on the representation <strong>of</strong> states<br />

<strong>in</strong> their relations with <strong>in</strong>ternational organizations a series <strong>of</strong><br />

provisions that greatly extended the concept <strong>in</strong>cluded <strong>in</strong> the two<br />

conventions mentioned above.<br />

41. Bloomfield <strong>and</strong> Fitzgerald, loc. Cit.


265<br />

Article 28 is concerned with the personal <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> the<br />

person <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> mission <strong>and</strong> members <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> staff<br />

<strong>of</strong> the mission.<br />

Article 29 which extend the same protection to the private<br />

residence <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the mission <strong>and</strong> members <strong>of</strong> the<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> staff <strong>of</strong> the mission <strong>and</strong> to their papers,<br />

correspondence, <strong>and</strong> property as given to <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents under<br />

the 1961 convention. Article 54 provides for the <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong><br />

premises <strong>of</strong> delegations to organs <strong>and</strong> conferences. Article 60<br />

provides for the <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> private accommodation <strong>and</strong><br />

property.<br />

The provision <strong>of</strong> particular <strong>in</strong>terest among others, is Article<br />

22 (2) which states:<br />

5.3.8. International Officials<br />

In effect that the host state is under a<br />

special duty to take all appropriate steps to<br />

protect the premises <strong>of</strong> the mission to an<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational organization aga<strong>in</strong>st any<br />

<strong>in</strong>trusion or damage <strong>and</strong> to prevent any<br />

disturbance <strong>of</strong> the peace <strong>of</strong> the mission or<br />

impairment <strong>of</strong> its dignity.<br />

International <strong>of</strong>ficials are not diplomats, <strong>and</strong> their<br />

immunities must be justified on a functional basis. In many<br />

<strong>in</strong>stances the functionaries will be the nationals <strong>of</strong> the states


266<br />

where jurisdiction is <strong>in</strong> issue, whereas this is rare <strong>in</strong> the case <strong>of</strong><br />

diplomats. The convention on privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>of</strong> the UN<br />

does not dist<strong>in</strong>guish between national <strong>and</strong> non-nationals.<br />

Only the Secretary-General <strong>and</strong> the Assistant Secretaries-<br />

General <strong>of</strong> the United Nations are assimilated to diplomats for<br />

immunity purposes. 42 Other <strong>of</strong>ficials are only immune with<br />

respect to acts performed <strong>in</strong> their <strong>of</strong>ficial capacity. 43 A similar<br />

dist<strong>in</strong>ction between executive heads <strong>and</strong> other <strong>of</strong>ficials exist <strong>in</strong> the<br />

case <strong>of</strong> Specialized Agencies.<br />

The Convention on the privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>of</strong> the<br />

United Nations secures to all <strong>of</strong>ficials <strong>of</strong> the United Nations<br />

immunity from taxation on their salaries, 44 <strong>and</strong> this has been<br />

extended to Specialized Agencies.<br />

Officials are permitted to travel freely by the convention, <strong>and</strong><br />

to this end several <strong>of</strong> the conventions provide for degrees <strong>of</strong><br />

immunity from visa <strong>and</strong> other travel restrictions. The convention<br />

provides that the United Nations might issue its own laissez-<br />

passer, which members recognize. 45 The convention also provides<br />

42. Article V section 19 <strong>of</strong> the convention on Privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunities.<br />

43. Article V section 18 (a)<br />

44. Article V section 18(a)<br />

45. Article VII section 24


267<br />

for immunities for experts on United Nations missions, while<br />

travel<strong>in</strong>g to <strong>and</strong> from <strong>and</strong> actually on the mission. 46<br />

The purpose <strong>of</strong> grant<strong>in</strong>g immunity to the <strong>of</strong>ficials is merely<br />

to protect them from persecutions. Apart from matters that relate<br />

to the organization, <strong>of</strong>ficials are bound to the rules regulat<strong>in</strong>g<br />

society <strong>in</strong> the same way as other citizens.<br />

The convention further exempts <strong>of</strong>ficials <strong>of</strong> the UN all taxes<br />

on salaries. Provisions close to this are also provided <strong>in</strong> the first<br />

schedule <strong>of</strong> the Diplomatic privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunities Act, laws <strong>of</strong><br />

the federation <strong>of</strong> Nigeria, cap 99, 1990. 47<br />

As Bowett argues, the exemption from taxation is not<br />

designed to create a privileged class. But simply to secure equality<br />

<strong>of</strong> salary treatment to <strong>of</strong>ficials regardless <strong>of</strong> nationality, <strong>and</strong> to<br />

avoid the payment <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>dividual member states large sums by way<br />

<strong>of</strong> taxation on their nationals from funds contributed by the<br />

totality <strong>of</strong> the members for the general purpose <strong>of</strong> the<br />

organization. 48<br />

46. Article VI sections 22 <strong>and</strong> 23.<br />

47. Section 11 (2)(a) <strong>of</strong> the Nigeria Act , cap. 99, 1990.<br />

48. Bowett, D.M. The law <strong>of</strong> International Institutions (London : Stevens & Sons Ltd.; 1975) p.<br />

309.


268<br />

However, <strong>of</strong>ficials <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational organizations are not<br />

exempted from charges payable <strong>in</strong> return for specific services<br />

rendered to them.<br />

In the case <strong>of</strong> Leevwen Vs. City <strong>of</strong> Rotterdam which was<br />

decided at the European court <strong>of</strong> Appeal at The Hague 49. The bone<br />

<strong>of</strong> contention was the Immunity from <strong>in</strong>come tax enjoyable by<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficials <strong>of</strong> the EEC. The importance <strong>of</strong> this case is the pr<strong>in</strong>ciple<br />

which it lays down <strong>and</strong> which can be applied to the <strong>of</strong>ficials <strong>of</strong> any<br />

other <strong>in</strong>ternational organization. The pla<strong>in</strong>tiff went to court<br />

challeng<strong>in</strong>g the Dutch Authorities umpir<strong>in</strong>g a fee <strong>of</strong> 120 flor<strong>in</strong>s on<br />

him. He argued that Article 12 <strong>of</strong> the protocol on the privileges<br />

<strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>of</strong> the EEC exempted <strong>of</strong>ficials <strong>of</strong> the community<br />

from pay<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>come tax on their salaries, <strong>and</strong> that therefore no<br />

account should be taken <strong>of</strong> his <strong>of</strong>ficial salary.<br />

The court held that a dist<strong>in</strong>ction must be made <strong>in</strong><br />

community law as <strong>in</strong> national law between taxes, which were<br />

levied to meet the general needs <strong>of</strong> the authorities <strong>and</strong> charges,<br />

which were payable <strong>in</strong> return for specific services. It po<strong>in</strong>ted out<br />

that Article 3 <strong>of</strong> the protocol exempted the community from all<br />

49 Ibid.


269<br />

detect taxes but not taxes or charges which simply represented<br />

payment for public utility services. 50<br />

In relation to <strong>in</strong>ternational forces, states who accept their<br />

presence as a matter <strong>of</strong> obligation grant privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities. International forces are however enjo<strong>in</strong>ed to respect<br />

the local laws <strong>of</strong> the state. They also enjoy total immunity from<br />

crim<strong>in</strong>al jurisdiction <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial acts. Official acts fall<br />

exclusively to the determ<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> comm<strong>and</strong>er <strong>of</strong> the force. The<br />

force may also enjoy exemption from taxation <strong>and</strong> custom duties.<br />

There is also freedom <strong>of</strong> communication, use <strong>of</strong> uniform, use <strong>of</strong><br />

flags <strong>and</strong> other <strong>of</strong>ficial mark<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>and</strong> identification.<br />

Article 19 <strong>of</strong> the ICJ Statutes <strong>and</strong> the 1946 agreement<br />

between the Court <strong>and</strong> the Netherl<strong>and</strong>s grants judges <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficials<br />

<strong>of</strong> the Court <strong>diplomatic</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>in</strong> the exercise<br />

<strong>of</strong> their functions <strong>and</strong> outside their own country. The General<br />

Assembly also <strong>in</strong> resolution 901 <strong>of</strong> 1946 extended these<br />

immunities to counsels <strong>and</strong> advocates appear<strong>in</strong>g before the court.<br />

50. Reueil de la Jurisprudence, 14(1968) p. 63.


270<br />

5.4 OTHER PERSONS BENEFITING FROM PRIVILEGES AND<br />

IMMUNITIES<br />

Diplomatic agents, that is to say the head <strong>of</strong> mission <strong>and</strong><br />

others <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> rank, have traditionally been granted a degree<br />

<strong>of</strong> immunity which covers both their pr<strong>of</strong>essional activities <strong>and</strong><br />

their private acts as <strong>in</strong>dividuals – <strong>in</strong> short, the totality <strong>of</strong> their<br />

existence whilst <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state 51. This „ global‟ pr<strong>in</strong>ciple is<br />

ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong> the Vienna Convention. This provides that<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agents, with the exception <strong>of</strong> those who are nationals<br />

<strong>of</strong>, or permanently resident <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state shall receive the<br />

full array <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities listed <strong>in</strong> Articles 29 to 36<br />

relat<strong>in</strong>g to personal <strong>in</strong>violability, immunity from jurisdiction <strong>and</strong><br />

fiscal <strong>and</strong> parafiscal immunities. The question arises as to<br />

whether, <strong>and</strong> if so to what extent, the same benefits should be<br />

given to the rema<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g categories <strong>of</strong> staff <strong>and</strong> to other persons<br />

connected with the mission. The Vienna Conference, like the<br />

International Law Commission before it experienced considerable<br />

difficulty over this issue on which, <strong>in</strong>deed, more time was spent<br />

than on any other provision <strong>of</strong> the Convention, before a f<strong>in</strong>al<br />

solution was achieved.<br />

51 This qualification extends to all persons who are nationals <strong>of</strong>, or permanently resident <strong>in</strong>, the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state.


271<br />

5.4.1 Non-Diplomatic Members Of The Staff<br />

The International Law Commission declared, beyond the<br />

undisputed rule. That <strong>diplomatic</strong> members <strong>of</strong> a mission receive<br />

the same privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities as the head <strong>of</strong> mission, there<br />

is – or was - no uniformity <strong>in</strong> the <strong>practice</strong> <strong>of</strong> States <strong>in</strong> decid<strong>in</strong>g<br />

which members <strong>of</strong> the staff <strong>of</strong> a mission should enjoy privileges<br />

<strong>and</strong> immunities 52. Some states give privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities on a<br />

liberal basis to members <strong>of</strong> the adm<strong>in</strong>istrative staff, <strong>and</strong> a few<br />

even to members <strong>of</strong> the service staff, while other States grant none<br />

at all. In the absence <strong>of</strong> any fixed law, the preparation <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Convention required a choice to be made. This was between<br />

evaluat<strong>in</strong>g the task performed by the subord<strong>in</strong>ate categories <strong>of</strong><br />

staff as part <strong>of</strong> the overall operation <strong>of</strong> the mission, <strong>and</strong> decid<strong>in</strong>g<br />

to what extent privilege <strong>and</strong> immunities should be accorded on a<br />

basis <strong>of</strong> the function <strong>of</strong> the particular <strong>in</strong>dividual, or group <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>dividuals, concerned. This choice broadly co<strong>in</strong>cides with that<br />

between the different forms, which any regulation <strong>of</strong> the matter<br />

might take. That is between a general <strong>and</strong> uniform rule, founded<br />

on what was considered necessary <strong>and</strong> reasonable from the st<strong>and</strong>-<br />

po<strong>in</strong>t <strong>of</strong> the mission as a whole, <strong>and</strong> the adoption <strong>of</strong> m<strong>in</strong>imum<br />

52 Yearbook <strong>of</strong> the International Law Commission, 1958, vol. 11, p. 101.


272<br />

provisions, permitt<strong>in</strong>g States to make such additional<br />

arrangements as they might wish. The solution adopted was<br />

largely <strong>in</strong> accordance with the former approach, whereby the<br />

accent was placed on the notion <strong>of</strong> mission as an entity, requir<strong>in</strong>g<br />

some privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities for each <strong>of</strong> its component parts,<br />

rather than on a scrupulous application <strong>of</strong> the test <strong>of</strong> functional<br />

necessity <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>dividual <strong>in</strong>stances:<br />

(a) Adm<strong>in</strong>istrative <strong>and</strong> technical staff<br />

In the case <strong>of</strong> adm<strong>in</strong>istrative <strong>and</strong> technical staff, there were<br />

two counter- tendencies. It was argued, firstly, that persons <strong>in</strong><br />

this category were <strong>in</strong> as much need <strong>of</strong> complete protection as<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agents. And should therefore be assimilated to the<br />

position <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents: they perform important tasks <strong>and</strong><br />

frequently had access to confidential materials - <strong>in</strong>deed, a cipher<br />

clerk might well have possession <strong>of</strong> more valuable <strong>in</strong>formation<br />

than a low rank<strong>in</strong>g diplomat. Furthermore, especially <strong>in</strong> small<br />

missions, it would be very hard to dist<strong>in</strong>guish, accord<strong>in</strong>g to<br />

function, the work <strong>of</strong> someone <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> rank <strong>and</strong> that <strong>of</strong> a<br />

member <strong>of</strong> the adm<strong>in</strong>istrative <strong>and</strong> technical staff. As aga<strong>in</strong>st this<br />

it was contended that these considerations, whilst they might be<br />

relevant <strong>in</strong> the case <strong>of</strong> some adm<strong>in</strong>istrative <strong>and</strong> technical staff


273<br />

members, did not apply to all. The number <strong>of</strong> people <strong>in</strong>volved<br />

might be large, perhaps over 5,000 <strong>in</strong> many capitals, <strong>and</strong> the<br />

persons <strong>in</strong> the lower categories were, it was said, more prone to<br />

abuse their privileges than those <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> rank.<br />

The debate at the Vienna Conference, follow<strong>in</strong>g long<br />

discussions <strong>in</strong> the Committee <strong>of</strong> the whole <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> plenary session,<br />

f<strong>in</strong>ally centred on the extent <strong>of</strong> the jurisdiction immunity to be<br />

accorded to members <strong>of</strong> the adm<strong>in</strong>istrative <strong>and</strong> technical staff.<br />

The danger that the Conference would adjourn without agreement<br />

on this issue was averted by acceptance <strong>of</strong> a compromise<br />

proposal 53 whereby it was agreed that staff members <strong>in</strong> this<br />

category should enjoy privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities specified <strong>in</strong><br />

Articles 29 to 35:<br />

except that the immunity from civil <strong>and</strong><br />

adm<strong>in</strong>istrative jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

State specified <strong>in</strong> paragraph 1 <strong>of</strong> Article 31<br />

shall not extend to acts performed outside<br />

the course <strong>of</strong> their duties 54<br />

In addition, the case <strong>of</strong> the customs privileges listed <strong>in</strong><br />

Article 36 accords these staff members exemption only <strong>in</strong> respect<br />

<strong>of</strong> articles imported at the time <strong>of</strong> first <strong>in</strong>stallation; they do not<br />

53 A/CONF.20/ L.21 <strong>and</strong> Add. 2, based on a United K<strong>in</strong>gdom amendment A/CONF.20/l.20<br />

54 Article 37, paragraph 2.


274<br />

therefore enjoy any privileged with respect to goods imported<br />

subsequently, nor is their personal baggage exempt from<br />

<strong>in</strong>spection.<br />

(b) Service Staff<br />

The position <strong>of</strong> service staff is easier to settle.<br />

In the case <strong>of</strong> adm<strong>in</strong>istrative <strong>and</strong> technical staff the problem<br />

turned on the extent to which they were to be assimilated to<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agents. That issue could not be raised at all with<br />

respect to service staff: for them the matter to be determ<strong>in</strong>ed was<br />

which immunities were to be specifically granted. Article 37(3)<br />

provides that service staff are to be accorded immunity „<strong>in</strong> respect<br />

<strong>of</strong> acts performed <strong>in</strong> the course <strong>of</strong> their duties‟, thus leav<strong>in</strong>g them<br />

subject, except to that extent, to crim<strong>in</strong>al as well as to civil<br />

jurisdiction, to measures <strong>of</strong> execution <strong>and</strong> to the obligation to give<br />

evidence. They also obta<strong>in</strong> „exemption, subject to the conditions<br />

laid down <strong>in</strong> Article 33, from the social security provisions <strong>in</strong> force<br />

<strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g State.<br />

5.4.2 Persons Connected With Members Of The Staff<br />

(a) Family members<br />

The only family members who, by virtue <strong>of</strong> their relationship,<br />

may claim privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities are those connected with


275<br />

<strong>in</strong>dividual members <strong>of</strong> the first two categories <strong>of</strong> staff, namely<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agents <strong>and</strong> adm<strong>in</strong>istrative <strong>and</strong> technical personnel. As<br />

regards members <strong>of</strong> the family <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent, there was<br />

relatively little disagreement that, <strong>in</strong> accordance with st<strong>and</strong>ard<br />

<strong>practice</strong>, such persons should receive the same privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities as are accorded to <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents themselves 55.<br />

Except when the family members are nationals <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state, they therefore enjoy the benefits <strong>in</strong> Article 29 to 36.<br />

The variations <strong>in</strong> municipal law regard<strong>in</strong>g such matters as<br />

the age when children reach maturity <strong>and</strong> the difficulty <strong>in</strong><br />

apply<strong>in</strong>g the test <strong>of</strong> economy dependence <strong>in</strong> all <strong>in</strong>stances<br />

prevented the adoption <strong>of</strong> any precise def<strong>in</strong>ition <strong>of</strong> „members <strong>of</strong> the<br />

family <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent‟. Other than by the qualification that<br />

the persons concerned must form part <strong>of</strong> the diplomat‟s<br />

household. The International Law Commission stressed, however,<br />

that „close ties‟ or special circumstances 56 are necessary<br />

prerequisite for family relatives wish<strong>in</strong>g to claim privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities. Under Article 10 <strong>of</strong> the Convention, the M<strong>in</strong>istry <strong>of</strong><br />

Foreign Affairs <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g State must be notified <strong>of</strong> the<br />

composition <strong>of</strong> the family <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong> any chances <strong>in</strong> it. Although such<br />

notification is not conclusive as to the status <strong>of</strong> the persons<br />

55 Article 37, paragraph 1.


276<br />

concerned, it has an obvious practical utility <strong>in</strong> enabl<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

send<strong>in</strong>g State to specify the family members for whom privileges<br />

<strong>and</strong> immunities are sought <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> provid<strong>in</strong>g the receiv<strong>in</strong>g State<br />

with an opportunity to query <strong>and</strong> borderl<strong>in</strong>e cases.<br />

Members <strong>of</strong> the family who form part <strong>of</strong> the household <strong>of</strong> a<br />

member <strong>of</strong> the adm<strong>in</strong>istrative <strong>and</strong> technical staff receive the same<br />

privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities as the latter, unless they are<br />

themselves nationals <strong>of</strong>, or permanently resident <strong>in</strong>, the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

State 57. S<strong>in</strong>ce adm<strong>in</strong>istrative jurisdiction only as regards acts<br />

performed <strong>in</strong> the course <strong>of</strong> their duties, members <strong>of</strong> their families<br />

are accorded no immunity <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> civil <strong>and</strong> adm<strong>in</strong>istrative<br />

jurisdiction. Notification must be given to the m<strong>in</strong>istry <strong>of</strong> foreign<br />

affairs <strong>of</strong> persons claimed as family members.<br />

(b) Private servants<br />

Persons <strong>in</strong> domestic service <strong>of</strong> members <strong>of</strong> the mission are<br />

granted exemption from taxation on the emoluments they receive<br />

by virtue <strong>of</strong> their employment but are accorded other privileges<br />

<strong>and</strong> immunities „only to the extent admitted by the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state‟ 58. That state is required, however, to exercise its jurisdiction<br />

so as not to <strong>in</strong>terfere unduly with the performance <strong>of</strong> the functions<br />

56<br />

Yearbook <strong>of</strong> the International Law Commission, 1958, vol. 11, p. 102.<br />

57<br />

Article 37 , Paragraph 2.<br />

58<br />

Article 37 paragraph 4.


277<br />

<strong>of</strong> the mission‟ 59. In accordance with this provision the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state would not be entitled to act <strong>in</strong> such a way as virtually to<br />

deprive the staff <strong>of</strong> a mission <strong>of</strong> the services <strong>of</strong> the persons<br />

concerned, <strong>and</strong> should, where possible, notify missions <strong>of</strong> steps<br />

taken, or proposed to be taken, aga<strong>in</strong>st <strong>in</strong>dividual employees<br />

which may <strong>in</strong>terrupt their employment.<br />

The private servants <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents may be exempt<br />

from the social security provisions <strong>in</strong> force <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state 60.<br />

5.4.3 Nationals Of, Or Those Permanently Resident In, The<br />

Receiv<strong>in</strong>g State<br />

(a) Diplomatic agents<br />

The appo<strong>in</strong>tment as <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents <strong>of</strong> persons hav<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

nationality <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g State was strongly opposed dur<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

preparation <strong>of</strong> the Convention <strong>and</strong> f<strong>in</strong>ally admitted only on the<br />

condition that such appo<strong>in</strong>tments should be subject to the<br />

consent <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, which may be withdrawn at any<br />

time 61. The question <strong>of</strong> the extent to which such persons, or those<br />

permanently resident <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g State, were to be granted<br />

privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities caused a similar battle to be fought,<br />

with some fresh complications. In the absence <strong>of</strong> any clearly<br />

59 An adaptation <strong>of</strong> Article 23 <strong>of</strong> the Harvard Draft Convention. Harvard Law School, Research <strong>in</strong><br />

International Law, I. Diplomatic privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunities (1932), p. 118.<br />

60 Article 33, paragraph 2.<br />

61 Article 8 paragraph 2.


278<br />

established rule on the appo<strong>in</strong>tment, it should not be obliged to<br />

concede any privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities to the persons <strong>in</strong> question.<br />

The commoner view, which eventually prevailed, was that,<br />

although the receiv<strong>in</strong>g State was not bound to consent to the<br />

appo<strong>in</strong>tment <strong>of</strong> one <strong>of</strong> its nationals, if it did so it should accord at<br />

least the privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities which have essential for the<br />

execution <strong>of</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial functions. As several representatives stressed,<br />

jurisdiction could not <strong>in</strong> any case be exercised over such agents<br />

with respect to acts performed <strong>in</strong> the course <strong>of</strong> duty without<br />

<strong>in</strong>fr<strong>in</strong>g<strong>in</strong>g the sovereign rights <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state itself. Article 38<br />

provides that, except where the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state agrees to accord<br />

additional privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities, a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent who is a<br />

national or permanent resident <strong>of</strong> that State:<br />

Shall enjoy only immunity from<br />

jurisdiction, <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>violability, <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>of</strong>ficial acts performed <strong>in</strong> the exercise <strong>of</strong> his<br />

functions.<br />

The Article represents an unsatisfactory compromise, <strong>in</strong><br />

which weight is given to discourag<strong>in</strong>g the appo<strong>in</strong>tment <strong>of</strong> persons<br />

other than nationals <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g State, rather than to the<br />

provision <strong>of</strong> an adequate framework <strong>in</strong> which non-national<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agents may perform their functions. The fact that the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g State, <strong>in</strong> circumstances where it agrees to the


279<br />

appo<strong>in</strong>tment, may agree also to the grant <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities on a more regular scale, together with the relatively<br />

small number <strong>of</strong> people <strong>in</strong>volved, prevents the problem from be<strong>in</strong>g<br />

one <strong>of</strong> any serious dimensions.<br />

(b) Other members <strong>of</strong> the staff <strong>and</strong> private servant:<br />

In the words <strong>of</strong> Article 38, paragraph 2:<br />

Other members <strong>of</strong> the staff <strong>of</strong> the mission<br />

<strong>and</strong> private servant who are nationals <strong>of</strong> or<br />

permanently resident <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state<br />

shall enjoy privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities only<br />

to the extent admitted by the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state‟.<br />

Hav<strong>in</strong>g regard to the frequency with which the subord<strong>in</strong>ate<br />

grades <strong>of</strong> mission staff such as chauffeurs, janitors, clerks <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>terpreters are locally recruited <strong>and</strong> the dependence <strong>of</strong> the<br />

mission on their services, the send<strong>in</strong>g state may well try to reach<br />

agreement with the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state that these grades should be<br />

treated similarly to their foreign colleagues.<br />

(c) Family members<br />

Members <strong>of</strong> the family <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent are not granted<br />

privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities under the Convention if they are<br />

nationals <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g State, nor, <strong>in</strong> the case <strong>of</strong> members <strong>of</strong> the<br />

family <strong>of</strong> adm<strong>in</strong>istrative <strong>and</strong> technical staff members, if they are<br />

either nationals <strong>of</strong>, or permanently resident <strong>in</strong>, the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state.


280<br />

5.5 EXCEPTIONS FROM IMMUNITY FROM CIVIL AND<br />

ADMINISTRATIVE JURISDICTION<br />

(a) Exceptions ratione materiae<br />

The Vienna Conference agreed to accept three exceptions to<br />

the pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> immunity from civil <strong>and</strong> adm<strong>in</strong>istrative<br />

jurisdiction: 62<br />

(i) Real property: <strong>in</strong> accordance with the claim <strong>of</strong> all states <strong>in</strong><br />

exclusive jurisdiction over immovable property, „the very<br />

substratum <strong>of</strong> national territory‟, as the International Law<br />

Commission called it 63. The jurisdictional immunity <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agents does not extend to real actions concern<strong>in</strong>g<br />

immovable property situated <strong>in</strong> the territory <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

State <strong>and</strong> which is held <strong>in</strong> a private capacity <strong>and</strong> not on<br />

behalf <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g State for the purposes <strong>of</strong> the mission.<br />

In countries where, because <strong>of</strong> local legislation, it is<br />

necessary that this be vested <strong>in</strong> the ambassador himself, the<br />

essential requirement is that the property should be used by<br />

the mission 64. In the event that the private property owned is<br />

also the residence <strong>of</strong> the agent, no measures <strong>of</strong> execution<br />

62 Article 31, paragraph 1(a), (b) <strong>and</strong> (c).<br />

63 yearbook <strong>of</strong> the International Law Commission, 1957, vol. 11, p. 139.<br />

64 Yearbook <strong>of</strong> the International Law Commission, 1957, vol 1, p.96.


281<br />

may be taken which <strong>in</strong>fr<strong>in</strong>ges the <strong>in</strong>violability 65. Thus,<br />

suppos<strong>in</strong>g there is a dispute as to title, the diplomat will not<br />

be able to dispute jurisdiction so as to prevent the count<br />

from giv<strong>in</strong>g judgement, although the possibility will be open<br />

to him at least <strong>in</strong> theory, to deny possession to the legal<br />

owner 66.<br />

(ii) Succession:<br />

As every lawyer knows, actions relat<strong>in</strong>g to succession are<br />

frequently complex <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>volve the collaboration <strong>of</strong> a large<br />

number <strong>of</strong> parties. They also form a st<strong>and</strong>ard example <strong>of</strong> the type<br />

<strong>of</strong> case for which resort to the courts <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g State will<br />

scarcely ever provide a practical solution. There is therefore much<br />

good sense, as well as probably new law <strong>in</strong> the second exception<br />

which declares that a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent does not enjoy immunity<br />

from actions relat<strong>in</strong>g to succession <strong>in</strong> which he is <strong>in</strong>volved as a<br />

private person, whether as an executor, adm<strong>in</strong>istrator, heir or<br />

legatee.<br />

(iii) Pr<strong>of</strong>essional <strong>and</strong> commercial activities:<br />

In pr<strong>in</strong>ciple a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent, or other member <strong>of</strong> a<br />

mission, is employed for that purpose <strong>and</strong> no other. To safeguard<br />

65 Article 31, paragraph 3.<br />

66 Article 41 paragraph 1.


282<br />

this rule, the Vienna Convention provides expressly that no<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agent may act <strong>in</strong> a pr<strong>of</strong>essional or commercial capacity<br />

for personal pr<strong>of</strong>it outside his <strong>of</strong>ficial functions. It comes therefore<br />

as somewhat <strong>of</strong> a surprise to f<strong>in</strong>d that the third exception to the<br />

pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> immunity from civil jurisdiction concerns actions<br />

„relat<strong>in</strong>g to any pr<strong>of</strong>ession or commercial activity performed by the<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agent <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g State outside his <strong>of</strong>ficial<br />

functions. The explanation is tw<strong>of</strong>old: firstly, the prohibition <strong>of</strong><br />

pr<strong>of</strong>essional <strong>and</strong> commercial activities extends only to diplomats<br />

<strong>and</strong> not to other members <strong>of</strong> mission staff or their respective<br />

families; whereas non- <strong>diplomatic</strong> members <strong>of</strong> mission staff (<strong>and</strong><br />

their families) enjoy no immunity from civil jurisdiction <strong>in</strong> respect<br />

<strong>of</strong> such activities, the members <strong>of</strong> the family <strong>of</strong> a diplomat would<br />

have complete exemption <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> their pr<strong>of</strong>essional or<br />

commercial activities if this limitation were not <strong>in</strong>cluded.<br />

Secondly, the prohibition <strong>of</strong> non <strong>diplomatic</strong> activities may possibly<br />

be set aside by the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>in</strong> the light <strong>of</strong> the particular<br />

circumstances, as where, for example, the diplomat ha some<br />

special skill or the activity is <strong>of</strong> a limited duration. In that event<br />

the diplomat enjoys no special exemption as regards any contract<br />

he enters <strong>in</strong>to or any acts <strong>of</strong> malfeasance which he may commit.


(b) Initiat<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> proceed<strong>in</strong>gs<br />

283<br />

Diplomatic agents <strong>and</strong> other persons who benefit from<br />

jurisdictional immunity with respect to civil actions receive that<br />

immunity, as they receive others, <strong>in</strong> order that they may not be<br />

impeded <strong>in</strong> the free execution <strong>of</strong> their duties. That reason<strong>in</strong>g does<br />

not extend to deny<strong>in</strong>g them access to the courts <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state (normally, it may be presumed, with the consent <strong>of</strong> the<br />

send<strong>in</strong>g state) to <strong>in</strong>itiate an action; <strong>in</strong> such proceed<strong>in</strong>gs they have<br />

the same locus st<strong>and</strong>i as any other foreigner with<strong>in</strong> the<br />

jurisdiction. Resort to court action is not therefore but as the<br />

exercise <strong>of</strong> an entitlement which is open to them, as it is to others,<br />

<strong>in</strong> their potential capacity as <strong>in</strong>dividual pla<strong>in</strong>tiffs. Jurisdiction<br />

immunity does, or might come <strong>in</strong>to play, however, <strong>in</strong> the event<br />

that the defendant presents a counter claim. To guard aga<strong>in</strong>st the<br />

unjust position which would result if, though a diplomat might<br />

br<strong>in</strong>g a suit, he could plead immunity <strong>in</strong> order to rebut any<br />

counter claim, the Vienna Convention provides expressly that,<br />

where a person benefit<strong>in</strong>g from jurisdictional immunity <strong>in</strong>itiates<br />

proceed<strong>in</strong>gs, such action precludes him from <strong>in</strong>vok<strong>in</strong>g that<br />

immunity <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> any counter claim directly connected with<br />

the pr<strong>in</strong>cipal claim. The acceptance <strong>of</strong> the jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the


284<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state is deemed to have been made as fully as may be<br />

required to settle the dispute <strong>in</strong> all stages closely l<strong>in</strong>ked to the<br />

basic claim, <strong>and</strong> thus <strong>in</strong>cludes such related matters as the<br />

production <strong>of</strong> documents <strong>and</strong> the giv<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> evidence, <strong>in</strong> so far as<br />

these may be necessary for the determ<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> the case.<br />

Technically, however, the resort by the diplomat to the courts <strong>of</strong><br />

the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state only to acceptance <strong>of</strong> jurisdiction per se; he<br />

rema<strong>in</strong>s immune even <strong>in</strong> these circumstances, for measures <strong>of</strong><br />

execution, for which an express waiver is required from the<br />

Government <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state. It may be presumed that such a<br />

waiver will normally be made if the diplomat does not voluntarily<br />

settle any judgement given aga<strong>in</strong>st him.<br />

5.6 RECOGNITION AND INTERNATIONAL PROTECTION<br />

Recognition is the free act by which one or more states<br />

acknowledge the existence on a def<strong>in</strong>ite territory <strong>of</strong> a human<br />

society politically organized, <strong>in</strong>dependent <strong>of</strong> any other exist<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state <strong>and</strong> capable <strong>of</strong> observ<strong>in</strong>g the obligations <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law,<br />

<strong>and</strong> by which they manifest therefore their <strong>in</strong>tention to consider it<br />

a member <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational community.


285<br />

Tunk<strong>in</strong> 67 def<strong>in</strong>es it as an act that expresses the <strong>in</strong>tention <strong>of</strong><br />

the recogniz<strong>in</strong>g government to enter <strong>in</strong>to stable <strong>in</strong>ternational legal<br />

relations with the party be<strong>in</strong>g recognized.<br />

Implicit <strong>in</strong> the above def<strong>in</strong>itions is that recognition <strong>in</strong><br />

whatever form, <strong>in</strong>volves a formal acknowledgement <strong>of</strong> an entity<br />

which fulfils all the attributes <strong>of</strong> statehood. It carries along with it<br />

rights <strong>and</strong> duties both on the recogniz<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> recognized state.<br />

On the recognized state, the act equips her with the credence to<br />

enter <strong>in</strong>to <strong>in</strong>ternational relations with the recogniz<strong>in</strong>g states. On<br />

the other h<strong>and</strong>, the act places on the recognized state the duty <strong>of</strong><br />

observ<strong>in</strong>g the <strong>in</strong>ternational obligations.<br />

The <strong>in</strong>ternational community is always <strong>in</strong> a flux. If there is<br />

any permanence there<strong>in</strong>, it is the permanence <strong>of</strong> change.<br />

Communities emerge from the parent states either at atta<strong>in</strong>ment<br />

<strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>dependence or by break<strong>in</strong>g away <strong>in</strong> the exercise <strong>of</strong> the right <strong>of</strong><br />

self- determ<strong>in</strong>ation or for some other reasons. Government equally<br />

spr<strong>in</strong>g up either as successors to the exist<strong>in</strong>g ones or <strong>in</strong> direct<br />

opposition assert<strong>in</strong>g their <strong>in</strong>dependence <strong>and</strong> seek<strong>in</strong>g for<br />

recognition. Some are recognized others are not for reasons<br />

objective <strong>and</strong> subjective.<br />

67 Tunk<strong>in</strong>, G.I Theory <strong>of</strong> International Law (London : Gorege Allen & Uw<strong>in</strong>. Ltd. ; 1972) P.111


286<br />

It is the <strong>in</strong>tention <strong>of</strong> this chapter to exam<strong>in</strong>e critically the<br />

issue <strong>of</strong> recognition <strong>of</strong> states <strong>and</strong> government <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

This will also <strong>in</strong>corporate forms <strong>of</strong> recognition, conditions for<br />

accord<strong>in</strong>g recognition <strong>and</strong> problems <strong>and</strong> effects <strong>of</strong> recognition.<br />

Recognition is the free act by which one or more states<br />

acknowledge the existence on a def<strong>in</strong>ite territory <strong>of</strong> a human<br />

society, politically organized, <strong>in</strong>dependent <strong>of</strong> any other exist<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state <strong>and</strong> capable <strong>of</strong> observ<strong>in</strong>g the obligations <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

And by which they manifest therefore their <strong>in</strong>tention to consider it<br />

a member <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational community 68.<br />

Tunk<strong>in</strong> def<strong>in</strong>es it as, an act that expresses the <strong>in</strong>tention <strong>of</strong><br />

the recogniz<strong>in</strong>g government to enter <strong>in</strong>to stable <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

relations with the party be<strong>in</strong>g recognized. 69 On the recognized<br />

state, it equips her with credence to enter <strong>in</strong>to <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

relations with the recogniz<strong>in</strong>g states the duty to observe<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational obligations.<br />

It cannot however be <strong>in</strong>ferred that unrecognized states <strong>and</strong><br />

governments cannot exist. It engages <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational relations<br />

<strong>and</strong> establishes contact with non- recogniz<strong>in</strong>g states so far as its<br />

68 Starke, JG. Introduction to International Law ( London: Butterworths. 1977) p. 127.<br />

69 Tunk<strong>in</strong>. G.I International Law ( Moscow: progress Publishers: 1986) p. 122.


287<br />

situation permits. It represents a factor <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational life with<br />

the same aspirations as fully recognized states or governments. It<br />

is bound to observe universally recognized rules <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law just as recognized states.<br />

However the act <strong>of</strong> recognition clothes the state recognized<br />

with certa<strong>in</strong> advantages which are denied unrecognized state or<br />

governments. These <strong>in</strong>clude the right to espouse claims <strong>of</strong> her<br />

nationals for <strong>in</strong>juries, the right to full <strong>diplomatic</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities to her accredited representatives.<br />

International Law does not seem to make it m<strong>and</strong>atory for<br />

state to recognize an emerg<strong>in</strong>g entity or government. It appears<br />

rather that the grant <strong>of</strong> recognition is a discretionary act subject<br />

to the whims <strong>and</strong> caprices <strong>of</strong> the recogniz<strong>in</strong>g state. In most cases<br />

it is a political act granted by states for reasons <strong>of</strong> national<br />

<strong>in</strong>terest <strong>and</strong> policy considerations. It lacks stereo typed criteria,<br />

though certa<strong>in</strong> basic requirement may be desired. States<br />

frequently refuse, delay or eventually accord recognition to newly<br />

emerged states or governments for reasons that lack strict legal<br />

justification. For example, <strong>in</strong> the First World War, Great Brita<strong>in</strong>,<br />

France, the United States, <strong>and</strong> other powers recognized Pol<strong>and</strong>


288<br />

<strong>and</strong> Czechoslovakia before these later existed as states or<br />

government.<br />

5.6.1 Theories <strong>of</strong> Recognition<br />

Basically, there are two theories on the issue <strong>of</strong> recognition.<br />

These are the constitutive <strong>and</strong> the declaratory theories.<br />

5.6.2 The constitutive Theory<br />

Accord<strong>in</strong>g to the constitutive theory, an entity becomes a<br />

state only if it has been recognized by other states, which have<br />

themselves been recognized. It ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong>s that a personality <strong>in</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law is created through a legal act recognition, which<br />

<strong>in</strong>troduces <strong>in</strong>to relations between a recognized <strong>and</strong> recogniz<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state the elements <strong>of</strong> rights <strong>and</strong> obligations. 70 This theory seeks to<br />

reason that only the act <strong>of</strong> recognition confers <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

personality on a state. The consequence <strong>of</strong> this position is that the<br />

new collective entity or revolutionary regime, which has not been<br />

accorded recognition, would not only be excluded from normal<br />

<strong>in</strong>tercourse with subjects <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law, but also rema<strong>in</strong> an<br />

entity outside <strong>in</strong>ternational plane.<br />

The constitutive theory appears not to take due notice <strong>of</strong> the<br />

phenomenon <strong>of</strong> unrecognized but effectively established states<br />

<strong>and</strong> governments. Aga<strong>in</strong>, it does not account for the dist<strong>in</strong>ction<br />

between firmly established unrecognized entities <strong>and</strong> newly<br />

70 Nwachukwu, C.N The Status <strong>of</strong> Unrecognized states <strong>and</strong> Governments <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law. P 44.


289<br />

emerged regimes that are yet to f<strong>in</strong>d their feet <strong>in</strong> the scheme <strong>of</strong><br />

th<strong>in</strong>gs. Also, this theory if rigidly followed, will practically deny the<br />

emergence <strong>of</strong> a state as an <strong>in</strong>ternational personality. This is<br />

because all members <strong>of</strong> state community do not grant recognition<br />

at the same time so as to make an entity at once an <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

person. However this theory would tend to negate the retroactive<br />

effect <strong>of</strong> recognition which validates acts performed by the<br />

hitherto unrecognized entity, as <strong>in</strong> its view, the existence <strong>of</strong> a<br />

state as a subject <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law, starts from the moment <strong>of</strong><br />

recognition.<br />

5.6.3 Declaratory Theory<br />

This theory recognizes that a state as an <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

personality pre-exists. The effect <strong>of</strong> recognition is to establish legal<br />

rules <strong>and</strong> relations between the two parties concerned. It<br />

ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong>s that a state may exist without be<strong>in</strong>g recognized, <strong>and</strong> if<br />

it does exist <strong>in</strong> fact, then, whether or not it has been recognized<br />

by other states, it has aright to be treated as a state by them 71.<br />

The declaratory theory also holds the view that, a new state or<br />

government irrespective <strong>of</strong> recognition, become a full member <strong>of</strong><br />

the <strong>in</strong>ternational community <strong>and</strong> consequently a subject <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law when the qualifications <strong>of</strong> statehood or<br />

71 Brieriy. J.L Law <strong>of</strong> Nations ( London: clareson Press: 1963) p. 139.


290<br />

governmental power as formulated by <strong>in</strong>ternational law have been<br />

met. Consequently, the primary function <strong>of</strong> recognition is a formal<br />

acknowledgement <strong>of</strong> an exist<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>of</strong> law <strong>and</strong> fact 72. Perhaps<br />

the possible fault <strong>of</strong> this theory is that, it may tend to encourage<br />

<strong>in</strong>surance <strong>and</strong> revolutionary movements.<br />

5.6.4 Conditions for Recognition<br />

Though <strong>in</strong>ternational Law has set down conditions for an<br />

entity or a government to fulfil before it could be accorded<br />

recognition, states <strong>practice</strong> appears to show that recognition is<br />

motivated more by political than legal considerations. Thus <strong>in</strong><br />

1903, the United States recognized Panama barely three days<br />

after it had revolted from Columbia. Also <strong>in</strong> 1948 the United<br />

States accorded recognition to state <strong>of</strong> Israel with<strong>in</strong> a few hours <strong>of</strong><br />

its proclamation <strong>of</strong> its <strong>in</strong>dependence 73. The act is a matter <strong>of</strong><br />

policy <strong>of</strong> the recogniz<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>and</strong> therefore falls short <strong>of</strong> any<br />

stereo type rule. However, it does appear that an entity should<br />

pass all the attributes <strong>of</strong> statehood <strong>in</strong> other to be accorded<br />

recognition. These accord<strong>in</strong>g to the Montevideo Convention on the<br />

Rights <strong>and</strong> Duties <strong>of</strong> states, 1933 <strong>in</strong>clude:<br />

72 Brownlie, I Pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> Public International Law ( Oxford, Oxford <strong>University</strong> Press 1979) p89.<br />

73 Brownlie J.L op cit p 140.


a) A permanent population<br />

b) A def<strong>in</strong>e territory<br />

291<br />

c) A government as a central authority<br />

d) Capacity to enter <strong>in</strong>to relations with other states. 74<br />

As to recognition <strong>of</strong> governments, it is normally <strong>in</strong>ferred that<br />

when a new state is recognized, the gesture is concurrently<br />

extended to its government. Situations may however arise when<br />

the government <strong>of</strong> a state is not necessarily recognized wholly with<br />

the existence <strong>of</strong> the state. Ord<strong>in</strong>arily, what form <strong>of</strong> government a<br />

state should adopt <strong>and</strong> whether it should replace an exist<strong>in</strong>g<br />

government by a new one are essentially domestic matters, which<br />

do not concern other states. But they may be concerned to know<br />

whether the person or persons with whom they propose to enter<br />

<strong>in</strong>to relations are <strong>in</strong> fact a government whose acts may be b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g<br />

at <strong>in</strong>ternational law upon the state, which they pr<strong>of</strong>ess to<br />

represent.<br />

Accord<strong>in</strong>gly, states tend to require that a government<br />

wish<strong>in</strong>g to be recognized should have effective control <strong>of</strong> the<br />

territory <strong>and</strong> the population with<strong>in</strong> the territory. In fact, it should<br />

be <strong>in</strong>dependent <strong>of</strong> the control <strong>of</strong> any other state or government. It<br />

must have the will<strong>in</strong>gness to fulfill <strong>in</strong>ternational obligations. When<br />

74 Supra P 13


292<br />

a new entity is established as a result <strong>of</strong> a revolt or civil war, there<br />

are always two possible views on whether the government that has<br />

been set up can be regarded as the government <strong>of</strong> the new state.<br />

Another question relates to whether the parent state has lost its<br />

control over the state territory. This is especially so when the<br />

parent state is endeavour<strong>in</strong>g to rega<strong>in</strong> part <strong>of</strong> the territory it had<br />

lost.<br />

In each therefore, the state which has been approached for<br />

recognition <strong>of</strong> the new entity has to determ<strong>in</strong>e for itself accord<strong>in</strong>g<br />

to its own view whether the entity has a government, which is<br />

<strong>in</strong>dependent <strong>of</strong> the control <strong>of</strong> any other state. A state <strong>and</strong> its<br />

government can be regarded as <strong>in</strong>dependent irrespective <strong>of</strong> the<br />

attitudes <strong>of</strong> the mother country. In a case where the parent state<br />

disputes the status <strong>of</strong> the new state as a sovereign entity, clear<br />

evidence is required to show that the mother country has actually<br />

been displaced <strong>and</strong> that the effectiveness <strong>of</strong> the new state<br />

authority is not a mere assertion <strong>of</strong> right. Once such evidence is<br />

available, the manner by which the new state came <strong>in</strong>to existence<br />

is immaterial. 75<br />

75 Sen, B. A Diplomat’s H<strong>and</strong> Book On International Law <strong>and</strong> Practice 2 nd ed. (1979) p. 411


293<br />

In Iraq follow<strong>in</strong>g the revolution <strong>of</strong> 1958, which culm<strong>in</strong>ated <strong>in</strong><br />

the assass<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> the monarch, the form <strong>of</strong> government was<br />

changed from Monarchy to a republic <strong>and</strong> a group <strong>of</strong> proclaimed<br />

itself as the Republican Government <strong>of</strong> Iraq. In this case the<br />

situation became clear with<strong>in</strong> a few days <strong>of</strong> revolutionary outbreak<br />

that their old government has been effectively ousted. Other states<br />

were therefore <strong>in</strong> no doubt as to which authority was to be<br />

regarded as the lawful government <strong>of</strong> Iraq.<br />

It may also be necessary to make certa<strong>in</strong> that the situation<br />

has atta<strong>in</strong>ed a certa<strong>in</strong> degree <strong>of</strong> permanence so that it can<br />

reasonably be assumed that the new state <strong>of</strong> affairs has come to<br />

stay.<br />

Apart from the above requirements states at times go too far<br />

<strong>in</strong> apply<strong>in</strong>g some other criteria before recognition. In the past,<br />

some states considered the degree <strong>of</strong> civilization <strong>of</strong> the new state,<br />

the legitimacy <strong>of</strong> its orig<strong>in</strong>, its religion, <strong>and</strong> even its political<br />

system as conditions for recognition. Modern trends however do<br />

not seem to uphold these conditions. For one th<strong>in</strong>g the former<br />

idea <strong>of</strong> categoriz<strong>in</strong>g humanity <strong>in</strong>to civilized, barbarous <strong>and</strong> savage<br />

people can hardly be applicable now. The days have long past


294<br />

when only European nations <strong>and</strong> states populated by people <strong>of</strong><br />

European orig<strong>in</strong> were considered as the only civilized species.<br />

On the question <strong>of</strong> legitimacy <strong>of</strong> orig<strong>in</strong>, it may be that<br />

absolutist governments to garner support it held sway <strong>in</strong> the 19th<br />

century to discredit revolutionary government modern<br />

International Law has rendered it out <strong>of</strong> realities clung to this<br />

pr<strong>in</strong>ciple.<br />

If considerations <strong>of</strong> legitimacy <strong>of</strong> orig<strong>in</strong> were brought <strong>in</strong> on<br />

the question <strong>of</strong> recognition many states or governments, which<br />

came <strong>in</strong>to be<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> violation <strong>of</strong> the constitutional means, such as<br />

revolts civil war or coup d‟etat would have gone unrecognized. 76<br />

State religion can safely be said to be an irreverent consideration,<br />

as secularism with<strong>in</strong> some states appears to be the order <strong>of</strong> the<br />

day. On the question <strong>of</strong> the political system <strong>of</strong> the state seek<strong>in</strong>g<br />

recognition states <strong>of</strong>ten <strong>in</strong>sist on free election so as to obta<strong>in</strong> a<br />

sufficient guarantee for the representative nature <strong>of</strong> such a<br />

government. Perhaps this may have formed the basis upon which<br />

the United States government until 1979 did not accord<br />

recognition to the Communist Ch<strong>in</strong>a. The argument <strong>of</strong> the United<br />

States then was that, the Communist regime <strong>in</strong> Ch<strong>in</strong>a lacked<br />

76 Sen B op cit p 413.


295<br />

positive support <strong>of</strong> the populace. For a long time the same<br />

argument was held by many other states that withheld recognition<br />

<strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> the government <strong>of</strong> North Korea <strong>and</strong> North Vietnam.<br />

The requirement <strong>of</strong> democratic legality does not however<br />

comm<strong>and</strong> general acceptance as it touches on political <strong>and</strong><br />

ideological issues. Aga<strong>in</strong> evidence <strong>of</strong> governments that emerged<br />

through coups <strong>and</strong> revolutionary means <strong>in</strong> some Lat<strong>in</strong> America<br />

<strong>and</strong> African states <strong>and</strong> are yet accorded recognition tend to negate<br />

the very essence <strong>of</strong> this requirement. Besides, it should be borne<br />

<strong>in</strong> m<strong>in</strong>d that every community has the right to choose its own<br />

government.<br />

5.6.5 Methods <strong>of</strong> accord<strong>in</strong>g recognition<br />

Recognition as a public act <strong>of</strong> state is an optional political<br />

act. There is no legal duty <strong>in</strong> this regard. It is discretionary <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong><br />

no way a determ<strong>in</strong>ant <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations. On the other h<strong>and</strong><br />

absence <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations is not <strong>in</strong> itself non- recognition <strong>of</strong><br />

the state. It will be recalled that several states like, Tanzania,<br />

Gabon, Ivory Coast, Zambia <strong>and</strong> Haiti recognized the then Biafra<br />

but no <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations were entered <strong>in</strong>to between them <strong>and</strong><br />

Biafra. 77<br />

77 Harris D.J Cases <strong>and</strong> materials on <strong>in</strong>ternational law (London: sweet & Maxwell. 1979) p89


296<br />

There is no uniform method <strong>of</strong> accord<strong>in</strong>g recognition. It can<br />

be express or implied from the conduct <strong>of</strong> other states <strong>in</strong> their<br />

deal<strong>in</strong>g with the new state. Express recognition takes the form <strong>of</strong> a<br />

formal declaration whereby government accords recognition to a<br />

new entity, that has emerged as a state or an authority which has<br />

formed itself <strong>in</strong>to a government by fulfill<strong>in</strong>g the necessary<br />

conditions. In the words <strong>of</strong> Brownlie, recognition may take the<br />

form <strong>of</strong> an agreement or declaration <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>tent to establish<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> relations or a congratulatory message on atta<strong>in</strong>ment <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>dependence. 78<br />

On implied recognition, Lauterpatch as quoted by Brownlie<br />

ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong>s that only the conclusion <strong>of</strong> a bilateral treaty, which<br />

regulates comprehensively the relations between the two states,<br />

the formal <strong>in</strong>itiation <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations <strong>and</strong> probably the issue<br />

<strong>of</strong> <strong>consular</strong> exequateurs justify implication 79.<br />

Harris adds here that the crucial question is that <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>tention. He <strong>in</strong>toned that participation <strong>in</strong> an <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

conference with a state or government will not <strong>in</strong>dicate recognition<br />

if it is made clear that it is not <strong>in</strong>tended to have this effect. Thus<br />

<strong>in</strong> 1954, when the Foreign M<strong>in</strong>isters <strong>of</strong> France, United K<strong>in</strong>gdom,<br />

78 Brownlie, Op. Cit., p 91.<br />

79 Ibid., p. 96


297<br />

United States, <strong>and</strong> the then USSR proposed the Geneva<br />

Conference to discuss Korea <strong>and</strong> Indo-Ch<strong>in</strong>a, <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>vited the<br />

government <strong>of</strong> the Republic <strong>of</strong> Ch<strong>in</strong>a <strong>and</strong> the two Koreas <strong>and</strong><br />

other <strong>in</strong>terested states they added.<br />

It is understood that neither the <strong>in</strong>vitation to nor the hold<strong>in</strong>g<br />

<strong>of</strong> the above mentioned conference shall be deemed to imply<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> recognition <strong>in</strong> any case where it has not already<br />

accorded.<br />

Tunk<strong>in</strong> sums it up by stat<strong>in</strong>g that, the admission <strong>of</strong> a state<br />

to an <strong>in</strong>ternational organization does not imply its recognition by<br />

those member nations that have not recognized it. 80<br />

The same position applies to unrecognized governments.<br />

This is more so when charters <strong>of</strong> these organizations do not<br />

require that its member states recognize another state as a<br />

condition for admitt<strong>in</strong>g it <strong>in</strong>to the organization. Such state<br />

therefore <strong>in</strong>dicat<strong>in</strong>g that such an entity is capable <strong>of</strong> enter<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>to<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational relations.<br />

80 Tunk<strong>in</strong> G.I Op. Cit. p. 166


298<br />

Recognition can equally be accorded on a collective form.<br />

This may take the form <strong>of</strong> a jo<strong>in</strong>t declaration by a group <strong>of</strong> states.<br />

In this regard, the states <strong>of</strong> Bulgaria, Montenegro, Serbia <strong>and</strong><br />

Rumania were recognized at the Berl<strong>in</strong> Congress <strong>of</strong> 1878 <strong>and</strong><br />

Estonia <strong>and</strong> Albania by Allied Powers <strong>in</strong> 1921.<br />

Similarly, there is a duty to states parties to a system <strong>of</strong><br />

collective security or other multilateral conventions not to<br />

recognize a state whose acts run counter to their ideals.<br />

Thus the Security Council resolution <strong>of</strong> 1965–6<br />

characterized the Smith regime <strong>of</strong> the then Rhodesia as unlawful<br />

<strong>in</strong> terms <strong>of</strong> the Charter <strong>of</strong> the United Nations <strong>and</strong> called upon all<br />

member states not to recognize the illegal regime. 81<br />

Here, Rhodesia may have satisfied all the normal criteria for<br />

statehood but particular matters <strong>of</strong> law <strong>and</strong> fact provide a basis<br />

for duty <strong>of</strong> non-recognition.<br />

Recognition can also be granted by barga<strong>in</strong>s. For example <strong>in</strong><br />

1920 Pol<strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>dicated its preparedness to recognize Latvia<br />

provided that the latter <strong>of</strong>fered a 99-year lease <strong>of</strong> a port to be<br />

declared a free port.<br />

81 Brownlie I. Op. Cit. p 98.


299<br />

Similarly, <strong>in</strong> 1922 the United States <strong>in</strong>sisted on oil<br />

concession as a condition for accord<strong>in</strong>g recognition to Albania.<br />

The recognition at the Berl<strong>in</strong> Conference <strong>of</strong> 1878 <strong>of</strong> Bulgaria,<br />

Montenegro, Serbia <strong>and</strong> Rumania under the condition only that<br />

these states should not impose any religious disabilities on any <strong>of</strong><br />

their subjects fall <strong>in</strong>to the barga<strong>in</strong> type. Barga<strong>in</strong>s <strong>of</strong> this type, if<br />

allowed to cont<strong>in</strong>ue will greatly underm<strong>in</strong>e the rule <strong>of</strong> law <strong>in</strong> the<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational community.<br />

5.6.6 Forms <strong>of</strong> Recognition: De Facto Recognition<br />

Writ<strong>in</strong>g on recognition de facto, Brownlie reasoned that on<br />

the <strong>in</strong>ternational plane, the statement that a government is<br />

recognized de facto might <strong>in</strong>volve a purely political judgment<br />

<strong>in</strong>volv<strong>in</strong>g either a reluctant or cautious acceptance <strong>of</strong> an effective<br />

government. 82 Starke ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong>s that it represents <strong>in</strong> the m<strong>in</strong>d <strong>of</strong><br />

the recogniz<strong>in</strong>g state, provisionally <strong>and</strong> temporarily <strong>and</strong> all due<br />

reservation for the future, the state or government recognized fulfil<br />

the attributes <strong>of</strong> statehood <strong>and</strong> government <strong>in</strong> fact. 83<br />

This falls <strong>in</strong>to exceptional moments when a state or<br />

government comes <strong>in</strong>to existence by extra constitutional means.<br />

In such a case, de facto recognition is a premature recognition.<br />

82 Ibid p. 94<br />

83 Starke J.G. Introduction to International law ( London Butterworth, 1977) p 137.


5.6.7 De Jure Recognition<br />

300<br />

Recognition de jure on the other h<strong>and</strong> means that accord<strong>in</strong>g<br />

to the recogniz<strong>in</strong>g state, the state or government so recognized has<br />

fulfilled all the requirements laid down by <strong>in</strong>ternational law to<br />

enter <strong>in</strong>to relations with other nations. Such requirement <strong>in</strong>cludes<br />

a reasonable assurance <strong>of</strong> stability <strong>and</strong> permanence, evidence <strong>of</strong><br />

pro<strong>of</strong> that the government comm<strong>and</strong>s the general support <strong>of</strong> the<br />

population, a pro<strong>of</strong> <strong>of</strong> its ability <strong>and</strong> will<strong>in</strong>gness to fulfill its<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational obligations.<br />

5.6.8 Legal consequences <strong>of</strong> recognition<br />

Recognition produces legal consequences affect<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

rights, powers <strong>and</strong> privileges <strong>of</strong> the recognized state or government<br />

both at the <strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>and</strong> municipal law <strong>of</strong> states that<br />

have given the recognition. Recognition is more than an <strong>in</strong>formal<br />

act. It also possesses an important political significance <strong>and</strong> major<br />

legal consequences. It declares the fact <strong>of</strong> appearance <strong>of</strong> a new<br />

state or government <strong>and</strong> helps to stabilize its <strong>in</strong>ternational


301<br />

position <strong>and</strong> exercise <strong>of</strong> the basic rights that the state or<br />

government as the case may be possess.<br />

Under <strong>in</strong>ternational law, recognition enables a state or<br />

government to:<br />

1) Acquire capacity to enter <strong>in</strong>to <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations with other<br />

states.<br />

2) It enables it become a member <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

community.<br />

3) Under municipal law it entails that the state or<br />

government so recognized:<br />

a. Can sue <strong>and</strong> be sued <strong>in</strong> the municipal courts <strong>of</strong> the<br />

recogniz<strong>in</strong>g state.<br />

b. Claim immunity from suits both for itself <strong>and</strong><br />

representatives.<br />

c. In case <strong>of</strong> a government, claim possession <strong>of</strong> property<br />

situated <strong>in</strong> the territory <strong>of</strong> the recogniz<strong>in</strong>g state that<br />

belonged to the former government.<br />

5.6.9 Problems 0f Recognition<br />

Problems may sometimes arise as to when recognition<br />

should be granted to a state or government. When an entity<br />

rega<strong>in</strong>s <strong>in</strong>dependence from her former colonial master or when a


302<br />

change <strong>in</strong> government is effected constitutionally, the problems <strong>of</strong><br />

recognition may be m<strong>in</strong>imal if any at all. However, if a state<br />

breaks away from a parent state either by civil war, secession or<br />

revolt, or where a new government is effected constitutionally the<br />

problems <strong>of</strong> recognition may be m<strong>in</strong>imal if any at all. However, if a<br />

state breaks away from a parent state either by civil war,<br />

secession or revolt, or where a new government struggles with an<br />

exist<strong>in</strong>g one over supremacy <strong>of</strong> authority the problem <strong>of</strong><br />

recognition becomes acute. The problems become pronounced if<br />

the present government <strong>in</strong>tends to exercise its authority over the<br />

territory <strong>of</strong> the new state <strong>and</strong> describes its government as “rebels.”<br />

S<strong>in</strong>ce premature recognition <strong>of</strong> a government could amount to<br />

<strong>in</strong>terference <strong>in</strong>to <strong>in</strong>ternal affairs <strong>of</strong> the Parent State <strong>and</strong> hence<br />

rapture relations, other states <strong>and</strong> their government tend to act<br />

with caution <strong>in</strong> grant<strong>in</strong>g recognition.<br />

On the other h<strong>and</strong>, refusal to grant recognition on the<br />

grounds that the parent state has not accorded recognition will<br />

amount to a denial <strong>of</strong> the right to self–determ<strong>in</strong>ation for the<br />

purpose <strong>of</strong> perpetuat<strong>in</strong>g dom<strong>in</strong>ation over a people. There have<br />

equally been numerous cases <strong>in</strong> the past when states have been<br />

faced with the problem <strong>of</strong> recognition <strong>of</strong> a new government <strong>of</strong>


303<br />

exist<strong>in</strong>g states. For example <strong>in</strong> the situation that followed the<br />

French Revolution, there was uncerta<strong>in</strong>ty for a long time as to the<br />

proper authority that could be regarded as the lawful government<br />

<strong>of</strong> the country. Consequently each state had to decide for itself the<br />

government that it would recognize for the purpose <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational relations. The Russian Revolution <strong>of</strong> 1917, the<br />

Spanish Revolution <strong>of</strong> 1936- 39 <strong>and</strong> the Mexican Revolution <strong>of</strong><br />

1915 created similar problems. It took a long time for the then<br />

Soviet Government to be recognized. German <strong>and</strong> Italy until did<br />

not recognize save the government <strong>of</strong> General Franco <strong>in</strong> Spa<strong>in</strong><br />

after the end <strong>of</strong> the civil war. The government <strong>of</strong> General Carranza<br />

<strong>in</strong> Mexico was recognized only after his authority had been<br />

conclusively established.<br />

Perhaps to overcome the problem caused by these <strong>in</strong>cidents<br />

<strong>and</strong> purely for the purpose <strong>of</strong> ma<strong>in</strong>tenance neutrality states<br />

<strong>in</strong>itially accord de facto recognition to these entities. When they<br />

are conv<strong>in</strong>ced that all the attributes <strong>of</strong> statehood have been<br />

displayed the question <strong>of</strong> de jure recognition then comes <strong>in</strong>to play.<br />

It cannot however be <strong>in</strong>ferred that unrecognized states <strong>and</strong><br />

Government do not <strong>and</strong> cannot exist. Rather it should be borne <strong>in</strong><br />

m<strong>in</strong>d that an recognized state or regime is a political entity


304<br />

irrespective <strong>of</strong> lack <strong>of</strong> recognition. It is not a dormant organism. It<br />

engages <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational relations <strong>and</strong> establishes contact with<br />

non-recogniz<strong>in</strong>g states so far as its situation permits. It represents<br />

a factor <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational life with the same aspirations as a fully<br />

recognized state or government. It is bound to observe universally<br />

recognized rules <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law just as recognized states.<br />

However, the act <strong>of</strong> recognition clothes a state with certa<strong>in</strong><br />

advantages, which are denied an unrecognized state or<br />

government. These <strong>in</strong>clude the right to espouse the claims <strong>of</strong> her<br />

nations for <strong>in</strong>juries by a recogniz<strong>in</strong>g state, the right to full<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities by her accredited<br />

representatives. Once the representatives are accredited, they must<br />

enjoy privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities.<br />

International law does not seem to make it m<strong>and</strong>atory for<br />

states to recognize an emerg<strong>in</strong>g entity or government. It appears<br />

rather that the grant <strong>of</strong> recognition is a discretional act subject to<br />

the whims <strong>and</strong> caprices <strong>of</strong> the recogniz<strong>in</strong>g state. In most cases, it<br />

is a political act granted by states for reasons <strong>of</strong> national <strong>in</strong>terests<br />

<strong>and</strong> policy considerations.<br />

It lacks a stereotyped criterion though certa<strong>in</strong> basic<br />

requirements may be desired. States frequently delay, refuse or


305<br />

eventually accord recognition to newly formed states or<br />

governments for reasons that lack strict legal justification. For<br />

example, <strong>in</strong> the First World War, Great Brita<strong>in</strong>, France, the U.S.A.<br />

<strong>and</strong> other powers recognized Pol<strong>and</strong> <strong>and</strong> Czechoslovakia before<br />

these later actually existed as <strong>in</strong>dependent states or governments.<br />

The issue <strong>of</strong> recognition is central to the grant<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong><br />

protection by states. Ord<strong>in</strong>arily no state can grant protection to a<br />

person it has refused to recognize. International law provides:<br />

The establishment <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations<br />

between states <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong> permanent<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> missions takes place by mutual<br />

consent 84.<br />

The above provision connotes that consent is required if<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> relations or permanent <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission is to take<br />

place. Though not expressly stated, all forms <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

relationships must be accepted <strong>and</strong> recognized by the states<br />

<strong>in</strong>volved, <strong>and</strong> this <strong>in</strong>deed is a basis for grant<strong>in</strong>g protection to the<br />

agents <strong>of</strong> states play<strong>in</strong>g these roles on behalf <strong>of</strong> their states.<br />

There is another provision:<br />

84. Article 2 <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations, 1961.<br />

85. Article 9<br />

…A person may be declared persona non<br />

grata or not acceptable before arriv<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong><br />

the territory <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. 85


306<br />

The provision confirms that a state may reject a member <strong>of</strong> a<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> mission to its territory before the agent arrives <strong>in</strong> the<br />

territory <strong>of</strong> the reject<strong>in</strong>g state. Where this happens, the rejection <strong>of</strong><br />

such a person connotes the refusal to accord recognition to such<br />

agent, <strong>and</strong> consequently no protection can be granted.<br />

In the same ve<strong>in</strong>:<br />

A state may send a special mission to<br />

another state with the consent <strong>of</strong> the latter,<br />

previously obta<strong>in</strong>ed through the <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

or another agreed or mutually acceptable<br />

channel. 86<br />

From the above, where such consent is not given protection<br />

cannot be given to a state agent who travels <strong>in</strong>cognito. The<br />

absence <strong>of</strong> consent connotes the absence <strong>of</strong> recognition <strong>of</strong> such<br />

mission.<br />

And yet another:<br />

86. Article 2 <strong>of</strong> the convention on special missions, 1969.<br />

87. Article 8.<br />

...the send<strong>in</strong>g state may freely appo<strong>in</strong>t the<br />

members <strong>of</strong> the special mission after hav<strong>in</strong>g<br />

given to the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state all necessary<br />

<strong>in</strong>formation concern<strong>in</strong>g the size <strong>and</strong><br />

composition <strong>of</strong> the special mission, <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong><br />

particular the names <strong>of</strong> <strong>and</strong> designations <strong>of</strong><br />

the persons it <strong>in</strong>tends to appo<strong>in</strong>t…(The<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state) it may also, without giv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

reasons decl<strong>in</strong>e to accept any person as a<br />

member <strong>of</strong> the special mission. 87


307<br />

The above further affirms the consent <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state<br />

<strong>in</strong> terms <strong>of</strong> the persons represent<strong>in</strong>g a state <strong>in</strong> its own territory.<br />

The receiv<strong>in</strong>g state can chose not to recognize or accept any<br />

member <strong>of</strong> the mission, <strong>and</strong> is not bound to give any reasons.<br />

Where this recognition is absent, the state is not bound to grant<br />

protection.<br />

5.7 SOVEREIGN IMMUNITY AND INTERNATIONAL<br />

PROTECTION<br />

From time immemorial, the doctr<strong>in</strong>e <strong>of</strong> sovereign immunity<br />

has assumed a place <strong>of</strong> prom<strong>in</strong>ence <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>terstate relations. The<br />

simple import <strong>of</strong> this doctr<strong>in</strong>e is that no sovereign could be<br />

impeached <strong>in</strong> the court <strong>of</strong> another sovereign without its consent,<br />

or any adm<strong>in</strong>istrative action taken aga<strong>in</strong>st the sovereign. The rule<br />

is h<strong>in</strong>ged on two <strong>in</strong>ternational law maxims: „Par <strong>in</strong> parem non<br />

habet imperium‟ <strong>and</strong> par <strong>in</strong> parem non habet jurisdictionem. This<br />

means an equal has no power over another equal, <strong>and</strong> an equal<br />

has no jurisdiction over another equal, respectively.<br />

In traditional <strong>in</strong>ternational law, it has thus been generally<br />

accepted that a foreign sovereign state was absolutely immune<br />

from the jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> municipal courts <strong>in</strong> all cases.


308<br />

Based on these rules, states enjoyed absolute immunity <strong>in</strong><br />

all their acts, be them <strong>of</strong> public or private nature. The substantive<br />

pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> sovereign immunity as practised by states has been<br />

expressed <strong>in</strong> terms <strong>of</strong> sovereignty <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>dependence, dignity, 88<br />

extraterritoriality, <strong>and</strong> comity <strong>of</strong> nations. All these notions seem to<br />

come together <strong>and</strong> they constitute a firm <strong>in</strong>ternational legal <strong>and</strong><br />

theoretical basis for sovereign immunity.<br />

In traditional <strong>in</strong>ternational law, it has thus been generally<br />

accepted that a foreign sovereign state was absolutely immune<br />

from the jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> municipal courts <strong>in</strong> all cases. Several<br />

courts‟ decisions <strong>in</strong> the U.K, 89 America, 90 India 91 have all <strong>in</strong> the<br />

past given flesh <strong>and</strong> blood to the rule <strong>of</strong> absolute sovereign<br />

immunity. The former socialist states for most <strong>of</strong> the time up held<br />

the rule <strong>of</strong> absolute sovereign immunity predicated on their<br />

ideology <strong>of</strong> public ownership <strong>of</strong> all means <strong>of</strong> production which<br />

never permitted any form <strong>of</strong> private commercial acts with<strong>in</strong> the<br />

socialist structure.<br />

88. Schooner Exchange Vs. Mc Faden (1812) 7 Granch 116.<br />

89. In the Parliament Bekge (1878)4 P.D129 <strong>and</strong> Re: Crist<strong>in</strong>a (1938) ACP 485.<br />

90. The Pesaro (1926)271 U.S. 562.<br />

91. U.A.R. Vs. Mirza Ali Kasham (1962) 49 AIR P. 38 Duterai <strong>and</strong> Co. Vs. Pokerdan Mergra (1952) <strong>and</strong><br />

Re: Commissioner for workmen’s compensation (1951)38 AIR p. 880.


309<br />

Some newly <strong>in</strong>dependent states <strong>of</strong> Africa <strong>and</strong> Asia <strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g<br />

Nigeria 92 had upheld <strong>and</strong> still uphold the rule <strong>of</strong> absolute<br />

sovereign immunity.<br />

Practically, the application <strong>of</strong> the doctr<strong>in</strong>e <strong>of</strong> absolute<br />

immunity seems convenient <strong>and</strong> certa<strong>in</strong> except that it created<br />

hardship <strong>and</strong> discouraged trad<strong>in</strong>g activities as a bona fide<br />

bus<strong>in</strong>essman stood the risk <strong>of</strong> los<strong>in</strong>g all he has <strong>in</strong> bus<strong>in</strong>ess to a<br />

state claim<strong>in</strong>g sovereign immunity. This would <strong>in</strong> result defeat the<br />

ma<strong>in</strong> purpose <strong>of</strong> a capitalist society-maximization <strong>of</strong> pr<strong>of</strong>it.<br />

At the beg<strong>in</strong>n<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> the 20 th century, with the <strong>in</strong>crease <strong>in</strong><br />

volume <strong>of</strong> commercial activities <strong>in</strong>volv<strong>in</strong>g states, it became<br />

unacceptable to many states to stick tenaciously to the doctr<strong>in</strong>e <strong>of</strong><br />

absolute immunity for all acts <strong>of</strong> states. A new doctr<strong>in</strong>e was<br />

evolved that dist<strong>in</strong>guished the public acts <strong>of</strong> government (acta jure<br />

imperii) from the commercial acts (acta jure gestionis) for the<br />

purpose <strong>of</strong> grant<strong>in</strong>g immunity. The doctr<strong>in</strong>e is<br />

known as restrictive immunity. Under this doctr<strong>in</strong>e, states enjoy<br />

immunity <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> such acts that have public character but<br />

not <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> commercial acts.<br />

92. LFN 1990, CAP 99. Also <strong>in</strong> the case <strong>of</strong> Kramer Italy Vs. Government <strong>of</strong> Belgium suit No.<br />

CA/L/244/84.


310<br />

The dom<strong>in</strong>ant focus <strong>of</strong> the doctr<strong>in</strong>e <strong>of</strong> restrictive immunity <strong>in</strong><br />

the United States is the Tate letter where the department <strong>of</strong> state<br />

announced its <strong>in</strong>tention to follow the restrictive pr<strong>in</strong>ciple. 93 The<br />

f<strong>in</strong>al mark <strong>of</strong> this department was the testimony <strong>of</strong> Mr. Monroe<br />

Leigh, the then legal adviser <strong>of</strong> the state department at a house<br />

hear<strong>in</strong>g, when he noted that:<br />

The purpose <strong>of</strong> sovereign immunity <strong>in</strong><br />

modern <strong>in</strong>ternational law is to … provide a<br />

protection to a state from the burden <strong>of</strong><br />

defend<strong>in</strong>g lawsuits based on its public acts.<br />

However if it enters the market place, there<br />

is no justification for allow<strong>in</strong>g it to avoid the<br />

economic consequences <strong>of</strong> its acts. 94<br />

This position has now found legislative expression <strong>in</strong> United<br />

States foreign sovereignty immunity Act 1976. In the United<br />

K<strong>in</strong>gdom, the case <strong>of</strong> the Trendtex Trad<strong>in</strong>g Corporation Vs.<br />

Central bank <strong>of</strong> Nigeria 95 uphold the rule <strong>of</strong> restrictive immunity<br />

by deny<strong>in</strong>g the CBN immunity when the court noted that:<br />

93. The Department <strong>of</strong> State Bullet<strong>in</strong>g 1952 pp. 983-5.<br />

94. (1976)70 AJIL P.81<br />

95. (1977) Q.B 529<br />

The modern pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> restrictive<br />

sovereign immunity <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law,<br />

giv<strong>in</strong>g no immunity for acts <strong>of</strong> a commercial<br />

nature is consonant to justice, comity <strong>and</strong><br />

good sense.


311<br />

Accord<strong>in</strong>g to the court, even if the bank were part <strong>of</strong> the<br />

government <strong>of</strong> Nigeria, s<strong>in</strong>ce <strong>in</strong>ternational law recognizes no<br />

immunity from suit for government department <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong><br />

ord<strong>in</strong>ary commercial transactions, as dist<strong>in</strong>ct from acts <strong>of</strong><br />

governmental nature, it was not immune from suit on pla<strong>in</strong>tiff‟s<br />

claim <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> letter <strong>of</strong> credit.<br />

In the case <strong>of</strong> Thai-Europe Tapioca Service Ltd. V.<br />

Government <strong>of</strong> Pakistan, 96 a German owned ship on charter to<br />

carry goods from Pol<strong>and</strong> to Pakistan had been bombed <strong>in</strong> Karachi<br />

by Indian Planes dur<strong>in</strong>g the 1971 War. S<strong>in</strong>ce the agreement<br />

provided for disputes to be settled by arbitration <strong>in</strong> Engl<strong>and</strong>, the<br />

matter came eventually before the English courts. The cargo had<br />

previously been consigned to a Pakistani corporation, <strong>and</strong> that<br />

corporation had been taken over by the Pakistani Government.<br />

The ship owner sued the government for the 67- day delay <strong>in</strong><br />

unload<strong>in</strong>g that had resulted from the bomb<strong>in</strong>g. The government<br />

pleaded sovereign immunity <strong>and</strong> sought to have the action<br />

dismissed.<br />

Lord Denn<strong>in</strong>g declared <strong>in</strong> this case:<br />

96 (1975) IWLR 1485 ;64 ILR, P. 81.<br />

That there were certa<strong>in</strong> exceptions to the<br />

doctr<strong>in</strong>e <strong>of</strong> Sovereign immunity, did not apply


312<br />

where the action concerned l<strong>and</strong> situated <strong>in</strong><br />

the UK or trust funds lodged <strong>in</strong> the UK or<br />

debts <strong>in</strong>curred <strong>in</strong> the jurisdiction for services<br />

rendered to property <strong>in</strong> the UK nor was there<br />

any immunity when a commercial transition<br />

was entered <strong>in</strong>to with a trader <strong>in</strong> the UK…<br />

Equally, the Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations<br />

1961 restricts the civil <strong>and</strong> adm<strong>in</strong>istrative immunities <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agents <strong>in</strong> certa<strong>in</strong> cases. Gasiokwu further states:<br />

There is no doubt that concerted efforts<br />

have been made restrict<strong>in</strong>g the immunity <strong>of</strong><br />

a sovereign <strong>in</strong> order to protect the right <strong>of</strong><br />

private property. 97<br />

Based on the forego<strong>in</strong>g, it is correct to submit that if the<br />

sovereign powers will have their immunity restricted <strong>in</strong> order to<br />

protect rights to private property, an object for human<br />

gratification it will be more rational to restrict such immunities<br />

with respect to the protection <strong>of</strong> a higher order which is human<br />

life, freedom <strong>and</strong> dignity 98.<br />

It is therefore correct to conclude that a grave crime, which<br />

is basis for arrest<strong>in</strong>g a <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficer, must be that which affects<br />

human life <strong>in</strong> an <strong>of</strong>fensive manner. Such acts as hostage tak<strong>in</strong>g<br />

torture, genocide, terrorism, piracy, hijack<strong>in</strong>g, etc are most<br />

certa<strong>in</strong>ly <strong>of</strong>fensive to the <strong>in</strong>ternational community <strong>and</strong> are<br />

97 Gasiokwu, M.U. ‘The P<strong>in</strong>ochet – British Extradition Episode issues <strong>and</strong> Problems <strong>in</strong><br />

Interational Law’ an Unpublished work, Faculty <strong>of</strong> Law, <strong>University</strong> <strong>of</strong> <strong>Jos</strong>, <strong>Jos</strong>, 2001, P.12<br />

98 Ibid.


313<br />

therefore grave crimes. These <strong>of</strong>fences are recognized <strong>in</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law as crimes aga<strong>in</strong>st humanity.<br />

The 1945 Nuremberg Charter has provided for three<br />

categories <strong>of</strong> crimes aga<strong>in</strong>st <strong>in</strong>ternational law. These are crimes<br />

aga<strong>in</strong>st peace (eg beg<strong>in</strong>n<strong>in</strong>g a war <strong>of</strong> aggression or <strong>in</strong> violation <strong>of</strong><br />

treaties). Crimes aga<strong>in</strong>st humanity are def<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong> Article VI <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Nuremberg Charter as:<br />

Any <strong>of</strong> the follow<strong>in</strong>g Murder, exterm<strong>in</strong>ation,<br />

enslavement, starvation, or deportation <strong>and</strong><br />

other <strong>in</strong>human acts committed aga<strong>in</strong>st any<br />

civilian population <strong>and</strong> persecution on<br />

national, racial, religious or political<br />

grounds.<br />

The Nuremberg Tribunal observes that these crimes are<br />

he<strong>in</strong>ous <strong>in</strong>dividual crimes for which <strong>in</strong>ternational law requires<br />

states to punish the guilty persons adequately <strong>in</strong> accordance with<br />

the rules <strong>of</strong> their <strong>in</strong>ternal laws. Such crimes are committed by<br />

men not abstract entities, <strong>and</strong> only by punish<strong>in</strong>g the <strong>in</strong>dividuals<br />

who commit such crimes can the provisions <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law<br />

be enforced 99.<br />

The restrictive immunity <strong>practice</strong> <strong>of</strong> states has now been<br />

concretized by statutory enactments <strong>in</strong> Europe, 100 America, 101<br />

99 Hans<strong>and</strong>, Vol. 253, Col. 831, Dec, 2 1963, B.Y.I.L. 1963, P. 2123.<br />

100. European Convention on Immunity <strong>and</strong> Protocol, 1972, the British State Immunity Act, 1978<br />

101. The U.S Foreign Sovereign Immunities Act, 1976


314<br />

Asia 102 <strong>and</strong> South Africa. 103 In <strong>in</strong>ternational law, this doctr<strong>in</strong>e has<br />

also found expression e.g. 1972 European Convention which<br />

allows immunity except <strong>in</strong> certa<strong>in</strong> listed categories. Equally the<br />

Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations 1961 restricts the civil<br />

<strong>and</strong> adm<strong>in</strong>istrative immunities <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents <strong>in</strong> certa<strong>in</strong><br />

cases.<br />

There is no doubt that concerted efforts have been made<br />

restrict<strong>in</strong>g the immunity <strong>of</strong> a sovereign <strong>in</strong> order to protect the right<br />

<strong>of</strong> private property. It is submitted here that if the sovereign<br />

powers will have their immunity restricted <strong>in</strong> order to protect<br />

rights to private property, an object for human gratification, it will<br />

be more rational to restrict such immunities with respect to the<br />

protection <strong>of</strong> a higher order which is human life, freedom <strong>and</strong><br />

dignity.<br />

This pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> restrictive immunity can quite easily have<br />

consequences on the agents <strong>of</strong> states abroad. This is to say that<br />

an agent <strong>of</strong> a state who is <strong>in</strong>volved <strong>in</strong> an act which is <strong>of</strong>fensive to<br />

the <strong>in</strong>ternational community could be a victim <strong>of</strong> this restrictive<br />

immunity. A head <strong>of</strong> state or government who is <strong>in</strong>volved <strong>in</strong> acts<br />

outside the <strong>in</strong>ternationally recognized functions <strong>of</strong> a head <strong>of</strong> state<br />

102. The S<strong>in</strong>gapore State Immunity Act, 1981<br />

103. Article South African Foreign State Immunity Act, 1982


315<br />

or government could be prosecuted. The Hague trials <strong>of</strong> war<br />

crim<strong>in</strong>als where certa<strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons were<br />

tried <strong>and</strong> convicted prove this po<strong>in</strong>t further. These trials can take<br />

place only after the <strong>in</strong>ternationally protected person has left <strong>of</strong>fice<br />

or when his immunity is waived.


316<br />

CHAPTER SIX<br />

TECHNICAL CONSIDERATIONS<br />

6.1 APPOINTMENT AND COMMENCEMENT OF PRIVILEGES<br />

AND IMMUNITIES<br />

In most countries it is an essential requirement for entry <strong>in</strong>to<br />

the <strong>diplomatic</strong> service that the c<strong>and</strong>idate should be a subject or<br />

citizen <strong>of</strong> the country. In Brita<strong>in</strong>, c<strong>and</strong>idates are tested by the Civil<br />

Service Selection Board for their aptitude <strong>in</strong> deal<strong>in</strong>g with the<br />

adm<strong>in</strong>istrative problems passed by a given dossier; <strong>in</strong> the h<strong>and</strong>l<strong>in</strong>g<br />

<strong>of</strong> discussions <strong>in</strong> small groups <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> committee; <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> draft<strong>in</strong>g.<br />

Their character <strong>and</strong> personality are assessed after search<strong>in</strong>g<br />

observation <strong>and</strong> the application <strong>of</strong> psychological tests. As edited by<br />

Lord Gore-Booth:<br />

In consider<strong>in</strong>g what sort <strong>of</strong> person the<br />

selectors should look for among younger<br />

c<strong>and</strong>idates for the service it is important to<br />

discern not only present atta<strong>in</strong>ments but<br />

also future potentiality, dist<strong>in</strong>guish qualities<br />

<strong>of</strong> m<strong>in</strong>d <strong>and</strong> character from acquired<br />

knowledge. Knowledge <strong>of</strong> his own country,<br />

rooted <strong>in</strong> familiarity with its history <strong>and</strong><br />

culture; <strong>and</strong> he should have a grasp <strong>of</strong> the<br />

forces at work <strong>in</strong> its social, political <strong>and</strong><br />

economic life. Unless he has this k<strong>in</strong>d <strong>of</strong><br />

knowledge, <strong>and</strong> with it a powerful feel<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong><br />

attachment (for which personal ambition <strong>and</strong><br />

vanity are no substitute), he will be


317<br />

unconv<strong>in</strong>c<strong>in</strong>g as an <strong>in</strong>terpreter <strong>of</strong> his<br />

country abroad... 1<br />

As Bismarck puts it <strong>in</strong> relation to what is expected <strong>of</strong> a diplomat:<br />

His work consists <strong>of</strong> practical <strong>in</strong>tercourse<br />

with men, <strong>of</strong> judg<strong>in</strong>g accurately what people<br />

are likely to do <strong>in</strong> given circumstances, <strong>of</strong><br />

appreciat<strong>in</strong>g accurately the views <strong>of</strong> others,<br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong> accurately present<strong>in</strong>g his own. 2<br />

Lord Gore-Booth sums it up <strong>in</strong> the follow<strong>in</strong>g words:<br />

In sum, the acceptable c<strong>and</strong>idate for<br />

diplomacy should be at the same time a<br />

th<strong>in</strong>ker <strong>and</strong> a doer, who is outgo<strong>in</strong>g, but not<br />

<strong>in</strong>s<strong>in</strong>cere, studious <strong>and</strong> reflective but not<br />

withdrawn. He should not be too pleased<br />

with himself or easily <strong>of</strong>fended; <strong>and</strong> he<br />

should be able to dist<strong>in</strong>guish between the<br />

consideration <strong>and</strong> the treatment that he<br />

receives on account <strong>of</strong> his position <strong>and</strong> that<br />

which is due to him personally. He should<br />

comb<strong>in</strong>e a coldly analytical m<strong>in</strong>d with a<br />

warm personality; <strong>and</strong> although he cannot<br />

always be his natural self he must be<br />

<strong>in</strong>herently frank <strong>and</strong> honest, <strong>and</strong> be able to<br />

<strong>in</strong>spire trust <strong>and</strong> confidence <strong>in</strong> others 3.<br />

Although the views <strong>of</strong> Bismarck <strong>and</strong> Gore-Booth are largely<br />

accurate, they are not hard <strong>and</strong> fast. This is because not all<br />

diplomats can be s<strong>in</strong>cere, studious <strong>and</strong> reflective.<br />

Selections for <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>practice</strong> are essentially political <strong>in</strong><br />

nature. States appo<strong>in</strong>t people who are respected <strong>in</strong> the society. In<br />

1<br />

Lord Gore-Booth, Op. Cit. p.78.<br />

2<br />

Ibid. p.79<br />

3<br />

Ibid. pp.79-80


318<br />

the United States, posts <strong>of</strong> prime importance are <strong>of</strong>ten held by<br />

people <strong>of</strong> dist<strong>in</strong>guished st<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> public life, nearly always drawn<br />

from the political party <strong>in</strong> power. 4<br />

Worthy <strong>of</strong> note is that, the establishment <strong>of</strong> <strong>consular</strong> or<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> relations <strong>of</strong> permanent nature, based on Articles 2 <strong>of</strong> the<br />

1961 <strong>and</strong> 1963 conventions respectively, takes place by mutual<br />

consent. In this wise, <strong>consular</strong> relations have no political<br />

consequences, <strong>and</strong> can be ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong> a non-sovereign state, or<br />

unrecognized regimes. Diplomatic relations on the other h<strong>and</strong> are<br />

political <strong>and</strong> can only be ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong>ed between sovereign states <strong>and</strong><br />

with recognized regimes.<br />

Unlike <strong>diplomatic</strong> missions, Consulates may be established <strong>in</strong><br />

different regions <strong>of</strong> the host state. Therefore, there has to be an<br />

agreement between the send<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>and</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state over<br />

areas to cover. Sen observes that:<br />

The very nature <strong>of</strong> the functions <strong>of</strong> a<br />

consulate that is, promotion <strong>of</strong> trade <strong>and</strong><br />

commerce <strong>and</strong> protection <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>terests <strong>of</strong><br />

the nationals <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state,<br />

necessitates establishments <strong>of</strong> <strong>consular</strong><br />

<strong>of</strong>fices <strong>in</strong> areas where trade <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>dustry are<br />

concentrated. 5<br />

4 Satow, E. Op.cit. p.77<br />

5 Lee, L. T., Vienna Convention on Consular Relations (A. W. Syth<strong>of</strong>f-Ieyden: Rule <strong>of</strong> Law Press; 1966).<br />

P.41


319<br />

The consent given for the establishment <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

relations between two states imply, unless otherwise stated,<br />

consent to the establishment <strong>of</strong> <strong>consular</strong> relations. And the<br />

severance <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations shall not ipso facto <strong>in</strong>volve the<br />

severance <strong>of</strong> <strong>consular</strong> relations. 6<br />

The appo<strong>in</strong>tment <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the mission is done by the<br />

send<strong>in</strong>g state subject to the agreement <strong>of</strong> the host state. The host<br />

state that may refuse to give this agreement is not under a duty<br />

based on <strong>in</strong>ternational law to give reasons to the send<strong>in</strong>g state for<br />

such refusal. 7 Two or more states may accredit the same person as<br />

head <strong>of</strong> mission to another state, unless objection is <strong>of</strong>fered by the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. 8 If the send<strong>in</strong>g state accredits a head <strong>of</strong> mission to<br />

one or more other states, it may establish a <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission<br />

headed by a Charge d‟ Affaires ad <strong>in</strong>terim <strong>in</strong> each state where the<br />

head <strong>of</strong> mission has not his permanent seat. 9 This is known as<br />

concurrent accreditation. The send<strong>in</strong>g state based on Article 7 <strong>of</strong><br />

the 1961 Convention, may freely appo<strong>in</strong>t the members <strong>of</strong> the staff<br />

<strong>of</strong> the mission. In the case <strong>of</strong> military, naval or air attaches, the<br />

6 Articles 2 Paragraphs 2 <strong>and</strong> 3 <strong>of</strong> the 1963 Convention.<br />

7 Article 4 paragraphs 1 <strong>and</strong> 2 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention.<br />

8 Article 6 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention<br />

9 Article 5 paragraph 2 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention.


320<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state may require their names to be submitted before<br />

h<strong>and</strong>, for its approval. Sen B. cit<strong>in</strong>g J. G. Starke says:<br />

The appo<strong>in</strong>tment <strong>of</strong> an ambassador or<br />

m<strong>in</strong>ister is usually announced to the state<br />

which is credited <strong>in</strong> certa<strong>in</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficial papers,<br />

with which the envoy is furnished with<br />

letters known as „letters <strong>of</strong> credence‟ or<br />

„letters de creance. These are for remission<br />

to the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. 10<br />

In the case <strong>of</strong> consuls, they are provided by the send<strong>in</strong>g state<br />

with a commission, which is transmitted to the government <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. This notification is <strong>in</strong>dispensable, <strong>and</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state‟s response is to grant their authorization; for without this the<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficer cannot take up his duties. The authorization, if is a<br />

document is called an exequatur. The receiv<strong>in</strong>g state may however<br />

refuse to grant an exequatur: <strong>and</strong> if so the send<strong>in</strong>g state may<br />

enquire the reason through the <strong>diplomatic</strong> channel, though the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state is under no obligation to give it.<br />

The <strong>consular</strong> commission is different from the „letter <strong>of</strong><br />

credence‟ given to the diplomat <strong>in</strong> the sense that it is not addressed<br />

to the head <strong>of</strong> state <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. It is sent to the<br />

government <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state through <strong>diplomatic</strong> channel. The<br />

1963 Convention provides:<br />

10 Sen B. A Diplomatic H<strong>and</strong>book <strong>of</strong> International Law <strong>and</strong> Practice (2 nd ed.) 1979, p.46.


321<br />

The send<strong>in</strong>g state transmit the commission<br />

or similar <strong>in</strong>strument through the <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

or other appropriate channel to the<br />

government <strong>of</strong> the state <strong>in</strong> whose territory<br />

the head <strong>of</strong> a <strong>consular</strong> post is to exercise his<br />

functions. 11<br />

A diplomat is said to have taken up his function when he<br />

presents his letter <strong>of</strong> credence to the external Affairs M<strong>in</strong>istry <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Receiv<strong>in</strong>g State. 12 Precedence here is by date <strong>and</strong> time <strong>of</strong> arrival <strong>of</strong><br />

head <strong>of</strong> mission. 13<br />

In the case <strong>of</strong> a consul, he takes up his function when he is<br />

granted an exequatur by the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. 14 Precedence here is<br />

by date <strong>of</strong> grant <strong>of</strong> exequatur. 15 In this wise, both are different <strong>in</strong><br />

the sense that while a diplomat enters <strong>in</strong>to this functions on<br />

presentation <strong>of</strong> his „letter <strong>of</strong> credence‟, a consul can enter <strong>in</strong>to his<br />

functions before he is granted an exequatur. The similarity<br />

between the exequatur <strong>and</strong> „letter <strong>of</strong> credence‟ is that both are<br />

authorization to carry out functions. International law however<br />

provides that:<br />

11 Article 11 paragraph 2 <strong>of</strong> the 1963 Convention.<br />

12 Article 13 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention.<br />

13 Article 13 paragraph 2 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention.<br />

14 Article 12 paragraph 1 <strong>of</strong> the 1963 Convention.<br />

15 Article 16 paragraph 1 <strong>of</strong> the 1963 Convention.<br />

Every person entitled to privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities shall enjoy them from the<br />

moment he enters the territory <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state on proceed<strong>in</strong>g to take up his


322<br />

post or, if already <strong>in</strong> its territory; from the<br />

moment when his appo<strong>in</strong>tment is notified to<br />

the m<strong>in</strong>istry for foreign affairs or such other<br />

m<strong>in</strong>istry as may be agreed. 16<br />

The problem with the provision above is that the Head <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Mission is not considered as hav<strong>in</strong>g taken up his function until he<br />

has presented his credentials. Or when he has notified his arrival<br />

<strong>and</strong> a true copy <strong>of</strong> his credentials has been presented to the<br />

appropriate m<strong>in</strong>istry; yet his privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities commence<br />

from the moment he entered the territory <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state on<br />

proceed<strong>in</strong>g to take up his past. The implication <strong>of</strong> this is that under<br />

the first lap <strong>of</strong> Article 39(1), privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>of</strong> the Head<br />

<strong>of</strong> the mission attach to him even at a time when he is „not<br />

considered as hav<strong>in</strong>g taken up his function <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state‟.<br />

Visits by <strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons must be arranged<br />

between the send<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>and</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state as conta<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong><br />

the provision above. In other words, the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state must have<br />

been notified about the visit <strong>and</strong> must have consented to it <strong>and</strong> the<br />

date fixed for it. States understudy their domestic atmosphere<br />

before they give consent to dates. In fact there have been<br />

cancellations <strong>of</strong> impend<strong>in</strong>g visits earlier agreed upon, necessitated<br />

16 Article 39 paragraph 1 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention.


323<br />

by unconducive domestic atmosphere especially when states<br />

cannot guarantee the safety <strong>of</strong> the visitor. The purpose <strong>of</strong> the visit,<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficial or un<strong>of</strong>ficial does not matter as long as the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state<br />

has been <strong>in</strong>formed <strong>and</strong> has agreed to host the foreign <strong>of</strong>ficial. E.g.,<br />

Babangida‟s visit to France for treatment, though a private visit;<br />

the French gave him special protection. When <strong>in</strong>ternationally<br />

protected persons travel <strong>in</strong>cognito, that is, without prior notice or<br />

identification for either <strong>of</strong>ficial or private purpose, they do not enjoy<br />

special protection. This protection is also not provided where a<br />

Head <strong>of</strong> State or Government has been deposed or replaced, when<br />

they travel abroad. Thus General Yakubu Gowon (Rtd) did not<br />

enjoy any special protection <strong>in</strong> London where he stayed. The<br />

exception here is that if such a deposed or replaced head <strong>of</strong> state<br />

travels abroad as a representative <strong>of</strong> his state or government, he<br />

enjoys special protection. Thus when General Olusegun Obasanjo<br />

(Rtd.) travelled to South Africa <strong>in</strong> 1987 among the „Em<strong>in</strong>ent<br />

Persons Group‟ <strong>of</strong> the Commonwealth to evaluate the situation <strong>in</strong><br />

the place, he was granted special protection.<br />

In relation to <strong>in</strong>ternational <strong>of</strong>ficials, they must be recruited on<br />

a broad geographical basis. The UN charter provides:<br />

The paramount consideration <strong>in</strong> the<br />

employment <strong>of</strong> the staff <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> the


324<br />

determ<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> the conditions <strong>of</strong> service<br />

shall be the necessity <strong>of</strong> secur<strong>in</strong>g the highest<br />

st<strong>and</strong>ards <strong>of</strong> efficiency, competence, <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>tegrity. Due regard shall be paid to the<br />

importance <strong>of</strong> recruit<strong>in</strong>g staff on as wide a<br />

geographical basis as possible. 17<br />

Each Secretary-General has the staff exclusive competence to<br />

appo<strong>in</strong>t all his staff. 18 Appo<strong>in</strong>tment <strong>in</strong> an <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

adm<strong>in</strong>istration is obviously different from any national<br />

appo<strong>in</strong>tments. The responsibility for this, under regulations by the<br />

General Assembly falls on the Secretary-General. Hence, nobody<br />

can impose a c<strong>and</strong>idate on him nor exercise a decisive <strong>in</strong>fluence on<br />

his choice. This pr<strong>in</strong>ciple is expressed <strong>in</strong> the report <strong>of</strong> the<br />

International Civil Service Advisory Board on recruitment methods<br />

<strong>and</strong> st<strong>and</strong>ards for the UN <strong>and</strong> the Specialised Agencies, as follows:<br />

17 Article 101 paragraph 3 <strong>of</strong> the U.N. Charter.<br />

18 Article 101 paragraph 1 <strong>of</strong> the U. N. Charter.<br />

The Board notes with satisfaction that the<br />

constitutional basis for the <strong>in</strong>dependent<br />

selection <strong>of</strong> staff by the Secretary-General<br />

<strong>and</strong> Executive Heads <strong>of</strong> the specialised<br />

agencies has been well established. It<br />

attaches great importance to this pr<strong>in</strong>ciple<br />

<strong>and</strong> is conv<strong>in</strong>ced that as <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

secretariat desired high st<strong>and</strong>ards can be<br />

achieved only if this pr<strong>in</strong>ciple is ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong>ed<br />

<strong>in</strong> <strong>practice</strong> as well as <strong>in</strong> theory…. The Board<br />

wishes to po<strong>in</strong>t out that government <strong>of</strong>ficials<br />

<strong>and</strong> delegations, <strong>in</strong> particular, have a high<br />

responsibility <strong>in</strong> support<strong>in</strong>g the executive


325<br />

Head <strong>in</strong> his <strong>in</strong>dependent application <strong>of</strong> the<br />

basic criteria to the selection <strong>of</strong> his staff. 19<br />

Be that as it may, the appo<strong>in</strong>tment <strong>of</strong> any member <strong>of</strong> the<br />

class known as „<strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons‟ is done <strong>of</strong>ficially<br />

by giv<strong>in</strong>g serious attention to people <strong>of</strong> dist<strong>in</strong>guished st<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong><br />

public life. Whether <strong>in</strong> concrete existential realities this is<br />

obta<strong>in</strong>able, falls outside the scope <strong>of</strong> this work.<br />

6.2 DURATION OF PROTECTION<br />

Privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities, as protective as they are have<br />

duration. They are not meant to benefits <strong>in</strong>dividuals but rather to<br />

ensure the efficient performance <strong>of</strong> his functions. Based on this<br />

fact, they are meant to serve specific purposes. However there are<br />

<strong>in</strong>stances when these privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities avail the person<br />

protected no more. These <strong>in</strong>stances <strong>in</strong>clude the follow<strong>in</strong>g:<br />

(i) In the event <strong>of</strong> term<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission;<br />

(ii) Break <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations;<br />

(iii) In the event <strong>of</strong> Waiver; <strong>and</strong><br />

(iv) Relation to immunity from the civil <strong>and</strong> adm<strong>in</strong>istrative<br />

jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, the exception <strong>in</strong>corporated<br />

<strong>in</strong> Article 31 paragraphs (a) to (c) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 convention on<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> relations.<br />

19 Doc. Co-ord/civil Service /2/ Rev. 1-publ. UN 1950.


326<br />

6.2.1 Term<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> Diplomatic Missions<br />

A <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission may come to an end <strong>in</strong> various ways:<br />

Recall <strong>of</strong> the envoy by the accredit<strong>in</strong>g state: The 1961<br />

Convention provides that the function <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent comes<br />

to an end on notification by the send<strong>in</strong>g state that the function <strong>of</strong><br />

the <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent has come to an end. 20 A letter <strong>of</strong> recall is<br />

usually h<strong>and</strong>ed to the Head <strong>of</strong> State or to the M<strong>in</strong>ister <strong>of</strong> Foreign<br />

Affairs <strong>in</strong> solemn audience, <strong>and</strong> the envoy receives a „letter de<br />

Recreance‟ acknowledg<strong>in</strong>g his recall. In certa<strong>in</strong> circumstances, the<br />

recall <strong>of</strong> an envoy will have the gravest significance e.g. when it is<br />

<strong>in</strong>tended to warn the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>of</strong> the accredit<strong>in</strong>g states‟<br />

dissatisfaction with their mutual relations.<br />

In the event <strong>of</strong> death <strong>of</strong> a member <strong>of</strong> a mission, the 1961<br />

Convention obliges the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state to permit the withdrawal <strong>of</strong><br />

his movable property, with the exception <strong>of</strong> any property acquired<br />

<strong>in</strong> the country the export <strong>of</strong> which was prohibited at the time <strong>of</strong> his<br />

death. Estate, succession or <strong>in</strong>heritance duty may not be levied on<br />

movable property whose presence <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state was due<br />

solely to the presence <strong>of</strong> the deceased as a member <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

mission. 21 The members <strong>of</strong> his family shall cont<strong>in</strong>ue to enjoy the<br />

20 Article 43 paragraph (a) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention<br />

21 Article 39 paragraph 4 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention.


327<br />

privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities to which they are entitled until the expiry<br />

<strong>of</strong> a reasonable time <strong>in</strong> which to leave the country. 22<br />

In relation to consuls, the Convention on Consular Relations<br />

<strong>of</strong> 1963 provides that the functions <strong>of</strong> a member <strong>of</strong> a <strong>consular</strong> post<br />

comes to an end on notification by the send<strong>in</strong>g state to the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state that his function have come to an end; on<br />

withdrawal <strong>of</strong> the exequatur; <strong>and</strong> on notification by the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state to the send<strong>in</strong>g state that, the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state has ceased to<br />

consider him as member <strong>of</strong> the <strong>consular</strong> post. 23 Also based on the<br />

provision <strong>of</strong> the convention on Diplomatic relations, the function <strong>of</strong><br />

a <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission comes to an end on notification by the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state to the send<strong>in</strong>g state that it refuses to recognize the<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agent as a member <strong>of</strong> the mission. 24 These two<br />

<strong>in</strong>stances are where the consul or <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent is not recalled,<br />

or his functions term<strong>in</strong>ated, but <strong>in</strong>stead declared persona non<br />

grata. 25<br />

Persona non grata is the process by which an ambassador or<br />

other <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent who is personally unacceptable to the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g government is removed or rejected. 26 The 1961<br />

22 Article 39 paragraph 3 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention.<br />

23 Article 25 paragraphs (a) to (c) <strong>of</strong> the 1963 Convention.<br />

24 Article 43 paragraph (b) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention.<br />

25 Article 9 paragraph (1) <strong>and</strong> (2) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention.<br />

26 Lord Gore-Booth, Op.cit. p.178.


328<br />

Convention <strong>in</strong> Article 9 paragraph 1 provides that a person can be<br />

declared persona non grata or not acceptable before arriv<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> the<br />

territory <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. In which case he needs to be<br />

granted a visa or admitted on arrival. This view <strong>in</strong> relation to<br />

consuls agrees with Article 23 <strong>of</strong> the Convention on Consular<br />

relations.<br />

Probably, the most dramatic case <strong>of</strong> declaration persona non<br />

grata occurred <strong>in</strong> 1971 when the British Government requested the<br />

withdrawal <strong>of</strong> 105 soviet Government <strong>of</strong>ficials, many <strong>of</strong> who were<br />

on the <strong>diplomatic</strong> staff <strong>of</strong> Soviet Union‟s embassy <strong>in</strong> London. 27<br />

In June 1986, Libyan Ambassador to Egypt was declared<br />

persona non grata after be<strong>in</strong>g detected by Security Authorities<br />

distribut<strong>in</strong>g pamphlets hostile to the regime <strong>of</strong> president Sadat <strong>of</strong><br />

Egypt. 28<br />

The release <strong>in</strong> October 1976 <strong>of</strong> evidence <strong>of</strong> widespread<br />

smuggl<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> illegal sales <strong>of</strong> drugs, alcohol <strong>and</strong> cigarettes by<br />

North Korean diplomats <strong>in</strong> Sc<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>avia led to a number <strong>of</strong><br />

declarations <strong>of</strong> persona non grata. It can be affirmed that based on<br />

Article 42 <strong>of</strong> the Convention on Diplomatic Relations, a <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

agent is not authorized to <strong>practice</strong> for personal pr<strong>of</strong>it any<br />

27 Lord Gore-Booth, Op.cit. p.184<br />

28 Ibid p.186


329<br />

pr<strong>of</strong>essional or commercial activity <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. The first<br />

country to act was Denmark, which gave the North Korean<br />

Ambassador <strong>and</strong> his entire <strong>diplomatic</strong> staff six days to leave on the<br />

grounds that they had turned their embassy <strong>in</strong>to a front for the<br />

illegal import <strong>and</strong> sale <strong>of</strong> drugs, liquor <strong>and</strong> cigarettes. 29 These acts<br />

by the Korean Ambassador also violated Article 41 <strong>of</strong> the<br />

convention <strong>in</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations which enjo<strong>in</strong>s every person<br />

enjoy<strong>in</strong>g privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities to respect the laws <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>and</strong> not to <strong>in</strong>terfere <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternal affairs <strong>of</strong> that<br />

state; <strong>and</strong> not to use the premises <strong>of</strong> the mission <strong>in</strong> any way<br />

<strong>in</strong>consistent with the functions <strong>of</strong> the mission. 30<br />

Also <strong>in</strong> July 1984, follow<strong>in</strong>g the unsuccessful abduction<br />

attempt on Dr. Umaru Dikko, a wanted politician resid<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong><br />

London, two Nigerian diplomats <strong>in</strong> Brita<strong>in</strong> were declared persona<br />

non grata <strong>and</strong> deported. In retaliation, the Nigerian Government<br />

declared two opposite numbers <strong>in</strong> the British embassy personal<br />

non grata.<br />

The term<strong>in</strong>ation <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission can also come about as<br />

a result <strong>of</strong>, if temporary, with the completion <strong>of</strong> negotiations or<br />

29 Lord Gore-Booth, Loc. cit.<br />

30 Article 41 paragraphs (1) <strong>and</strong> (3) <strong>of</strong> The 1961 Convention.


330<br />

conclusion <strong>of</strong> the mission, <strong>and</strong> also at the expiration <strong>of</strong> letters <strong>of</strong><br />

credence given for a limited period only.<br />

6.2.2 Break <strong>of</strong> Diplomatic Relations<br />

Where displeasure is not with a diplomat personally but the<br />

policies or conduct <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state, the correct course is to<br />

break <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations. This act, usually decided <strong>and</strong><br />

announced unilaterally, <strong>in</strong>dicates a strong objection by a<br />

government to language or actions on the part <strong>of</strong> another<br />

government or other governments.<br />

S<strong>in</strong>ce the Second World War, there have been a number <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>stances <strong>of</strong> formal break<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations. In 1951 Iran<br />

broke <strong>of</strong>f relations with the U.K., which never resumed until<br />

December 1952. On 6 th November 1956, precisely one day before<br />

the cease-fire, which brought the Suez <strong>in</strong>cident to an end, Saudi<br />

Arabia broke <strong>of</strong>f <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations with Brita<strong>in</strong> <strong>and</strong> France.<br />

Relations were not reopened until September the 9 th 1962 <strong>in</strong> the<br />

case <strong>of</strong> France, <strong>and</strong> June the 16 th <strong>in</strong> that <strong>of</strong> Brita<strong>in</strong>. 31<br />

At the beg<strong>in</strong>n<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> the so-called „Six Day War‟ <strong>of</strong> June 1967<br />

between certa<strong>in</strong> Arab states <strong>and</strong> Israel, an alarm which was false<br />

was transmitted by the Government <strong>of</strong> Jordan to President Gamel<br />

31 Lord Gore-Booth, Op.cit. p.188.


331<br />

Abdel Nasser <strong>of</strong> Egypt that American <strong>and</strong> British aircraft were on<br />

their way to cross Israel <strong>and</strong> attack Jordan. Though the rumour<br />

was false, the Egyptian leadership committed itself publicly to its<br />

acceptance <strong>and</strong> consequently, <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations were broken <strong>of</strong>f<br />

between Egypt <strong>and</strong> the U.S. <strong>and</strong> Brita<strong>in</strong>, by Egypt. 32<br />

In August 1976, the U.K. broke <strong>of</strong>f <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations with<br />

the Government <strong>of</strong> President Idi Am<strong>in</strong>. The U.K. argued that its<br />

purpose <strong>in</strong> so do<strong>in</strong>g was not so much to rebuke or <strong>in</strong>fluence<br />

President Am<strong>in</strong> as to confirm that the President had rendered<br />

impossible the proper function<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> the United K<strong>in</strong>gdom High<br />

Commissioner <strong>in</strong> Kampala. 33<br />

In Nigeria, dur<strong>in</strong>g the civil war <strong>of</strong> 1967-1970, follow<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

recognition extended to Biafra by Gabon, Tanzania, Haiti, Ivory<br />

Coast <strong>and</strong> Zambia, Nigeria cut <strong>of</strong>f relations with the five states.<br />

This was however reestablished at the end <strong>of</strong> the civil war.<br />

Though <strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons carry out<br />

negotiations <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational system, <strong>in</strong> the event <strong>of</strong> an<br />

outbreak <strong>of</strong> war, diplomacy takes on a new dimension, which<br />

hardly has the immunity <strong>of</strong> the diplomat <strong>in</strong> m<strong>in</strong>d. At such times<br />

states are enjo<strong>in</strong>ed to grant facilities <strong>in</strong> order to enable persons<br />

32 Ibid. p.189<br />

33 Ibid. p.l90.


332<br />

enjoy<strong>in</strong>g privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities to leave at the earliest possible<br />

time. And <strong>in</strong> case <strong>of</strong> need, place at the disposal <strong>of</strong> such persons<br />

necessary means <strong>of</strong> transport for themselves <strong>and</strong> their property. 34<br />

Sometimes <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations may break follow<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

disappearance <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> state, either <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g or<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. It is normally quickly apparent whether or not<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> appo<strong>in</strong>tments will be renewed. Only very exceptionally,<br />

like when the Royal Government <strong>of</strong> National Union <strong>of</strong> Cambodia<br />

replaced the Government <strong>of</strong> the Khmer Republic <strong>in</strong> May 1975, is<br />

there an <strong>in</strong>terval before it becomes evident whether <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

appo<strong>in</strong>tments are be<strong>in</strong>g renewed. 35<br />

Diplomatic relations can also be broken when either <strong>of</strong> the<br />

two states ceases to recognize the other, as it was the case with<br />

Nigeria mentioned above between 1967 to 1970. Where <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

relations are broken, protection ceases after a reasonable period so<br />

as to allow diplomats return home safely. However, <strong>in</strong> relation to<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational <strong>of</strong>ficials <strong>and</strong> representatives <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>tergovernmental<br />

organisations, a censure <strong>of</strong> a member to become a member <strong>of</strong> the<br />

UN for <strong>in</strong>stance, may withdraw benefits <strong>of</strong> the UN but will not stop<br />

such non-member from act<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> accordance with the pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong><br />

34 Articles 44 <strong>and</strong> 45 paragraphs (a) (b) <strong>and</strong> (c) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention.<br />

35 Lord Gore-Booth, Op.cit. p.176.


333<br />

the UN so far as may be necessary for the ma<strong>in</strong>tenance <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational peace <strong>and</strong> security. 36 This view has however been<br />

argued that s<strong>in</strong>ce the UN is an organisation established by treaty,<br />

non-members should not be bound.<br />

6.2.3 Waivers<br />

Waiver <strong>in</strong> law means the surrender <strong>of</strong> a known right or an<br />

excuse for non-performance. The term “Waiver” is used with<br />

different mean<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>and</strong> must therefore be related to particular<br />

situations. An agreement for considerations for a previous<br />

obligation or a choice <strong>of</strong> one right, which causes the loss <strong>of</strong> others,<br />

is sometimes called a waiver. More <strong>of</strong>ten waiver refers to a promise<br />

or permission excus<strong>in</strong>g some condition <strong>of</strong> a duty to render<br />

performance or an obligation due presently or <strong>in</strong> the future or<br />

rel<strong>in</strong>quish<strong>in</strong>g a legal defense. Generally a waiver must be<br />

<strong>in</strong>tentional or voluntary <strong>and</strong> knowledge <strong>of</strong> the facts necessary to<br />

effectuate a waiver required. Conduct evidenc<strong>in</strong>g an <strong>in</strong>tention to<br />

waive may be sufficient to work a rel<strong>in</strong>quishment <strong>of</strong> a right or<br />

advantage. 37<br />

The convention on <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations provides that the<br />

immunity from the receiv<strong>in</strong>g states‟ jurisdiction, <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

36 Article 2 paragraph 6 <strong>of</strong> the UN Charter.<br />

37 The Enyclopedia Americana, Vol. 28


334<br />

agent, does not exempt him from jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state. 38<br />

Section 32 goes ahead to provide that such immunity can be<br />

waived by the send<strong>in</strong>g state. And that such waiver must be<br />

expressed <strong>and</strong> that waiver <strong>of</strong> immunity from jurisdiction <strong>in</strong> respect<br />

<strong>of</strong> civil <strong>and</strong> adm<strong>in</strong>istrative proceed<strong>in</strong>gs is not the same as waiver <strong>of</strong><br />

immunity <strong>in</strong> respect <strong>of</strong> execution, which requires another waiver.<br />

Waiver can be expla<strong>in</strong>ed to be <strong>in</strong>stances when the immunity<br />

<strong>of</strong> a person enjoy<strong>in</strong>g privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities is lifted so as not to<br />

impede the course <strong>of</strong> justice. This waiver may not be permanent<br />

<strong>and</strong> used <strong>in</strong> a particular case or cases <strong>and</strong> such immunity may be<br />

restored or not, depend<strong>in</strong>g on the cause <strong>of</strong> such waiver.<br />

The Nigerian Act Cap 99 <strong>of</strong> 1990 proves that a foreign envoy<br />

or foreign consul with the consent <strong>of</strong> his government may waive<br />

any immunity or <strong>in</strong>violability conferred on him by the Act. 39 This<br />

Act provides same <strong>in</strong> relation to Commonwealth representatives, 40<br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> relation to representatives attend<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

conferences, it provides that any organisation or person may waive<br />

any immunity, <strong>in</strong>violability or privileges conferred on it or him<br />

under the Act. 41<br />

38 Article 31 paragraph 4 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention.<br />

39 Section 1 paragraph 2.<br />

40 Section 7 paragraph 1.<br />

41 Section 15.


335<br />

The convention on the Privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunities <strong>of</strong> the UN<br />

also provides:<br />

…The Secretary-General shall have the right<br />

<strong>and</strong> duty to waive the immunity <strong>of</strong> any<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficial <strong>in</strong> any case where, <strong>in</strong> his op<strong>in</strong>ion, the<br />

immunity would impede the course <strong>of</strong> justice<br />

<strong>and</strong> can be waived without prejudice to the<br />

<strong>in</strong>terests <strong>of</strong> the UN… 42<br />

This provision agrees with Article VI Section 23 <strong>in</strong> relation to<br />

experts on missions for the UN. In relation to the Secretary-<br />

General, Article V Section 20 <strong>of</strong> the same convention further<br />

provides that the Security Council shall have the right to waive<br />

immunity.<br />

Although there are elaborate provisions on waivers, state<br />

<strong>practice</strong> has hardly reflected the desire <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law. In the<br />

1984 Umaru Dikko case, the Nigerian Government denied any<br />

<strong>in</strong>volvement <strong>in</strong> the kidnap bid. British Authorities arrested <strong>and</strong><br />

deta<strong>in</strong>ed 17 people some <strong>of</strong> whom were Nigerian diplomats. This<br />

raised a serious question <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> diplomats. The British<br />

dem<strong>and</strong> for a waiver <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity for the Nigerian<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficials was rejected.<br />

It is possible <strong>of</strong> course, for a state to waive expressly or<br />

impliedly its immunity from the jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the court. Express<br />

42 Article V, Section 20.


336<br />

waiver <strong>of</strong> immunity from jurisdiction, however, does not itself mean<br />

waiver <strong>of</strong> immunity from execution. 43 In the case <strong>of</strong> implied waiver,<br />

same case is required. Section 2 <strong>of</strong> the State Immunity Act provides<br />

for loss <strong>of</strong> immunity upon submission to the jurisdiction, either by<br />

a prior written agreement 44 or after the particular dispute has<br />

arisen. A state is deemed to have submitted to the jurisdiction<br />

where the state has <strong>in</strong>stituted proceed<strong>in</strong>gs or has <strong>in</strong>tervened or<br />

taken any step <strong>in</strong> the proceed<strong>in</strong>gs. 45<br />

If a state submits to proceed<strong>in</strong>gs, it is deemed to have<br />

submitted to any counterclaim aris<strong>in</strong>g out <strong>of</strong> the same legal<br />

relationship or facts as the claim. 46 A provision <strong>in</strong> an agreement<br />

that it is to be governed by the law <strong>of</strong> the UK is not to be taken as a<br />

submission. By section 9, a state, which has agreed <strong>in</strong> writ<strong>in</strong>g to<br />

submit a dispute to arbitration, is not immune from proceed<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong><br />

the courts, which relate to the arbitration. 47 The issue <strong>of</strong> waiver is<br />

also a key factor <strong>in</strong> many US cases. 48<br />

43<br />

Article 18 (2) <strong>of</strong> the ILC Draft Articles on Jurisdictional immunities, Report <strong>of</strong> the International Law<br />

Association, 1991, P. 000.<br />

44<br />

Kahan V. Pakistan Federation (1951) 2 KB 1003: 18 ILR, P. 210.<br />

45<br />

Article 1 <strong>of</strong> the European Convention on State Immunity, 1972.<br />

46<br />

Article 1 <strong>of</strong> the European Convention on State Immunity, 1972.<br />

47<br />

Article 12 <strong>of</strong> the European Convention on State Immunity, 1972.<br />

48<br />

Section 1605 (a) (1) <strong>of</strong> the US Foreign Sovereign Immunities Act, 1976.


337<br />

Accord<strong>in</strong>gly, Lord Phillimore <strong>in</strong> Engelke Vs. Musmann 49 said<br />

<strong>of</strong> the immunity <strong>of</strong> an ambassador that it is accorded him <strong>in</strong> order<br />

that he may transact his sovereign‟s bus<strong>in</strong>ess, <strong>and</strong> hence is a<br />

“privilege which he cannot waive unless under direction from his<br />

sovereign.”<br />

The practical difficulties <strong>of</strong> such a rule are overcome, perhaps<br />

by a presumption that a waiver actually made is with the consent<br />

<strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state.<br />

In Re Suarez, 50 the defendant was the Bolivian M<strong>in</strong>ster to<br />

London, <strong>and</strong> was also the adm<strong>in</strong>istrator <strong>of</strong> an estate respect<strong>in</strong>g<br />

which the action arose. A formal waiver <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity was<br />

given <strong>and</strong> an order was made. Three years later execution <strong>of</strong> the<br />

order was sought, <strong>and</strong> one <strong>of</strong> the defenses raised was that the<br />

waiver was <strong>in</strong>valid because it had not been shown that it was given<br />

with the government‟s consent. The Court <strong>of</strong> Appeal found that <strong>in</strong><br />

fact this consent had been given, but that even if it had not it<br />

would have been.<br />

49 (1928) A.C. 433 at P. 450.<br />

50 (1972) 2 Ch. 131.


6.2.4 Other Instances<br />

338<br />

Other <strong>in</strong>stance where the immunity <strong>of</strong> a protected person may<br />

be tampered exists <strong>in</strong> Article 31 <strong>of</strong> the Convention on <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

relations. It provides that a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent shall also enjoy<br />

immunity from the civil <strong>and</strong> adm<strong>in</strong>istrative jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state except <strong>in</strong> the case <strong>of</strong> a real action relat<strong>in</strong>g to private<br />

immovable property situated <strong>in</strong> the territory <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state,<br />

unless he holds it on behalf <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state for purposes <strong>of</strong> the<br />

mission; an action relat<strong>in</strong>g to succession <strong>in</strong> which he is <strong>in</strong>volved as<br />

executor, adm<strong>in</strong>istrator, her or legates as a private person <strong>and</strong> not<br />

on behalf <strong>of</strong> the Send<strong>in</strong>g States; an action relat<strong>in</strong>g to any<br />

pr<strong>of</strong>essional or commercial activity exercised by him <strong>in</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state outside his <strong>of</strong>ficial functions. 51 This simply means<br />

that a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent fall<strong>in</strong>g with<strong>in</strong> these exceptions shall not be<br />

protected to the extent <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g states‟ civil <strong>and</strong><br />

adm<strong>in</strong>istrative jurisdictions. These exceptions are further<br />

strengthened by Articles 42 <strong>and</strong> 41 both <strong>of</strong> which prohibit the<br />

<strong>in</strong>volvement <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternal affairs <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>and</strong> also to respect the laws <strong>of</strong> the state; to ensure<br />

the lawful use <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises; <strong>and</strong> not to <strong>practice</strong> for<br />

51 Article 31 paragraphs (a) to (c).


339<br />

personal pr<strong>of</strong>it any pr<strong>of</strong>essional or commercial activity <strong>in</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state.<br />

However by the provision <strong>of</strong> Article 31 paragraph 2 that a<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agent is not obliged to give evidence as a witness,<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law entangles itself to the extent that s<strong>in</strong>ce a waiver is<br />

required before a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent can fall with<strong>in</strong> the civil <strong>and</strong><br />

adm<strong>in</strong>istrative jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g states, the matter is not<br />

solved, s<strong>in</strong>ce states can for political or economic reasons refuse<br />

such waivers. If the receiv<strong>in</strong>g states had exclusive rights to act<br />

concern<strong>in</strong>g the exceptions mentioned, <strong>in</strong>ternational law would have<br />

made a more serious mark. It is however easy to underst<strong>and</strong> the<br />

position <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law s<strong>in</strong>ce these protected persons<br />

represent their states <strong>and</strong> governments; to turn the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state<br />

on any <strong>of</strong> them without adequate check would violate respect for<br />

territorial <strong>in</strong>tegrity <strong>and</strong> sovereignty <strong>of</strong> states which is a<br />

fundamental pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> the UN.<br />

In respect <strong>of</strong> Consular agents where crim<strong>in</strong>al proceed<strong>in</strong>gs are<br />

<strong>in</strong>stituted aga<strong>in</strong>st a <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficer, he must appear before the<br />

competent authorities. However proceed<strong>in</strong>gs shall be conducted<br />

with respect <strong>and</strong> regard due him by reason <strong>of</strong> his <strong>of</strong>ficial position.<br />

He shall be liable to arrest or detention pend<strong>in</strong>g trial <strong>in</strong> case <strong>of</strong> a


340<br />

grave crime or decision by a decision <strong>of</strong> a competent judicial<br />

authority <strong>and</strong> based on this pr<strong>in</strong>ciple, can also be committed to<br />

prison or any other form <strong>of</strong> restrictions on their personal freedom. 52<br />

In the event <strong>of</strong> an arrest, detention or prosecution, the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state shall notify the head <strong>of</strong> the <strong>consular</strong> post. If the head is<br />

himself the object <strong>of</strong> such arrest or detention, the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state<br />

shall notify the send<strong>in</strong>g state through the <strong>diplomatic</strong> channel. 53<br />

Consular <strong>of</strong>ficers may also be called to give evidence but he is<br />

under no obligation to so do <strong>in</strong> matters relat<strong>in</strong>g to the exercise <strong>of</strong><br />

their functions or to produce <strong>of</strong>ficial correspondence <strong>and</strong><br />

documents relat<strong>in</strong>g thereto. 54 Consular <strong>of</strong>ficers shall also be<br />

amenable to the jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the judicial or adm<strong>in</strong>istrative<br />

authorities <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state where he is a party to a contract<br />

not expressly or implied as an agent <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state; or a civil<br />

action relat<strong>in</strong>g to a third party for damages aris<strong>in</strong>g from an<br />

accident <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state caused by a vehicle, vessel or<br />

aircraft. 55<br />

In each <strong>of</strong> these cases, the wheel <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities<br />

either grants wholly to a halt or partly. In some milder cases<br />

52 Article 41 paragraphs (1) to (3) <strong>of</strong> the 1963 convention.<br />

53 Article 42 <strong>of</strong> the 1963 Convention.<br />

54 Article 44 <strong>of</strong> the 1963 Convention.<br />

55 Article 43 paragraphs (1) <strong>and</strong> (2) (a) <strong>and</strong> (b) <strong>of</strong> the 1963 Convention.


341<br />

however, such immunities are returned to the person. For though<br />

some other reasons may exist where <strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>and</strong><br />

municipal laws are confronted with the problem <strong>of</strong> an err<strong>in</strong>g<br />

protected person or a hitch <strong>in</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>practice</strong>, the reasons<br />

discussed <strong>in</strong> this part <strong>of</strong> the chapter determ<strong>in</strong>e the duration <strong>of</strong><br />

privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities more than anyth<strong>in</strong>g else.<br />

6.2 ENFORCEMENT OF PRIVILEGES AND IMMUNITIES<br />

International law, based on various conventions <strong>and</strong> treaties,<br />

enforce privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities. The 1961 Convention on<br />

Diplomatic Relations provides:<br />

1. The Premises <strong>of</strong> the mission shall be <strong>in</strong>violable. The<br />

agents <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state may not enter them, except<br />

with the consent <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the mission.<br />

2. The receiv<strong>in</strong>g state is under a special duty to take all<br />

appropriate steps to protect the premises <strong>of</strong> the mission<br />

aga<strong>in</strong>st any <strong>in</strong>trusion or damage <strong>and</strong> to prevent any<br />

disturbance <strong>of</strong> the peace <strong>of</strong> the mission or impairment<br />

<strong>of</strong> its dignity.<br />

3. The premises <strong>of</strong> the mission, their furnish<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>and</strong> other<br />

property thereon <strong>and</strong> the means <strong>of</strong> transport <strong>of</strong> the


342<br />

mission shall be immune from search, requisition,<br />

attachment or execution. 56<br />

The 1963 Convention provides essentially same <strong>in</strong> relation to<br />

<strong>consular</strong> premises with an exception that “the consent <strong>of</strong> the head<br />

<strong>of</strong> <strong>consular</strong> post may be assumed <strong>in</strong> case <strong>of</strong> fire or other disaster<br />

requir<strong>in</strong>g prompt protective action. 57 The 1969 Convention on<br />

Special Missions also allows entry <strong>in</strong>to the premises <strong>in</strong> case <strong>of</strong> fire<br />

or another serious disaster when the head <strong>of</strong> the mission cannot be<br />

contacted to obta<strong>in</strong> his consent. 58<br />

Based on paragraph 2 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 convention, the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state is under a special duty to take all appropriate steps to protect<br />

the premises <strong>of</strong> the mission. Though what steps are appropriate is<br />

not def<strong>in</strong>ed, every case is determ<strong>in</strong>ed by its peculiar facts. The<br />

1961 convention further provides:<br />

The person <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent shall be<br />

<strong>in</strong>violable. He shall not be liable to any form<br />

<strong>of</strong> arrest or detention. The receiv<strong>in</strong>g state<br />

shall treat him with due respect <strong>and</strong> shall<br />

take all appropriate steps to prevent any<br />

attack on his person, freedom or dignity. 59<br />

The convention on special missions provides personal<br />

immunity to members <strong>of</strong> special missions also but adds that an<br />

56 Article 22 paragraphs (1) to (3).<br />

57 Article 31 paragraph 2.<br />

58 Article 25.<br />

59 Article 29.


343<br />

action for damages aris<strong>in</strong>g out <strong>of</strong> an accident caused by a vehicle<br />

outside the <strong>of</strong>ficial function <strong>of</strong> the person <strong>in</strong>volved is not with<strong>in</strong> the<br />

scope <strong>of</strong> immunity from the civil <strong>and</strong> adm<strong>in</strong>istrative jurisdiction <strong>of</strong><br />

the host state. 60 The 1963 convention also provides:<br />

The receiv<strong>in</strong>g state shall treat <strong>consular</strong><br />

<strong>of</strong>ficers with due respect <strong>and</strong> shall take all<br />

appropriate steps to prevent any attack on<br />

their person, freedom or dignity. 61<br />

Based on Articles 29 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 convention <strong>and</strong> 40 <strong>of</strong> the<br />

1963 convention, the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state is under a special duty to take<br />

all appropriate steps to prevent attacks on the persons <strong>of</strong> a<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agent or <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficer. The special duty <strong>in</strong> this case<br />

is prescribed by <strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>and</strong> what constitutes all<br />

appropriate steps is also determ<strong>in</strong>ed by the facts <strong>of</strong> a particular<br />

case.<br />

Privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities as accorded <strong>in</strong>ternationally<br />

protected persons are conta<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong> various conventions <strong>and</strong> treaties<br />

as discussed <strong>in</strong> the preced<strong>in</strong>g chapter to this one. The few<br />

provisions by various conventions stated <strong>in</strong> this section <strong>of</strong> this<br />

chapter show the helplessness <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law to enforce these<br />

immunities <strong>in</strong> isolation from states. S<strong>in</strong>ce a special duty has been<br />

placed on states to take all appropriate steps to protect diplomats,<br />

60 Article 31.


344<br />

it will be logical to suggest that it works <strong>in</strong> collaboration with states<br />

to ensure the enforceability <strong>of</strong> these immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges.<br />

The 1961 Convention aga<strong>in</strong> provides:<br />

This present convention is subject to<br />

ratification. The <strong>in</strong>struments <strong>of</strong> ratification<br />

shall be deposited with the Secretary-<br />

General <strong>of</strong> the United Nations. 62<br />

The above provision shows the realization by <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law <strong>of</strong> its <strong>in</strong>ability to exist <strong>in</strong> a vacuum <strong>and</strong> the impossibility <strong>of</strong><br />

enforc<strong>in</strong>g these privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities s<strong>in</strong>ce they are <strong>in</strong>tended<br />

to facilitate <strong>in</strong>teractions with<strong>in</strong> <strong>and</strong> among states <strong>and</strong>/or<br />

<strong>in</strong>tergovernmental organisations. And <strong>in</strong> another perspective, s<strong>in</strong>ce<br />

diplomats, move from their own state territories to others, it makes<br />

sense to place such special duty <strong>of</strong> protection on states, thereby<br />

mak<strong>in</strong>g them play a role <strong>in</strong> the enforceability <strong>of</strong> these privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities, as well as check<strong>in</strong>g their conduct <strong>in</strong> relation to<br />

diplomats. In the end, states do not only have a duty to protect<br />

diplomats but enforce privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities by municipal<br />

enactments that regulate the conduct <strong>of</strong> its nationals <strong>in</strong> relation to<br />

diplomatists. An example here is the Diplomatic Immunities <strong>and</strong><br />

privileges Act enacted by the legislature <strong>of</strong> the Federation <strong>of</strong> Nigeria<br />

61 Article 40.<br />

62 Article 49.


345<br />

Cap 99 <strong>in</strong> 1990, which is an Act to consolidate <strong>and</strong> amend certa<strong>in</strong><br />

enactments relat<strong>in</strong>g to <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges.<br />

The task however <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law, work<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong><br />

collaboration with states, <strong>in</strong> this regard (enforc<strong>in</strong>g privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities) is uphill. This is because the <strong>in</strong>ternational system is<br />

made up <strong>of</strong> states that do not necessarily have the same size;<br />

strength: economic or political; but share boundaries, <strong>and</strong> have<br />

different dreams <strong>and</strong> aspirations most <strong>of</strong> which conflict those <strong>of</strong><br />

other <strong>in</strong>dividual states or collective states as <strong>in</strong> the case <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational organisations. It is the size <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

system that has given <strong>in</strong>ternational law the caution to <strong>in</strong>volve<br />

states <strong>in</strong> the observance <strong>and</strong> enforceability <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities, operat<strong>in</strong>g by way <strong>of</strong> municipal enactments that<br />

essentially reflect <strong>in</strong>ternational law prescriptions.<br />

Some <strong>of</strong> the factors, however, militat<strong>in</strong>g aga<strong>in</strong>st the<br />

enforcement <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>in</strong>clude the follow<strong>in</strong>g:<br />

(i) Acts <strong>of</strong> terrorism;<br />

(ii) War or armed conflict; <strong>and</strong><br />

(iii) Policies <strong>of</strong> states.<br />

Diplomats <strong>and</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises have <strong>of</strong>ten been attacked<br />

for various reasons rang<strong>in</strong>g from revolutionary strategies to put


346<br />

pressure on states, to attacks for purposes <strong>of</strong> barga<strong>in</strong>. Sometimes<br />

diplomats are not necessarily attacked but kidnapped. In August<br />

1988, young men <strong>in</strong> fatigue uniforms blocked the American<br />

Ambassador to Guatemala, John Me<strong>in</strong>, return<strong>in</strong>g from lunch <strong>in</strong> his<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficial car <strong>in</strong> a street. Sens<strong>in</strong>g danger, he attempted to run <strong>and</strong><br />

was shot dead. The next day an organisation announced that he<br />

was shot while resist<strong>in</strong>g political kidnapp<strong>in</strong>g. 63<br />

On September the 4 th 1968 the US Ambassador <strong>in</strong> Brazil was<br />

forced out <strong>of</strong> his car <strong>and</strong> a note left <strong>in</strong> it describ<strong>in</strong>g him to be a<br />

„symbol <strong>of</strong> exploitation‟ <strong>and</strong> dem<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g the publication <strong>of</strong> a<br />

manifesto <strong>and</strong> release <strong>of</strong> 15 political prisoners. The Brazilian<br />

government agreed to these dem<strong>and</strong>s <strong>and</strong> the Ambassador was<br />

released three days after the kidnapp<strong>in</strong>g, describ<strong>in</strong>g his captors to<br />

be „young‟ determ<strong>in</strong>ed, <strong>in</strong>telligent fanatics who would have carried<br />

out their threat if their dem<strong>and</strong> had not been met. 64<br />

Other kidnapp<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>and</strong> murder were those <strong>in</strong> Canada <strong>in</strong> 1970<br />

<strong>of</strong> the m<strong>in</strong>ister <strong>of</strong> Labour <strong>of</strong> the Prov<strong>in</strong>ce <strong>of</strong> Quebec; kidnapp<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong><br />

the same year <strong>of</strong> British Trade Commissioner <strong>in</strong> Montreal; the<br />

kidnapp<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> 1971 <strong>of</strong> British Ambassador <strong>in</strong> Uruguay; the<br />

kidnapp<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> murder <strong>of</strong> Israel Consul-General <strong>in</strong> Istanbul by<br />

63<br />

Lord Gore-Booth, Op.cit. p.199.<br />

64<br />

Ibid. p.200.


347<br />

Turkish terrorists <strong>in</strong> May 1971; <strong>and</strong> the appall<strong>in</strong>g sequel to the<br />

occupation <strong>in</strong> March 1973 <strong>of</strong> the Saudi-Arabian embassy <strong>in</strong><br />

Khartoum by the Arab „Black September group‟ dur<strong>in</strong>g which the<br />

American Ambassador, his counselor, <strong>and</strong> the Belgian charge<br />

d‟Affaires were murdered. 65<br />

Diplomatic premises have not been left out <strong>of</strong> attacks. On<br />

27 th January 1992, students <strong>of</strong> that country <strong>and</strong> the Ambassador<br />

held hostage <strong>in</strong>vaded the embassy <strong>of</strong> the Republic <strong>of</strong> Niger <strong>in</strong><br />

Lagos. 66 The students dem<strong>and</strong>ed the payment <strong>of</strong> their outst<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g<br />

scholarship allowances. By February the 2 nd all the students had<br />

left after receiv<strong>in</strong>g an undisclosed sum <strong>of</strong> money.<br />

On 16 th September 1963, the British Government formally<br />

recognized the establishment <strong>of</strong> the Republic <strong>of</strong> Malaysia, an act<br />

that agitated the Indonesian government <strong>of</strong> President Sukarno. On<br />

that day demonstrators attacked the British embassy throw<strong>in</strong>g<br />

stones <strong>and</strong> break<strong>in</strong>g 400 plate glass w<strong>in</strong>dows. 67<br />

And on December the 4 th 1979, a large group <strong>of</strong><br />

demonstrators, demonstrat<strong>in</strong>g Iranian students, <strong>in</strong> Tehran<br />

protest<strong>in</strong>g United States government‟s permission <strong>of</strong> the deposed<br />

Shah <strong>of</strong> Iran to enter the US for medical treatment, took over the<br />

65 Gore-Booth, Loc. cit.<br />

66 National Concord, 4 th February, 1992, p.28.<br />

67 Gore-Booth, Op.cit. 194.


348<br />

US embassy <strong>and</strong> held about 50 people hostages for four hundred<br />

<strong>and</strong> forty-four days. 68<br />

The legal position <strong>in</strong> relation to crimes aga<strong>in</strong>st <strong>in</strong>ternationally<br />

protected persons is <strong>in</strong>corporated <strong>in</strong> the 1973 Convention, which<br />

was adopted by the General Assembly <strong>in</strong> Resolution 3166 (XXVIII)<br />

<strong>of</strong> 14 December 1974. This convention provides that persons<br />

alleged to have committed certa<strong>in</strong> attacks aga<strong>in</strong>st <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents<br />

<strong>and</strong> others should either be extradited or have their case submitted<br />

to the authorities <strong>of</strong> the state where the alleged <strong>of</strong>fender is present,<br />

for the purpose <strong>of</strong> prosecution. It conta<strong>in</strong>s <strong>in</strong> addition, provisions<br />

concern<strong>in</strong>g cooperation. The transmission <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>formation <strong>and</strong> the<br />

treatment to be accorded to alleged <strong>of</strong>fenders. 69<br />

The European Convention on the Suppression <strong>of</strong> Terrorism,<br />

signed on 27 January 1977 by member states <strong>of</strong> the Council <strong>of</strong><br />

Europe, imposes an obligation on contract<strong>in</strong>g states not to regard<br />

specific <strong>of</strong>fenses (<strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g hijack<strong>in</strong>g, kidnapp<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> certa<strong>in</strong><br />

crimes <strong>of</strong> violence) as political <strong>of</strong>fenses for the purpose <strong>of</strong><br />

extradition; <strong>and</strong> while a state may refuse extradition <strong>in</strong> cases which<br />

it considers to be political, it must, if it does so, take <strong>in</strong>to<br />

consideration when evaluat<strong>in</strong>g the character <strong>of</strong> the <strong>of</strong>fence any<br />

68 Time Magaz<strong>in</strong>e, 14 th April, 1980.<br />

69 Lord Gore-Booth, Op.cit. p.203.


349<br />

particularly serious aspects <strong>of</strong> the <strong>of</strong>fence <strong>and</strong> submit the case to<br />

the competent authorities for the purpose <strong>of</strong> prosecution. 70<br />

Though <strong>in</strong>ternational law has made elaborate provisions, the<br />

policies <strong>of</strong> states, especially <strong>in</strong> relation to their economic <strong>in</strong>terest,<br />

take an upper h<strong>and</strong> over <strong>in</strong>ternational law, <strong>and</strong> its ability to enforce<br />

its will on such state depends on the strength <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>fluence <strong>of</strong><br />

such state. For <strong>in</strong>stance, the American action <strong>in</strong> Panama (1988),<br />

Grenada (1983) <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> Iraq (2003) did not receive the same<br />

approach as the Iraqi annexation <strong>of</strong> Kuwait <strong>and</strong> the apartheid<br />

regime <strong>in</strong> South Africa. In each <strong>of</strong> these cases, American <strong>in</strong>terests<br />

well outweighed consideration for <strong>in</strong>ternational law. The American<br />

action <strong>in</strong> the Gulf was decisive as opposed to her lukewarm attitude<br />

towards the Apartheid regime <strong>in</strong> South Africa. This lukewarmness<br />

was to protect American mult<strong>in</strong>ational corporations <strong>in</strong> South<br />

Africa.<br />

Enforceability <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities becomes also<br />

uphill task <strong>in</strong> times <strong>of</strong> armed conflicts, as was the case <strong>in</strong> Liberia <strong>in</strong><br />

1990 where Charles Taylor, leader <strong>of</strong> the National Patriotic Front<br />

rebel force, stormed the Nigerian embassy <strong>in</strong> Monrovia tak<strong>in</strong>g away<br />

Nigerians who sought refuge there <strong>and</strong> loot<strong>in</strong>g cars, electronic<br />

gadgets <strong>and</strong> everyth<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> value. President Sam Doe was then the<br />

70 Lord Gore-Booth, Loc. cit.


350<br />

president but his authority was limited to the four-walls <strong>of</strong> his<br />

executive mansion. The legal position is this:<br />

And also:<br />

The receiv<strong>in</strong>g state must, even <strong>in</strong> case <strong>of</strong><br />

armed conflict, respect <strong>and</strong> protect the<br />

premises <strong>of</strong> the mission, together with its<br />

property <strong>and</strong> archives…. 71<br />

The receiv<strong>in</strong>g state must, even <strong>in</strong> case <strong>of</strong><br />

armed conflict, grant facilities <strong>in</strong> order to<br />

enable persons enjoy<strong>in</strong>g privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities… to leave at the earliest possible<br />

moment. It must <strong>in</strong> particular <strong>in</strong> case <strong>of</strong> need,<br />

place at their disposal the necessary means <strong>of</strong><br />

transport for themselves <strong>and</strong> their property. 72<br />

Despite <strong>in</strong>ternational law provisions, sometimes the armed<br />

conflict is so <strong>in</strong>stantaneous that the government is displaced <strong>and</strong><br />

the state left <strong>in</strong> total anarchy. What happens most times is that<br />

States tender apologies which most times are more a <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

requirement than a humanitarian or heart felt gesture. In the<br />

same ve<strong>in</strong> Charles Taylor tendered a public apology to Nigerian<br />

peoples <strong>and</strong> Government:<br />

I will not hesitate as I have done before to apologize to<br />

Nigerians…. We are apologiz<strong>in</strong>g to the families <strong>of</strong> those journalists<br />

71 Article 45 paragraph (a) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention.<br />

72 Article 44 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention.


351<br />

<strong>and</strong> the Nigerian government. We hope that it will not happen<br />

aga<strong>in</strong>.<br />

Charles Taylor‟s attack was on political grounds as the NPFL<br />

accused Nigerian Government <strong>of</strong> arm<strong>in</strong>g the president Doe whom it<br />

was try<strong>in</strong>g to oust. This po<strong>in</strong>t makes it the more questionable if<br />

Taylor‟s apology was <strong>in</strong>spired by human feel<strong>in</strong>gs or a mere<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> manoeuvre.<br />

In whatsoever way states fail to carry out their obligations by<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law, the usual <strong>diplomatic</strong> gesture is to tender<br />

apologies to the parties that suffer <strong>in</strong> consequence. Where<br />

apologies do not do the trick, the UN, saddled with the burden <strong>of</strong><br />

ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g peace <strong>and</strong> security <strong>in</strong> an <strong>in</strong>ternational system full <strong>of</strong><br />

pressures <strong>and</strong> conflict<strong>in</strong>g aspirations, steps <strong>in</strong> to save the situation,<br />

through its appropriate organ or organs. How the UN goes about<br />

this depends on the gravity <strong>of</strong> the case <strong>in</strong> question.<br />

Persons enjoy<strong>in</strong>g privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities sometimes, not<br />

realiz<strong>in</strong>g that their adherence to <strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>in</strong>junctions,<br />

helps to achieve privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities, violate <strong>in</strong>ternational law<br />

thereby giv<strong>in</strong>g states a cause to fail <strong>in</strong> their duty <strong>of</strong> observation <strong>and</strong><br />

enforcement <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities. These violations <strong>and</strong>


352<br />

abuses by these persons therefore constitute the next chapter <strong>of</strong><br />

this work.


353<br />

CHAPTER SEVEN<br />

ABUSE OF PRIVILEGES AND IMMUNITIES<br />

7.1 SCOPE AND WHAT CONSTITUTES ABUSE<br />

„Abuse‟ is def<strong>in</strong>ed to be wrong use; unjust custom or <strong>practice</strong><br />

that has been established; angry or violent attack <strong>in</strong> words; bad<br />

language; curs<strong>in</strong>g: deceive; ill-treat; say severe, cruel or unjust<br />

th<strong>in</strong>gs to or about somebody 1.<br />

Accord<strong>in</strong>g to pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law, the state, by<br />

agree<strong>in</strong>g to receive the <strong>of</strong>ficials <strong>of</strong> foreign states, assumes the<br />

obligations concern<strong>in</strong>g the treatment to be accorded them <strong>and</strong> is<br />

bound to extend to them a special protection. Thus the basis <strong>of</strong> the<br />

special protection <strong>of</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficials <strong>of</strong> foreign states is their personal<br />

<strong>in</strong>violability, which is generally recognized by the <strong>practice</strong> <strong>of</strong> states<br />

<strong>and</strong> by the doctr<strong>in</strong>e <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law. This <strong>in</strong>violability has been<br />

also consecrated <strong>in</strong> Article 29 <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on<br />

Diplomatic Relations; <strong>in</strong> Article 40 <strong>of</strong> the Vienna convention on<br />

special missions; <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> Article 28 <strong>and</strong> 58 <strong>of</strong> the Vienna<br />

Convention on the Representation <strong>of</strong> states. 2<br />

1 (3 rd ed) Oxford Advanced Learner’s Dictionary <strong>of</strong> current English by A.S. Hornby(Oxford: Oxford; 1979)<br />

p. 4.<br />

2 Prietacznik, F., op cit. p. 3


354<br />

This special protection is also extended to the <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

premises where states are placed under a special duty to take all<br />

appropriate steps to protect the premises <strong>of</strong> the mission aga<strong>in</strong>st<br />

any <strong>in</strong>trusion or damage <strong>and</strong> to prevent any disturbance <strong>of</strong> the<br />

peace <strong>of</strong> the mission or impairment <strong>of</strong> its dignity.<br />

This special duty on states was honoured even by the United<br />

States <strong>of</strong> America <strong>in</strong> relation to Noriega‟s arrest when he was<br />

declared „wanted‟ by the American Government <strong>and</strong> he ran <strong>in</strong>to the<br />

papal embassy called the Holy See. American <strong>of</strong>ficials could not go<br />

<strong>in</strong> to arrest him because <strong>of</strong> the special duty placed on states by<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law to keep mission premises <strong>in</strong>violable. The consent<br />

<strong>of</strong> the Pope was sought before the arrest was effected.<br />

This special duty was honoured also by Brita<strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong> March<br />

1973, where a car exploded <strong>and</strong> some damage was done to the<br />

embassy <strong>of</strong> the Nigerian High Commission <strong>in</strong> London. Though this<br />

attack was not directed at the embassy, the British Government<br />

paid full reparation on its own for the damages.<br />

Brazil also lived up to its duty <strong>of</strong> protection <strong>of</strong> diplomats <strong>in</strong><br />

1968. On September the 4 th, the United States‟ Ambassador <strong>in</strong><br />

Brazil was forced from his car <strong>and</strong> a note left describ<strong>in</strong>g him to be a<br />

“symbol <strong>of</strong> exploitation” <strong>and</strong> dem<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g the publication <strong>of</strong> a


355<br />

manifesto <strong>and</strong> the release <strong>of</strong> fifteen political prisoners. The<br />

Brazilian Government agreed to the dem<strong>and</strong>s <strong>and</strong> the Ambassador<br />

was released three days later 3.<br />

However, as elaborately mentioned <strong>in</strong> the preced<strong>in</strong>g chapter,<br />

diplomats <strong>and</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises have suffered severe attacks at<br />

different times <strong>and</strong> places. Abuse therefore is either aga<strong>in</strong>st<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons or by them. The emphasis <strong>of</strong> this<br />

will be abuses by <strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons.<br />

Although privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities are not <strong>in</strong>tended to<br />

benefit <strong>in</strong>dividuals, rather to ensure the efficient performance <strong>of</strong><br />

their functions, very <strong>of</strong>ten, <strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons have<br />

abused their duties under <strong>in</strong>ternational law by try<strong>in</strong>g to use these<br />

privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities for their personal benefit. There are<br />

several <strong>of</strong> such cases which shall be dealt with <strong>in</strong> the next section<br />

<strong>of</strong> this chapter.<br />

What constitutes abuse <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities by<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons simply put mean certa<strong>in</strong> activities<br />

performed by these categories <strong>of</strong> persons contrary to <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law pr<strong>in</strong>ciples.<br />

3 Lord Gore-Booth, op cit p. 200.<br />

International law provides:


356<br />

…it is the duty <strong>of</strong> all persons enjoy<strong>in</strong>g such<br />

privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities to respect the laws<br />

<strong>and</strong> regulations <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. They<br />

also have a duty not to <strong>in</strong>terfere <strong>in</strong> the<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternal affairs <strong>of</strong> that state. 4<br />

The above provision by <strong>in</strong>ternational law does not only put<br />

caution on <strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons <strong>in</strong> the performance <strong>of</strong><br />

their functions, but clearly spells out abuse <strong>in</strong> the event <strong>of</strong> a<br />

violation. This provision puts upon the diplomat a duty to honour<br />

<strong>and</strong> respect the local laws <strong>of</strong> the host country <strong>and</strong> not to tamper<br />

with any activities that fall with<strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternal affairs <strong>of</strong> the host<br />

state. That is to say, whatsoever the municipal laws <strong>of</strong> the host<br />

state prohibit constitutes abuse if done by the Diplomat. The<br />

Convention on Diplomatic Relations however does not def<strong>in</strong>e what<br />

constitutes the <strong>in</strong>ternal affairs <strong>of</strong> the host state. However, it can be<br />

assumed that democratic elections with<strong>in</strong> the host state clearly fall<br />

with<strong>in</strong> its <strong>in</strong>ternal affairs, <strong>and</strong> other activities as may be<br />

determ<strong>in</strong>ed by the <strong>practice</strong> <strong>of</strong> states.<br />

International law also provides:<br />

The premises <strong>of</strong> the mission must not be<br />

used <strong>in</strong> any manner <strong>in</strong>compatible with the<br />

functions <strong>of</strong> the mission as laid down <strong>in</strong> the<br />

present convention or by other rules <strong>of</strong><br />

general <strong>in</strong>ternational law or by a special<br />

4 Article 41 paragraph 1 <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations <strong>of</strong> 1961.


357<br />

agreements <strong>in</strong> force between the send<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong><br />

the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state 5<br />

The above provision clearly spells out that for no reason<br />

should the premises <strong>of</strong> a mission be used for any reason<br />

<strong>in</strong>consistent with the functions <strong>of</strong> the mission. Where such<br />

<strong>in</strong>compatibility is determ<strong>in</strong>ed, it constitutes abuse on the part <strong>of</strong><br />

the diplomat. The 1961 convention therefore stipulates <strong>in</strong> Article 3<br />

paragraphs 1(a) to (e) the functions <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> mission to be:<br />

a. Represent<strong>in</strong>g the send<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state;<br />

b. Protect<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state the <strong>in</strong>terest <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong> its nationals, with<strong>in</strong> the limits permitted by<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law;<br />

c. Negotiat<strong>in</strong>g with the Government <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state;<br />

d. Ascerta<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g by all lawful means conditions <strong>and</strong><br />

developments <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, <strong>and</strong> report<strong>in</strong>g thereon to<br />

the government <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state;<br />

e. Promot<strong>in</strong>g friendly relations between the send<strong>in</strong>g state <strong>and</strong><br />

the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, <strong>and</strong> develop<strong>in</strong>g their economic, cultural<br />

<strong>and</strong> scientific relations. 6<br />

5 Article 41 paragraph 3 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 convention<br />

6 Article 3 paragraphs 1(a) to (e). The Functions <strong>of</strong> a <strong>consular</strong> post are conta<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong> Article 5 paragraphs (a)<br />

to (m) <strong>of</strong> the 1963 convention.


358<br />

Based on <strong>in</strong>ternational law, whatever is not compatible with<br />

the provision above constitutes abuse. That is to say that, at all<br />

times, the diplomat is either represent<strong>in</strong>g his state, or protect<strong>in</strong>g its<br />

<strong>in</strong>terest, or negotiat<strong>in</strong>g on its behalf, or report<strong>in</strong>g to it or promot<strong>in</strong>g<br />

friendly relations between it <strong>and</strong> the host state. Whatever he does<br />

beyond the conf<strong>in</strong>es <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law as relates to his functions<br />

constitutes abuse.<br />

The 1961 convention also provides:<br />

A <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent shall not <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state <strong>practice</strong> for personal pr<strong>of</strong>it any<br />

pr<strong>of</strong>essional or commercial activity 7<br />

The above provision is clear on one th<strong>in</strong>g: that the diplomat<br />

plays the primary role <strong>of</strong> represent<strong>in</strong>g the send<strong>in</strong>g state. Where he<br />

breaches this obligation by engag<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> the <strong>practice</strong> <strong>of</strong> any<br />

pr<strong>of</strong>essional or commercial activity for personal pr<strong>of</strong>it, this<br />

constitutes abuse. The provision above has no h<strong>in</strong>t that the<br />

diplomat has no private life. The diplomat is allowed freedom <strong>of</strong><br />

movement 8. That is to say that a diplomat can take a ride <strong>in</strong>to the<br />

country or to the beach for a picnic or take a girlfriend to a movie.<br />

These actions do not violate the provision above. However, the<br />

private life <strong>of</strong> a diplomat is permitted for as long as he respects the<br />

7 Articles 42, <strong>and</strong> 31 paragraph 1c <strong>of</strong> the 1961 convention<br />

8 Article 26 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 convention.


359<br />

local laws <strong>of</strong> the host state. And as mentioned earlier, an act<br />

aga<strong>in</strong>st the local law <strong>of</strong> the host state constitutes abuse.<br />

International law also provides:<br />

Consular <strong>of</strong>ficers shall not be liable to arrest<br />

or detention pend<strong>in</strong>g trial, except <strong>in</strong> the case<br />

<strong>of</strong> a grave crime <strong>and</strong> pursuant to a decision<br />

by a competent judicial authority 9<br />

Here, a <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficer enjoys protection until he commits a<br />

grave crime. Though what a grave crime is, has not been def<strong>in</strong>ed,<br />

whatever will be a grave crime would depend on what it is with<strong>in</strong><br />

the municipal laws <strong>of</strong> the host state. Where this is determ<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong><br />

relation to a <strong>consular</strong> <strong>of</strong>ficer, it would ipso facto constitute abuse.<br />

The 1963 convention outl<strong>in</strong>es what the host state can do <strong>in</strong> this<br />

case stated <strong>in</strong> the preced<strong>in</strong>g chapter.<br />

International <strong>of</strong>ficials also enjoy some degree <strong>of</strong> protection as<br />

required to facilitate their functions where they act beyond their<br />

capacity, they enjoy no protection. The Secretary-General <strong>and</strong> all<br />

Assistant Secretaries enjoy privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities as awarded<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agent <strong>and</strong> abuses by them are determ<strong>in</strong>ed the same way<br />

as those <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent.<br />

In conclusion therefore, what constitutes abuse varies from<br />

person to person <strong>and</strong> also with degree <strong>of</strong> protection. Generally<br />

9 Article 41 paragraph 1 <strong>of</strong> the 1963 convention.


360<br />

speak<strong>in</strong>g, every protected person is under a duty to respect the<br />

laws <strong>of</strong> the host state. This is because “immunity does not entitle<br />

diplomats to flout local laws” 10 Abuse is simply a violation <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law prescriptions by protected persons.<br />

7.2 EXTENT AND REASONS FOR ABUSE<br />

For about 15 years it was fairly generally felt that the<br />

provisions <strong>of</strong> the Vienna conventions did <strong>in</strong>deed provide a fair<br />

balance between the <strong>in</strong>terests <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> host states. But<br />

<strong>in</strong> many <strong>of</strong> the major capitals <strong>of</strong> the world, it came to be felt that<br />

diplomats were abus<strong>in</strong>g the privileged status given to their vehicles,<br />

<strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> particular, park<strong>in</strong>g illegally, caus<strong>in</strong>g obstructions <strong>and</strong> fail<strong>in</strong>g<br />

to pay traffic f<strong>in</strong>es. 11 This feel<strong>in</strong>g was, <strong>of</strong> course compounded <strong>in</strong> a<br />

country such as the United States, which was also host <strong>in</strong> New<br />

York to the United Nations <strong>and</strong> important specialized agencies.<br />

By contrast, there was much less public awareness <strong>of</strong> traffic<br />

violation by the <strong>diplomatic</strong> community <strong>in</strong> London. On the other<br />

h<strong>and</strong>, London seemed an attractive avenue for shoplift<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong><br />

other <strong>of</strong>fences. In the period 1974 to mid-1984., there were 546<br />

occasions on which persons, because <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> immunity<br />

10 The American journal <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law, vol 79 1985, p. 641<br />

11 Ibid


361<br />

avoided arrest or prosecution for alleged serious <strong>of</strong>fences (i.e.<br />

<strong>of</strong>fences carry<strong>in</strong>g a potential sentence <strong>of</strong> 6 months imprisonment or<br />

greater). 12<br />

The mid-1970s <strong>in</strong>troduced more worry<strong>in</strong>g problems. It<br />

became clear that certa<strong>in</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> missions held firearms,<br />

contrary to local laws. 13 Further, it seemed that these firearms were<br />

be<strong>in</strong>g imported through the <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag. In recent years <strong>in</strong><br />

various western countries, there have also been terrorist <strong>in</strong>cidents,<br />

<strong>in</strong> which it was believed that the weapons used were provided from<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> sources. It was widely thought that certa<strong>in</strong> foreign<br />

governments were promot<strong>in</strong>g state terrorism aga<strong>in</strong>st dissident<br />

exiles, through the <strong>in</strong>volvement <strong>of</strong> their embassies <strong>in</strong> the country<br />

concerned.<br />

Normal <strong>diplomatic</strong> communication with the Libyan embassy<br />

<strong>in</strong> London was complicated by the fact that (as <strong>in</strong> other western<br />

capitals) so-called revolutionary committees had taken over the<br />

embassy, renamed it the Libyan people‟s Bureau <strong>and</strong> refused to<br />

designate a person <strong>in</strong> charge <strong>of</strong> the mission. In February 1980,<br />

12 Ibid<br />

13 Ibid


362<br />

further <strong>in</strong>ternal upheavals occurred <strong>in</strong> the Libyan people‟s Bureau<br />

<strong>in</strong> London, giv<strong>in</strong>g rise to further <strong>diplomatic</strong> problems. 14<br />

On April the 17 th, 1984, an orderly demonstration was held<br />

by Libyan opponents <strong>of</strong> colonel Qaddafi‟s government, on the<br />

pavement <strong>in</strong> St. James‟s square, London, opposite the peoples‟<br />

bureau. Both the foreign <strong>of</strong>fice London <strong>and</strong> the British Ambassador<br />

<strong>in</strong> Tripoli had been warned the day before that if the demonstration<br />

were to be allowed to go ahead, Libya “would not be responsible for<br />

its consequences”. Shots were fired from the w<strong>in</strong>dows <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Bureau, kill<strong>in</strong>g woman police constable Fletcher, who was on duty<br />

<strong>in</strong> the square. 15<br />

The action by Libya clearly contravened <strong>in</strong>ternational law. The<br />

possession <strong>of</strong> firearms with<strong>in</strong> mission premises clearly constitutes<br />

abuse as this breaches Article 41 (3) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 convention 16<br />

which forbids the us<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> mission premises <strong>in</strong> any manner<br />

<strong>in</strong>consistent or <strong>in</strong>compatible with the functions <strong>of</strong> the mission. As<br />

mentioned <strong>in</strong> one <strong>of</strong> the preced<strong>in</strong>g chapters, <strong>in</strong>ternational law most<br />

times is the <strong>in</strong>itiator <strong>of</strong> its own problems. The question <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> archives creates a problem <strong>of</strong> effectively<br />

check<strong>in</strong>g the importation <strong>of</strong> firearms or ammunition through the<br />

14 Ibid<br />

15 Ibid


363<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> bag. This can be seen as a worry<strong>in</strong>g problem s<strong>in</strong>ce illegal<br />

use <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises may also not be effectively checked.<br />

Here the efficiency <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law is impeded. Adherence<br />

to Article 41(3) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 convention is left at the mercy <strong>of</strong> the<br />

diplomat. It becomes more a question <strong>of</strong> willful adherence than<br />

compulsion which is a strong attribute <strong>of</strong> any law. A<br />

recommendation <strong>in</strong> this direction is however reserved for the<br />

conclud<strong>in</strong>g chapter <strong>of</strong> this work.<br />

The question <strong>of</strong> abuse has not been peculiar to Libya. A few<br />

months later, on July 5, 1984, another abuse was recorded <strong>in</strong><br />

London. This time though <strong>in</strong>ternational law was violated by<br />

search<strong>in</strong>g the <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag, the illegality paid <strong>of</strong>f. Nigeria‟s one<br />

time m<strong>in</strong>ister <strong>of</strong> transport was discovered neatly packaged <strong>in</strong> a<br />

crate (with an Israeli) addressed:<br />

To the M<strong>in</strong>istry <strong>of</strong> External Affairs, Federal<br />

Republic <strong>of</strong> Nigeria, Lagos, from the High<br />

Commissioner, London. 17<br />

The two actions: the packag<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> the ex-m<strong>in</strong>ister <strong>and</strong> search<br />

by British Authorities were both illegal based on <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

This did not however stop the British government from declar<strong>in</strong>g<br />

some Nigerian diplomats persona non grata. In the same ve<strong>in</strong>;<br />

16 Article 4, paragraph 3 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 convention<br />

17 African Concord, 2 March, 1992, P. 22


364<br />

Nigeria retaliated by declaim<strong>in</strong>g an equal number <strong>of</strong> British<br />

diplomats persona non grata.<br />

There was another <strong>in</strong>cidence <strong>of</strong> abuse when customs<br />

Authorities <strong>in</strong> Rome realized that a large <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag dest<strong>in</strong>ed<br />

for Cairo was emitt<strong>in</strong>g means. It was seized <strong>and</strong> opened <strong>and</strong> found<br />

to conta<strong>in</strong> a drugged Israeli who was kidnapped. Here aga<strong>in</strong> the<br />

abuse resulted to persona non grata declared some members <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Egyptian Embassy. 18<br />

It can be seen that though the abuses <strong>in</strong> the 2 cases above<br />

were both by <strong>and</strong> aga<strong>in</strong>st the diplomats, the abuse by the<br />

diplomats necessitated the one aga<strong>in</strong>st them.<br />

In another <strong>in</strong>cidence, the Iraqi embassy <strong>in</strong> Pakistan was<br />

converted to a place for storage <strong>of</strong> imported weapons. In breach <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law, the Pakistani Government searched the embassy<br />

after be<strong>in</strong>g refused permission to search. Firearms were <strong>in</strong>deed<br />

discovered. This abuse by the diplomats resulted to persona non<br />

grata declared them.<br />

Various reasons can be said to be responsible for the abuse <strong>of</strong><br />

privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities granted to <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents <strong>and</strong> mission<br />

premises by <strong>and</strong> aga<strong>in</strong>st these diplomats. Some <strong>of</strong> the very common<br />

18 Satow, E., Op. Cit P. 177


365<br />

reasons can be greed, patriotism, terrorism <strong>and</strong> unfriendl<strong>in</strong>ess<br />

between the send<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> host states.<br />

In l<strong>in</strong>e with the above, recently the US embassies <strong>in</strong> Kenya<br />

<strong>and</strong> Tanzania were bombed on August the 7 th 1998 claim<strong>in</strong>g 253<br />

lives. This terrorist action aga<strong>in</strong>st these US embassies disregards<br />

the <strong>in</strong>ternational law provision that mission premises are<br />

<strong>in</strong>violable. Though the host states could not exactly be blamed for<br />

this bomb<strong>in</strong>gs partly because most <strong>of</strong> the dead persons were<br />

nationals <strong>of</strong> the host states, it is no doubt an abuse <strong>of</strong> the US<br />

mission premises. Equally worrisome is whether Kenya <strong>and</strong><br />

Tanzania could have been able to protect these embassies due to<br />

weak security efficiency. International law has not fully looked at<br />

the <strong>in</strong>abilities <strong>of</strong> weaker nations <strong>of</strong> the world when it comes to<br />

protect<strong>in</strong>g <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises when attacked by sophisticated<br />

groups like terrorists. The words “all; appropriate steps” as used <strong>in</strong><br />

Article 22 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention appear apt. However this is very<br />

relative to <strong>in</strong>dividual states. The recent attacks on the United<br />

States <strong>of</strong> America show how serious this problem is, <strong>and</strong> how<br />

vulnerable small <strong>and</strong> big nations can both be.<br />

Another clear case <strong>of</strong> abuse <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities took place on the night <strong>of</strong> 17 December 1996, where


366<br />

the Japanese Ambassador <strong>in</strong> Lima, Peru, hosted an elaborate party<br />

to commemorate the sixty-third birthday <strong>of</strong> Emperor Akihito <strong>of</strong><br />

Japan. Japan, a nation compris<strong>in</strong>g several Isl<strong>and</strong>s <strong>in</strong> the pacific<br />

ocean <strong>and</strong> Peru a state situated on the pacific coast <strong>of</strong> the South<br />

American Cont<strong>in</strong>ent appear to have strong cultural <strong>and</strong> political<br />

l<strong>in</strong>ks, Peruvian President Alberto Fiyimori is the son <strong>of</strong> Japanese<br />

immigrants. The guests present numbered over 600 <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>cluded II<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> envoys. Shortly after the banquet started several<br />

members <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>surgent Tupac Amaru group attacked the<br />

residence, over powered the guards <strong>and</strong> took the entire assemblage<br />

hostage 19.<br />

Subsequently communications were established with the<br />

rebels by the government <strong>of</strong> Peru through <strong>in</strong>termediaries. The<br />

rebels gradually started releas<strong>in</strong>g the majority <strong>of</strong> the hostages <strong>and</strong><br />

held <strong>in</strong>to 74 persons <strong>in</strong>clud<strong>in</strong>g the II ambassadors for whose safety<br />

they dem<strong>and</strong>ed that the Peruvian authorities should release 440<br />

previously <strong>in</strong>carcerated Tupac Amaru Guerrillas. 20 However, the<br />

Peruvian government refused to succumb <strong>and</strong> eventually freed the<br />

hostages with m<strong>in</strong>imal casualties. These events <strong>in</strong> Peru constitute a<br />

19 The Guardian, Tuesday January 14, 1977 P. 9; This Day January 7 1997 P. 18; Time the Weekly News<br />

Magaz<strong>in</strong>e, December 30 1996 to January 6 1997 Vol No.27 P. 86.<br />

20 The Guardian, 18 February 1997 P. 9


367<br />

<strong>contemporary</strong> <strong>and</strong> alarm<strong>in</strong>g trend <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational terrorist attacks<br />

on diplomats.<br />

There is also the recent case <strong>of</strong> the arrest <strong>in</strong> 2002 <strong>of</strong> a<br />

member <strong>of</strong> the Nigerian National Assembly <strong>in</strong> Saudi Arabia who<br />

had a <strong>diplomatic</strong> passport.<br />

Another case <strong>of</strong> abuse was recorded <strong>in</strong> 1929 where some<br />

French <strong>of</strong>ficials forced their way <strong>in</strong>to the Soviet embassy <strong>in</strong> Paris<br />

after allegations, that persons were be<strong>in</strong>g deta<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>and</strong> might be<br />

executed there<strong>in</strong>, it was argued that the <strong>in</strong>tervention was<br />

consistent with <strong>in</strong>ternational law, „because no civilized state could<br />

permit a foreign legation to be made a place <strong>of</strong> imprisonment or, a<br />

fortiori, a place <strong>of</strong> execution.‟ 21<br />

Also <strong>in</strong> the Sun Yat-Sen case, there was a clear case <strong>of</strong> abuse<br />

where <strong>in</strong> 1896, Sun Yat Sen, a Ch<strong>in</strong>ese National <strong>and</strong> Political<br />

Refugee, was deta<strong>in</strong>ed as a prisoner <strong>in</strong> the Ch<strong>in</strong>ese Legation at<br />

London, with the apparent <strong>in</strong>tention <strong>of</strong> forcibly transport<strong>in</strong>g him to<br />

Ch<strong>in</strong>a. 22<br />

Some diplomats abuse the privileged status granted<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> bags, by smuggl<strong>in</strong>g th<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>in</strong> <strong>and</strong> out <strong>of</strong> the host state.<br />

This is done more out <strong>of</strong> greed than not.<br />

21 as cited by Madaki, A. S. <strong>in</strong> Post-graduate Thesis titled “The Legal Implications <strong>of</strong> the Violation <strong>of</strong><br />

premises <strong>of</strong> Diplomatic Missions, “August, 1992 P. 17.<br />

22 Ibid


368<br />

In 1953 Edwardo de Arteaga, Uruguayan M<strong>in</strong>ister to Belgium<br />

was f<strong>in</strong>ed for try<strong>in</strong>g to smuggle $38,595 worth <strong>of</strong> diamonds out <strong>of</strong><br />

Engl<strong>and</strong>. He pleaded guilty but he said he had agreed to carry the<br />

diamonds as a favour for a friend <strong>and</strong> was to receive no pay. On<br />

another occasion customs <strong>of</strong>ficials reported a large amount <strong>of</strong><br />

Egyptian <strong>and</strong> American currency <strong>and</strong> jewels seized from Don Luis<br />

de Almagro, Cuban M<strong>in</strong>ister to Egypt, Lebanon <strong>and</strong> Syria, as he<br />

prepared to board a plane for Beirut at the Cairo Airport. 23<br />

In 1958, <strong>of</strong>ficials <strong>in</strong> Lebanon <strong>in</strong>spected a car driver by a<br />

Belgian consul-General who was stationed <strong>in</strong> Syria <strong>and</strong> found,<br />

accord<strong>in</strong>g to press reports, 33 submach<strong>in</strong>e guns, 28 pistols, 32<br />

revolvers, 16 h<strong>and</strong> grenades, 1,800 rounds <strong>of</strong> mach<strong>in</strong>e gun<br />

ammunition, 1,500 rounds <strong>of</strong> other ammunition, several time<br />

bombs, <strong>and</strong> some demolition equipment. 24<br />

There was also the case <strong>of</strong> a military attaché to a foreign<br />

embassy <strong>in</strong> Israel who engaged <strong>in</strong> crim<strong>in</strong>al violation <strong>of</strong> the customs<br />

<strong>and</strong> Exercise laws by smuggl<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> some dozen bales <strong>of</strong> cloth <strong>and</strong><br />

sell<strong>in</strong>g them to a non-diplomat. 25<br />

23<br />

Wilson, C. E. Diplomatic Privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunities (Arizona: The <strong>University</strong> <strong>of</strong> Arizona Press; 1967) P.<br />

136.<br />

24<br />

Ibid P. 137.<br />

25<br />

International Law Reports, vol 32; E. Lauterpact, (London: Butterworths; 1966) P. 307


369<br />

There was also an abuse which resulted to the Ranollo case <strong>of</strong><br />

1946, where the chauffeur <strong>of</strong> the Secretary General was prosecuted<br />

for exceed<strong>in</strong>g the legal speed limit. 26<br />

Abuse <strong>of</strong> immunities <strong>and</strong> privileges by diplomats usually has<br />

adverse effects on the relationship between the two countries<br />

<strong>in</strong>volved. When the abuse is one <strong>of</strong> terrorism as <strong>in</strong> the Libyan case<br />

<strong>in</strong> London, it can lead to a total break down <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations<br />

between the two countries as was the case between Libya <strong>and</strong><br />

Brita<strong>in</strong> follow<strong>in</strong>g the 1984 <strong>in</strong>cidence.<br />

Whichever <strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons are <strong>in</strong>volved,<br />

abuse clearly breaches <strong>in</strong>ternational law <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> one way or the<br />

other creates some degree <strong>of</strong> hostilities between the persons<br />

protected <strong>and</strong> the host state. These hostilities <strong>in</strong>evitably extend to<br />

the send<strong>in</strong>g states or <strong>in</strong>ternational organisations as the case may<br />

be.<br />

7.3 DEALING WITH ABUSE<br />

International law <strong>and</strong> even municipal laws <strong>of</strong> some states<br />

have adequately h<strong>and</strong>led the question <strong>of</strong> abuse <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities <strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons. For <strong>in</strong>stance, <strong>in</strong> 1951<br />

the Netherl<strong>and</strong>s enacted a law which forbade:<br />

26 Anger, B. Op. Cit. p.83.


370<br />

<strong>of</strong>fend<strong>in</strong>g, damag<strong>in</strong>g, <strong>in</strong>jury by word or act or<br />

manner, the ambassadors, resident agents…<br />

or others, hav<strong>in</strong>g the quality <strong>of</strong> public<br />

m<strong>in</strong>isters; or to do them public <strong>in</strong>jury or<br />

<strong>in</strong>sult, directly or <strong>in</strong>directly, <strong>in</strong> any fashion or<br />

manner whatever, <strong>in</strong> their own persons…,<br />

their domestic servants…, under penalty or<br />

be<strong>in</strong>g corporally punished as violators <strong>of</strong> the<br />

laws <strong>of</strong> the nations <strong>and</strong> disturbers <strong>of</strong> public<br />

peace 27<br />

In the same ve<strong>in</strong>, the English crim<strong>in</strong>al law provides:<br />

Everyone is guilty <strong>of</strong> a misdemeanor who, by<br />

force or personal restra<strong>in</strong>t, violates any<br />

privilege conferred upon the <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

representative <strong>of</strong> a foreign country, or the<br />

person <strong>of</strong> a servant <strong>of</strong> any such<br />

representative, is arrested or imprisoned 28<br />

The Italian Crim<strong>in</strong>al Code also states that at least, 20 years<br />

imprisonment is the punishment for any attempt to assass<strong>in</strong>ate the<br />

Head <strong>of</strong> a mission while life imprisonment is the punishment <strong>in</strong><br />

case <strong>of</strong> death.<br />

Aga<strong>in</strong>, we are liv<strong>in</strong>g witnesses to new waves <strong>of</strong> crime, at least<br />

<strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>tensity <strong>and</strong> proportion, which are capable <strong>of</strong> threaten<strong>in</strong>g<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational peace <strong>and</strong> security. Murder, assass<strong>in</strong>ations with<br />

political underp<strong>in</strong>n<strong>in</strong>gs, terrorism, <strong>in</strong>ternational traffick<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong><br />

narcotics, etc are commonplace. Interest<strong>in</strong>gly, <strong>in</strong> recognition <strong>of</strong> the<br />

reality, the convention on the Prevention <strong>and</strong> Punishment <strong>of</strong><br />

27 Nascimento e Silva, op cit P. 92.


371<br />

Crimes Aga<strong>in</strong>st Internationally Protected Persons, Includ<strong>in</strong>g<br />

Diplomatic Agents, 1973, punishes <strong>in</strong>ter alia the <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

commission <strong>of</strong> murder kidnapp<strong>in</strong>g or other attack upon the person<br />

or liberty <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons.<br />

The Question <strong>of</strong> h<strong>and</strong>l<strong>in</strong>g abuses <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities<br />

by <strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons rema<strong>in</strong>s a very delicate one.<br />

States, especially the host states have to be careful how they deal<br />

with <strong>of</strong>fend<strong>in</strong>g diplomats because <strong>of</strong> the importance <strong>of</strong> reciprocity.<br />

These immunities are given on the underst<strong>and</strong><strong>in</strong>g that they will be<br />

reciprocally accorded, <strong>and</strong> their <strong>in</strong>fr<strong>in</strong>gement by a state will lead to<br />

protest by the <strong>diplomatic</strong> body resident there <strong>in</strong>, <strong>and</strong> would<br />

prejudicially affect its own representation abroad. International<br />

organisation do not necessarily have this fear, but s<strong>in</strong>ce their<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficials carry out their functions <strong>in</strong> state, a careful h<strong>and</strong>l<strong>in</strong>g<br />

situation is also required to create greater efficiency by the <strong>of</strong>ficial.<br />

International law provides:<br />

28 Ibid.<br />

29 Article 31 paragraph 4 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 convention.<br />

The immunity <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent from the<br />

jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state does not<br />

exempt him from the jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the<br />

send<strong>in</strong>g state 29.


372<br />

The above provision identifies the great role the send<strong>in</strong>g state<br />

can play <strong>in</strong> check<strong>in</strong>g abuses s<strong>in</strong>ce the immunity <strong>of</strong> the diplomat<br />

does not exempt him from the jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the send<strong>in</strong>g state.<br />

However <strong>in</strong> cases where the send<strong>in</strong>g state is a party to the abuse as<br />

was <strong>in</strong> the Libyan case, it cannot be relied upon to check the<br />

abuse. Send<strong>in</strong>g states who are not party to the abuse can also<br />

<strong>in</strong>still discipl<strong>in</strong>e <strong>in</strong> the <strong>of</strong>fend<strong>in</strong>g diplomat.<br />

For <strong>in</strong>stance, Don Luis F. de Almagro was dismissed from the<br />

service, though he reportedly said he was not aware that it was<br />

illegal for him to take out cash <strong>and</strong> jewels. 30 Two Lat<strong>in</strong> American<br />

Ambassadors were stripped <strong>of</strong> their immunity <strong>and</strong> sentenced for<br />

us<strong>in</strong>g the <strong>diplomatic</strong> pouch to smuggle hero<strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>to the United<br />

States. 31<br />

The send<strong>in</strong>g state can also waive the immunity <strong>of</strong> the<br />

diplomat so as to be prosecuted. This however depends on the<br />

relationship between the send<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> host states. In the Umaru<br />

Dikko case <strong>and</strong> several others, the send<strong>in</strong>g state refused to waive<br />

immunities <strong>of</strong> the <strong>of</strong>fend<strong>in</strong>g diplomats. The only choice available to<br />

the host state is to declare the diplomats persona non grata or<br />

30 Wilson C. E.; op cit P. 136.<br />

31 Ibid P. 137.


373<br />

term<strong>in</strong>ate <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations as was the case between Brita<strong>in</strong> <strong>and</strong><br />

Libya <strong>in</strong> 1984.<br />

In relation to consuls, arrest <strong>and</strong> detention is lawful where<br />

the abuse is one <strong>of</strong> grave crime, <strong>and</strong> where a competent judicial<br />

Authority so authorizes. Where the abuse is not one <strong>of</strong> grave crime,<br />

the host state can also declare such consul persona non grata. 32<br />

In relation to <strong>in</strong>ternational <strong>of</strong>ficials the Secretary General can waive<br />

immunities for purposes <strong>of</strong> prosecution <strong>in</strong> the event <strong>of</strong> abuse as<br />

was <strong>in</strong> the Ranollo case <strong>of</strong> 1946. The security council <strong>of</strong> the United<br />

Nations can also waive the immunity <strong>of</strong> the Secretary – General.<br />

Also to check abuse over the years, states have made many<br />

rules especially <strong>in</strong> relation to the abuse <strong>of</strong> the immunity accorded<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> bags. The Russians like the Americans <strong>and</strong> some other<br />

states have <strong>in</strong>cluded <strong>in</strong> their customs regulations such rul<strong>in</strong>g as<br />

the one <strong>in</strong> Article 2 <strong>of</strong> Order No. 110 <strong>of</strong> October 26 1948, which<br />

provides that <strong>in</strong> “exceptional circumstances <strong>diplomatic</strong> baggage<br />

may be <strong>in</strong>spected by special order <strong>of</strong> the Central Customs<br />

Adm<strong>in</strong>istration. 33<br />

In Nigeria, specifically <strong>in</strong> 1973, the Nigeria Federal Military<br />

Government felt that there was a need to effect a change <strong>of</strong> her<br />

32 Article 23 <strong>of</strong> the 1963 convention<br />

33 American Journal <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law, vol 79 (1985) P. 647


374<br />

currency from Pound Sterl<strong>in</strong>g to Naira. The essence <strong>of</strong> carry<strong>in</strong>g out<br />

this exercise was to check the traffick<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> Nigerian currency. For<br />

these reasons a procedure was suggested to open <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>spect<br />

<strong>of</strong>ficial correspondence <strong>and</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> or <strong>consular</strong> pouches. This<br />

generated much protest <strong>and</strong> condemnation among foreign missions<br />

accredited to Lagos.<br />

Article 27 34 provides for <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag.<br />

The essence <strong>of</strong> this <strong>in</strong>violability is to protect <strong>diplomatic</strong> materials<br />

but not materials that do not cone under this category. The Legal<br />

Adviser to the Foreign <strong>and</strong> Common Wealth Office took the view<br />

that electronic scann<strong>in</strong>g is not unlawful under the 1961<br />

convention. 35 Indeed there is no way <strong>of</strong> ascerta<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g that a bag<br />

conta<strong>in</strong>s illicit materials save by exam<strong>in</strong>ation. In this ve<strong>in</strong>,<br />

scann<strong>in</strong>g or other remote exam<strong>in</strong>ation by equipment or dogs is<br />

argued not to be unlawful under Article 27. 36 Sir John Freel<strong>and</strong><br />

noted that, Article 27 requires only that the bag not be “opened or<br />

deta<strong>in</strong>ed” <strong>and</strong> does not accord full <strong>in</strong>violability. 37<br />

This argument by Freel<strong>and</strong> does not take cognizance <strong>of</strong> the<br />

fact that the essence <strong>of</strong> not deta<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g or open<strong>in</strong>g the bag is to<br />

34 Article 27 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 convention.<br />

35 American Journal <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law, vol 79 (1985) P. 647<br />

36 Loc. Cit.<br />

37 Ibid.


375<br />

prevent knowledge <strong>of</strong> its contents. Electronic scann<strong>in</strong>g or sniff<strong>in</strong>g<br />

by dogs will provide such knowledge. This will not conform to the<br />

<strong>in</strong>tention <strong>of</strong> Article 27.<br />

All the arguments above are justifications sought to violate<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> bags, one <strong>of</strong> the most successful ways through which<br />

abuses are carried out.<br />

Sometimes the consequences <strong>of</strong> abuse <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities by a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent range from stern warn<strong>in</strong>g to<br />

declaration <strong>of</strong> persona non grata. For <strong>in</strong>stance, when <strong>in</strong> 1587, a<br />

French Ambassador to Engl<strong>and</strong> conspired aga<strong>in</strong>st the life <strong>of</strong> Queen<br />

Elizabeth; he was simply warned not to commit a similar <strong>of</strong>fence<br />

aga<strong>in</strong>. 38 However, <strong>in</strong> 1583-84 when the Spanish Ambassador,<br />

Mendoza was implicated <strong>in</strong> the plot aga<strong>in</strong>st Queen Elizabeth, he<br />

was summoned before the council <strong>and</strong> given a fortnight to leave the<br />

country. 39 Similarly, when <strong>in</strong> 1654, De Bass, a French Ambassador<br />

<strong>in</strong> Engl<strong>and</strong> conspired aga<strong>in</strong>st the life <strong>of</strong> Cromwell, he was ordered<br />

to leave the country with<strong>in</strong> twenty-four hours. 40<br />

It is pert<strong>in</strong>ent to note that a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent may abuse his<br />

immunities when he behaves <strong>in</strong> such a way that causes public<br />

disorder <strong>in</strong> the host state either as a result <strong>of</strong> madness, the local<br />

38 Nascimento e Silva, op cit pp. 120-121.<br />

39 Ibid.<br />

40 Ibid.


376<br />

authorities <strong>in</strong>fluence. When that happens, the local authorities are<br />

entitled to use coercion until he returns to normalcy <strong>and</strong> to prevent<br />

a repeat performance. For <strong>in</strong>stance, <strong>in</strong> 1947, at the Brazilian<br />

Embassy <strong>in</strong> Moscow, a secretary at the Embassy had to be tied by<br />

the local authority <strong>in</strong> order to prevent him from damag<strong>in</strong>g the<br />

property <strong>of</strong> a hotel. 41 The protection which was later lodged by the<br />

Brazillian Government was not enterta<strong>in</strong>ed for be<strong>in</strong>g unjustified.<br />

On a general assessment, the question <strong>of</strong> abuse by protected<br />

persons has been mild when compared with the number <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> missions all over the world. Though from the viewpo<strong>in</strong>t<br />

<strong>of</strong> the author abuse must have <strong>in</strong>creased <strong>in</strong> recent times due to the<br />

divergent pressures <strong>in</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational system, there have been<br />

more adherence to <strong>in</strong>ternational law than violations. If studied <strong>in</strong><br />

comparism, the <strong>in</strong>cidence <strong>of</strong> abuse will certa<strong>in</strong>ly be out-weighted by<br />

adherence.<br />

41 Ibid P. 93.


377<br />

CHAPTER EIGHT<br />

SUMMARY AND CONCLUSIONS<br />

8.1 OBSERVATIONS AND RECOMMENDATIONS<br />

As man saw the impossibility to survive on his own politically<br />

<strong>and</strong> economically, there arose the need for him to enter <strong>in</strong>to<br />

friendly relations with his neighbours <strong>in</strong> other to meet some <strong>of</strong> his<br />

needs. This relationship is what is referred to as diplomacy because<br />

it entails negotiation, which is <strong>in</strong>tended to susta<strong>in</strong> this relationship.<br />

A conscious attempt has been made <strong>in</strong> this work to trace the<br />

development <strong>of</strong> diplomacy from antiquity. It has been traced that<br />

diplomacy is as old as mank<strong>in</strong>d, <strong>and</strong> that the ancient man was<br />

<strong>in</strong>volved <strong>in</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> activities, s<strong>in</strong>ce they also negotiated to either<br />

<strong>in</strong>itiate or end wars with their neighbours. These people even at<br />

that time had simple rules to guide them. Diplomacy at this stage<br />

was ad hoc <strong>in</strong> nature, while <strong>contemporary</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong><br />

relationship, is largely permanent <strong>in</strong> <strong>practice</strong>.<br />

This work also exam<strong>in</strong>es the sources <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong><br />

<strong>consular</strong> law as constitut<strong>in</strong>g the general sources <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law. This is because <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law is an aspect <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law. It is clear from the discussion <strong>in</strong> the work that


378<br />

the sources <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law are the major ones<br />

creat<strong>in</strong>g its rules, these are treaties <strong>and</strong> customs.<br />

Article 38 <strong>of</strong> the statute <strong>of</strong> the ICJ has enlisted other sources,<br />

which <strong>in</strong>clude general pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> law recognized by civilized<br />

nations, judicial decisions <strong>and</strong> teach<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>of</strong> the most highly<br />

qualified publicists.<br />

The general pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> law are however meant to prevent<br />

the court from not reach<strong>in</strong>g a decision because <strong>of</strong> the absence <strong>of</strong><br />

exist<strong>in</strong>g treaties or customs. These pr<strong>in</strong>ciples are applied with<br />

caution lest the courts be accused <strong>of</strong> unauthorized exercise <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational legislation.<br />

It becomes also apparent that judicial decisions are listed as<br />

subsidiary sources ow<strong>in</strong>g to the fact that judicial precedent does<br />

not operate at the level <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law, as the decision <strong>of</strong> the<br />

ICJ has no b<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>g force except between the parties <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong> respect<br />

<strong>of</strong> that particular case. Teach<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>of</strong> publicists are the evidence <strong>of</strong><br />

what the law is as judicial decisions <strong>and</strong> writ<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>of</strong> publicists are<br />

both valuable supplements to the major sources <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

law, as vital branch <strong>of</strong> which <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law is 1.<br />

1 Article 15 <strong>of</strong> the Statute <strong>of</strong> the ICJ


379<br />

Municipal laws <strong>of</strong> Nigeria were also discussed as a source <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law. It must be asserted that it does not<br />

have direct effect on the creation <strong>of</strong> norms <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

There is however no doubt that the actualization <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

legal norms is with<strong>in</strong> the municipal set up <strong>and</strong> to that extent,<br />

municipal law determ<strong>in</strong>es the force <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law with<strong>in</strong> the<br />

territory <strong>of</strong> a state. Such law <strong>and</strong> court decisions could therefore<br />

represent a state‟s position with regards to <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

Section 12(1) <strong>of</strong> the 1999 Constitution provides <strong>in</strong> the affirmative<br />

that no treaty between the Federal Republic <strong>of</strong> Nigeria <strong>and</strong> any<br />

other country shall have the force <strong>of</strong> law except to the extent to<br />

which the National Assembly has enacted any such treaty <strong>in</strong>to law.<br />

The work also attempts a discussion <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternationally<br />

protected persons <strong>and</strong> their scope <strong>of</strong> protection. From the<br />

discussion it is observed that def<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g “<strong>in</strong>ternationally protected<br />

persons” <strong>in</strong> the real sense <strong>of</strong> it has been a contention <strong>in</strong><br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law. More so the disparity <strong>in</strong> the degree <strong>of</strong> protection<br />

enjoyed by <strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons cannot be de-<br />

emphasized. While some enjoy “absolute” immunity to the extent<br />

enjoyed by <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents, others enjoy functional immunity,<br />

which arises out <strong>of</strong> treaties or agreements.


380<br />

The Vienna Convention on Diplomatic relations 1961 is<br />

reputed to be undoubtedly the most important document on the<br />

subject <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> relations that exists, be<strong>in</strong>g a l<strong>and</strong>mark <strong>of</strong> the<br />

highest significance <strong>in</strong> the codification <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law. 2 This is<br />

perhaps same <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on Consular Relations<br />

1963 as it relates to <strong>consular</strong> relations. The view is equally held<br />

that the 1961 convention has held the overwhelm<strong>in</strong>g majority <strong>of</strong> the<br />

members <strong>of</strong> the United Nations as represent<strong>in</strong>g an <strong>in</strong>ternational<br />

codification <strong>of</strong> modern <strong>diplomatic</strong> law. 3<br />

In spite <strong>of</strong> the soundness <strong>of</strong> the provisions <strong>of</strong> this Convention,<br />

it is still not sacrosanct. For <strong>in</strong>stance as regards the <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong><br />

premises <strong>of</strong> the mission 4, the convention conta<strong>in</strong>s no provision<br />

relat<strong>in</strong>g to cases <strong>of</strong> emergency. This is however taken care <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong><br />

relation to the <strong>consular</strong> post. 5 In relation to <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises,<br />

that the consent <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the mission must be sought before<br />

the authorities <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state can enter them, appears to be<br />

a problem. What if there arises a situation <strong>in</strong> which the premises<br />

present a press<strong>in</strong>g danger to the surround<strong>in</strong>g district by reason <strong>of</strong><br />

2 Nascimento, op cit p. 30<br />

3 Feltham, R. G. Diplomatic h<strong>and</strong>book (UK: Longman group Ltd: 1970) p.38<br />

4 Article 22 <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations 1961<br />

5 Article 31(2) <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on Consular Relations 1963


381<br />

fire break<strong>in</strong>g out or used as a fir<strong>in</strong>g po<strong>in</strong>t or <strong>in</strong> a case <strong>of</strong> use <strong>of</strong> the<br />

premises by staff <strong>of</strong> the mission for unlawful purposes? In this k<strong>in</strong>d<br />

<strong>of</strong> situation, is the consent <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the mission necessary<br />

before agents <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state can enter the premises? If they<br />

enter the premises without consent will a defense <strong>of</strong> humanitarian<br />

<strong>in</strong>tervention avail them?<br />

The essence <strong>of</strong> diplomacy is to preserve lives <strong>and</strong> property,<br />

not to destroy them. The convention on Diplomatic relations makes<br />

it clear that the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state must take all appropriate steps to<br />

protect the premises <strong>of</strong> the mission aga<strong>in</strong>st any <strong>in</strong>trusion or<br />

damage <strong>and</strong> to prevent any disturbance <strong>of</strong> the peace <strong>of</strong> the mission<br />

or impairment <strong>of</strong> its dignity 6. This provision makes it clear also that<br />

this duty placed on the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state is a special one 7. This<br />

special duty placed on the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state is <strong>in</strong>hibited by the<br />

provision that:<br />

The premises <strong>of</strong> the mission shall be<br />

<strong>in</strong>violable. The agents <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state<br />

may not enter them, except with the consent<br />

<strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the mission 8.<br />

In an ideal situation, the provision above appears workable.<br />

But even then it is contradictory. Diplomatic law on the one h<strong>and</strong><br />

6 Article 22 (2) Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations, 1961.<br />

7 Article 22 (2) Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations, 1961.<br />

8 Article 22 (1) Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations, 1961.


382<br />

places a duty on the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state to protect mission premises. On<br />

the other h<strong>and</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state has no access to the same<br />

premises it is supposed to protect. The words “all appropriate<br />

steps” have not been def<strong>in</strong>ed by the 1961 convention on <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

relations. What is appropriate must therefore be determ<strong>in</strong>ed based<br />

on the peculiar facts <strong>of</strong> a given case.<br />

It is therefore the submission here that <strong>in</strong> emergency<br />

situations such as the outbreak <strong>of</strong> fire requir<strong>in</strong>g prompt action, the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state must act <strong>in</strong> such a manner as to save lives <strong>and</strong><br />

property, though under the situation, effort must be made to<br />

ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong> the respect due <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises <strong>and</strong> ma<strong>in</strong>ta<strong>in</strong> its<br />

peace <strong>and</strong> dignity. In this circumstance, the consent <strong>of</strong> the Head <strong>of</strong><br />

the mission may be <strong>in</strong>ferred. He must however be notified as soon<br />

as possible <strong>of</strong> the action <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state as peculiarly<br />

<strong>in</strong>tended to save lives <strong>and</strong> property. It is believed that the whole<br />

essence <strong>of</strong> prevent<strong>in</strong>g any disturbance <strong>of</strong> the peace <strong>of</strong> the mission<br />

or impairment <strong>of</strong> its dignity is more relevant <strong>in</strong> emergency<br />

situations.<br />

There is also the issue <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent. 9<br />

Aga<strong>in</strong> the Convention makes no provision for actions <strong>in</strong> cases <strong>of</strong><br />

9 Article 29 <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention


383<br />

emergency. For <strong>in</strong>stance what happens if a drunken diplomat pulls<br />

a gun <strong>in</strong> a crowded place? Should he be allowed to harm people on<br />

grounds <strong>of</strong> <strong>in</strong>violability? Should the gun not be seized to avert<br />

imm<strong>in</strong>ent danger to the people? What happens if two diplomats are<br />

caught up <strong>in</strong> a scuffle? Should reasonable force not be used to<br />

separate them? Will this amount to a violation <strong>of</strong> the diplomat?<br />

What if a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent is mercilessly beat<strong>in</strong>g an ord<strong>in</strong>ary citizen<br />

<strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state? Will it be a violation <strong>of</strong> the diplomat‟s<br />

<strong>in</strong>violability to physically restra<strong>in</strong> him from further <strong>in</strong>jury to the<br />

victim? Will self-defense be a permissible exception?<br />

Like mentioned earlier, the whole essence <strong>of</strong> diplomacy is to<br />

save lives <strong>and</strong> property. No civilized society can watch its nationals<br />

face imm<strong>in</strong>ent danger without tak<strong>in</strong>g appropriate steps to rescue<br />

them. The right to life <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>dividual is a fundamental right <strong>in</strong><br />

every legal system <strong>in</strong> the world, <strong>and</strong> accord<strong>in</strong>gly a vital objective <strong>of</strong><br />

the United Nations.<br />

Human rights can generally be def<strong>in</strong>ed as those rights, which<br />

are <strong>in</strong>herent <strong>in</strong> our nature <strong>and</strong> without which we cannot live as<br />

human be<strong>in</strong>gs. In Ransome Kuti V. Attorney General <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Federation 10, Kayode JSC def<strong>in</strong>es it thus:<br />

10 (1985) 2 NWLR 211 at 230.


384<br />

… It is a right which st<strong>and</strong>s above the<br />

ord<strong>in</strong>ary laws <strong>of</strong> the l<strong>and</strong> which <strong>in</strong> fact is<br />

antecedent to political society itself. it is a<br />

primary condition to a civilized existence…<br />

<strong>and</strong> what has been done by our<br />

constitutions s<strong>in</strong>ce <strong>in</strong>dependence… it s to<br />

have these rights enshr<strong>in</strong>ed <strong>in</strong> the<br />

constitution so that the rights could be<br />

immutable to the extent <strong>of</strong> non-immutability<br />

<strong>of</strong> the constitution itself.<br />

The preamble <strong>of</strong> the universal declaration <strong>of</strong> human rights adopted<br />

on 10 December 1948 emphasizes that recognition <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>herent<br />

dignity <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong> the equal <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>alienable rights <strong>of</strong> all members <strong>of</strong> the<br />

human family is the foundation <strong>of</strong> freedom, justice <strong>and</strong> peace <strong>in</strong> the<br />

world. 11 the question <strong>of</strong> human rights is so central to the<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational system that they cannot be derogated even <strong>in</strong> times <strong>of</strong><br />

war or other public emergency threaten<strong>in</strong>g the nation. In the words<br />

<strong>of</strong> shaw:<br />

Certa<strong>in</strong> rights may not be derogated from <strong>in</strong><br />

various human rights <strong>in</strong>struments even <strong>in</strong><br />

times <strong>of</strong> war or other public emergency<br />

threaten<strong>in</strong>g the nation 12.<br />

In the same ve<strong>in</strong> the European convention states that these<br />

rights <strong>in</strong>clude the right to life (except <strong>in</strong> cases result<strong>in</strong>g from lawful<br />

11 Shaw, N. S. International Law 4 th ed. Cambridge: Cambridge <strong>University</strong> Press; 2002, P.196.<br />

12 Ibid. P. 203.


385<br />

acts <strong>of</strong> war), the prohibition on torture <strong>and</strong> slavery <strong>and</strong> non-<br />

retroactivity <strong>of</strong> crim<strong>in</strong>al <strong>of</strong>fences 13. In the case <strong>of</strong> the American<br />

convention 14, the follow<strong>in</strong>g rights are non-derogable: the rights to<br />

judicial personality, life <strong>and</strong> human treatment, freedom from<br />

slavery, freedom <strong>of</strong> conscience <strong>and</strong> religion, rights <strong>of</strong> the family, to<br />

a name <strong>of</strong> the child, nationality <strong>and</strong> participation <strong>in</strong> government.<br />

The 1999 Nigerian constitution provides for the right to life, 15<br />

the right to dignity <strong>of</strong> the human person, 16 the right to personal<br />

liberty, 17 the right to fair hear<strong>in</strong>g 18, the right to private <strong>and</strong> family<br />

life, 19 the right to freedom <strong>of</strong> thought, conscience <strong>and</strong> religion 20, the<br />

right to peaceful assembly <strong>and</strong> association 21, the right to freedom<br />

<strong>of</strong> movement 22, the right to freedom from discrim<strong>in</strong>ation 23, etc.<br />

From our discussion so far, the right to life <strong>and</strong> respect for<br />

human dignity has received expression <strong>in</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

Therefore a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent who br<strong>and</strong>ishes a gun <strong>in</strong> a market<br />

place or anywhere <strong>in</strong> the territory <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state attempts to<br />

13 The European Convention on Human Rights, Articles 2,3,4 (1) <strong>and</strong> 7.<br />

14 The American Convention on Human Rights, Article 27.<br />

15 Section 33 <strong>of</strong> the 1999 Constitution.<br />

16 Section 34.<br />

17 Section 35.<br />

18 Section 36.<br />

19 Section 37.<br />

20 Section 38.<br />

21 Section 40.<br />

22 Section 41.<br />

23 Section 42.


386<br />

destroy life or property or both. The <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent is not<br />

supposed to flout local laws. 24 In a more relaxed situation, the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state can declare him persona non grata (a <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

agent whose conduct is unacceptable to the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state). But <strong>in</strong><br />

an emergency, no responsible state will watch her citizens face<br />

imm<strong>in</strong>ent danger without com<strong>in</strong>g to their rescue. It is submitted<br />

here that the authorities <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state can use as much<br />

force as is needed to rescue her citizens. This force must be<br />

commensurate with the oppos<strong>in</strong>g force. The respect due a<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agent must be accorded him even when force is be<strong>in</strong>g<br />

used. The would – be victims can also defend themselves aga<strong>in</strong>st<br />

the armed <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent. Though it will be wise to make sure<br />

that the threat <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent is <strong>in</strong>stant, overwhelm<strong>in</strong>g,<br />

leav<strong>in</strong>g no choice <strong>of</strong> means or room for deliberation. The action <strong>in</strong><br />

self-defence must be <strong>in</strong>tended to free them <strong>and</strong> no further, so that<br />

the diplomat‟s dignity is not excessively impaired.<br />

Also the severe curtailment <strong>of</strong> the privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities<br />

<strong>of</strong> persons who are „nationals <strong>of</strong> or permanently resident‟ <strong>in</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state raises other questions. What happens <strong>in</strong> the case <strong>of</strong><br />

dual nationality? Furthermore should the wife <strong>of</strong> a diplomat suffer<br />

24 Article 41 (1) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention on Diplomatic Relations.


387<br />

restriction merely on account <strong>of</strong> nationality or permanent<br />

residence? Will this not underm<strong>in</strong>e the privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>of</strong><br />

her husb<strong>and</strong>?<br />

It is the submission here that the wife <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent<br />

should be accorded the immunity due her husb<strong>and</strong>. A failure to do<br />

this underm<strong>in</strong>es the immunity <strong>of</strong> her husb<strong>and</strong>. The diplomat<br />

requires an environment with m<strong>in</strong>imum pressure to be effective. He<br />

cannot do very much if his wife is arrested under the laws <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. This will affect his stability <strong>and</strong> impair his<br />

performance <strong>and</strong> dignity. So whether the wife is a national or <strong>of</strong><br />

permanent residence <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state, she should be fully<br />

protected know<strong>in</strong>g that her immunity arises because <strong>of</strong> her<br />

husb<strong>and</strong>s own.<br />

The issue <strong>of</strong> dual nationality presents no problems here. If<br />

anyth<strong>in</strong>g, it solves the problem <strong>of</strong> the immunity <strong>of</strong> the wife <strong>of</strong> a<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> agent who may still enjoy immunity even if the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state fails to accord her because she is a national or <strong>of</strong> permanent<br />

residence <strong>in</strong> her territory. The fact that she has another nationality<br />

separate from where her husb<strong>and</strong> is serv<strong>in</strong>g is good ground for her<br />

to enjoy immunity even if she is also a national or <strong>of</strong> permanent<br />

residence <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. She could claim, <strong>and</strong> it is the


388<br />

submission here, that she has another nationality <strong>and</strong> for purposes<br />

<strong>of</strong> her privileges <strong>and</strong> immunity lean on her other nationality, so as<br />

to enjoy these privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state<br />

where she may have also been a national or <strong>of</strong> permanent<br />

residence.<br />

In respect <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag, the convention provides that<br />

it shall neither be opened nor deta<strong>in</strong>ed. 25 The convention says<br />

noth<strong>in</strong>g about the acceptable size <strong>of</strong> the bag. If it did, it would have<br />

been easy to know what is <strong>in</strong> excess <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag. Where this<br />

excess exists, scann<strong>in</strong>g or sniff<strong>in</strong>g by tra<strong>in</strong>ed dogs would have been<br />

an effective way to prevent the <strong>in</strong>troduction <strong>in</strong>to the <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

premises <strong>of</strong> items not directly relevant to the functions <strong>of</strong> the<br />

mission. As it is, it is impossible to stop a <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag even if it<br />

conta<strong>in</strong>s items the importation or exportation <strong>of</strong> which is prohibited<br />

<strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. But if for any reason this nature <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> bag is searched, will the discovery <strong>of</strong> these items legalize<br />

the search?<br />

The Convention on Diplomatic Relations, 1961 provides:<br />

25 Article 27(3) <strong>of</strong> the 1961 Convention<br />

The packages constitut<strong>in</strong>g the <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

bag must bear visible external marks <strong>of</strong> their<br />

character <strong>and</strong> may conta<strong>in</strong> only <strong>diplomatic</strong>


389<br />

documents or articles <strong>in</strong>tended for <strong>of</strong>ficial<br />

use. 26<br />

Where a <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag does not follow the stipulation above,<br />

some scholars submit that electronic scann<strong>in</strong>g or sniff<strong>in</strong>g by dogs<br />

be implored. This prohibits the use <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag from<br />

be<strong>in</strong>g used <strong>in</strong> such a manner that negates the essence <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> communication <strong>and</strong> consequently the essence <strong>of</strong><br />

diplomacy, such as was seen <strong>in</strong> the Umaru Dikko case <strong>of</strong> 1984. The<br />

case <strong>in</strong>volv<strong>in</strong>g the Libyan Peoples Bureau same year, is also worthy<br />

<strong>of</strong> mention.<br />

Specifically <strong>in</strong> the case <strong>in</strong>volv<strong>in</strong>g Libyan Peoples Bureau, two<br />

ma<strong>in</strong> grounds have been advanced for suggest<strong>in</strong>g that one does not<br />

have to treat as m<strong>and</strong>atory the provision <strong>in</strong> Article 27 (3) <strong>of</strong> the<br />

convention that “the <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag shall not be opened or<br />

deta<strong>in</strong>ed”. The first is that the <strong>in</strong>violability <strong>of</strong> the bag is to protect<br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> materials; but not materials that do not fall <strong>in</strong> that<br />

category <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>deed constitute an abuse <strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag. The<br />

second is that abuse by members <strong>of</strong> a mission <strong>of</strong> the function<br />

protected under the convention entails forfeiture <strong>of</strong> the protection<br />

<strong>of</strong> the convention. The travaux preparatoires <strong>of</strong> the convention are<br />

not quite as categorical on these related po<strong>in</strong>ts as they are on the<br />

26 Article 27 (4).


390<br />

lack <strong>of</strong> any exception allow<strong>in</strong>g un<strong>in</strong>vited entry onto <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

premises. But they are still clear enough, <strong>and</strong> the policy<br />

considerations are the same. There are no ways <strong>of</strong> ascerta<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g that<br />

a bag conta<strong>in</strong>s illicit materials save by exam<strong>in</strong>ation; <strong>and</strong> that<br />

possibility gives too much opportunity to a receiv<strong>in</strong>g state to<br />

<strong>in</strong>terfere with the proper flow <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> materials 27. Even those<br />

states that have suffered most <strong>in</strong> recent years from the abusive use<br />

<strong>of</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag that has undoubtedly occurred show little<br />

enthusiasm for a departure from the prohibition <strong>of</strong> search <strong>in</strong> Article<br />

27(3).<br />

The Legal Adviser to the Foreign <strong>and</strong> commonwealth Office<br />

took the view, on balance, that electronic scann<strong>in</strong>g is not unlawful<br />

under the Convention 28.<br />

Acknowledg<strong>in</strong>g that some regard scann<strong>in</strong>g as “constructive<br />

open<strong>in</strong>g,” Sir John Freel<strong>and</strong> noted that 29 Article 27 <strong>of</strong> the<br />

convention requires only that the bag not be “opened or deta<strong>in</strong>ed”<br />

<strong>and</strong> does not accord full <strong>in</strong>violability. In the view <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Government, scann<strong>in</strong>g or other remote exam<strong>in</strong>ation by equipment<br />

or dogs would not be unlawful under Article 27.<br />

27<br />

Rosalyn Higg<strong>in</strong>s, Op. Cit. P.647<br />

28<br />

Ibid.<br />

29<br />

Foreign Affairs Committee Report, Para.29


391<br />

However as stated earlier <strong>in</strong> this work, electronic scann<strong>in</strong>g or<br />

sniff<strong>in</strong>g by dogs will expose the contents there<strong>in</strong>. This will frustrate<br />

the <strong>in</strong>tention <strong>of</strong> Article27. This work recommends an amendment <strong>of</strong><br />

Article 27 to cover a def<strong>in</strong>ition <strong>of</strong> the size <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag. It is<br />

believed that the size <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> can create sufficient grounds<br />

for suspicion <strong>of</strong> its contents. Where such suspicion exists electronic<br />

scann<strong>in</strong>g or sniff<strong>in</strong>g by dogs is recommended. This will help to<br />

check the use <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> bags for purposes prohibited by<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternational law.<br />

International law makes a feeble effort to regulate the conduct<br />

<strong>of</strong> the diplomat. The 1961 convention provides that it is the duty <strong>of</strong><br />

all those enjoy<strong>in</strong>g privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities to respect the laws <strong>and</strong><br />

regulations <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state. They are also not to <strong>in</strong>terfere <strong>in</strong><br />

the <strong>in</strong>ternal affairs <strong>of</strong> the state. 30 The convention does not provide<br />

for any punishment due to any diplomat who violates this<br />

<strong>in</strong>junction. This is <strong>of</strong> cause the essence <strong>of</strong> the immunity. This<br />

however leaves the compliance to this provision at the mercy <strong>of</strong> the<br />

diplomat. It is noth<strong>in</strong>g but a passionate appeal.<br />

30 Article 41(1)


392<br />

Aga<strong>in</strong>, the premises <strong>of</strong> the mission should not be used <strong>in</strong> any<br />

manner <strong>in</strong>compatible with the functions <strong>of</strong> the mission. 31 This is<br />

also a passionate appeal because the <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag, which cannot<br />

be opened or searched, is one <strong>of</strong> the means by which even firearms<br />

can be <strong>in</strong>troduced <strong>in</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises <strong>and</strong> used <strong>in</strong> a<br />

manner <strong>in</strong>compatible with the functions <strong>of</strong> the mission.<br />

No doubt the various provisions <strong>of</strong> the conventions cover<strong>in</strong>g<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons are largely adequate. This is more<br />

so for those enjoy<strong>in</strong>g functional immunity. However there exist<br />

conundrums <strong>in</strong> these conventions that must be addressed.<br />

The Convention on Diplomatic Relations provides that the<br />

immunity <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent from the jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the<br />

receiv<strong>in</strong>g state does not exempt him from the jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the<br />

send<strong>in</strong>g state. 32 This connotes that the crim<strong>in</strong>al immunity among<br />

others that the <strong>diplomatic</strong> agent enjoys <strong>in</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state 33 does<br />

not extend to the send<strong>in</strong>g state. The convention can therefore place<br />

a special duty on the send<strong>in</strong>g state to punish their <strong>diplomatic</strong><br />

agents where a grave crime has been committed.<br />

31 Article 41(3)<br />

32 Article 31(4)<br />

33 Article 31 (1)


393<br />

Also, reliance on customary <strong>in</strong>ternational law alone to resolve<br />

the problem will not suffice. The blatant abuses <strong>and</strong> violations <strong>of</strong><br />

<strong>diplomatic</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities 34 coupled with the alarm<strong>in</strong>g<br />

wave <strong>of</strong> terrorism <strong>and</strong> illicit traffick<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> drugs, po<strong>in</strong>t to the<br />

necessity to revise the convention with a view to its appropriate<br />

location with<strong>in</strong> the matrix <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> praxis <strong>and</strong> <strong>contemporary</strong><br />

realities. Such revision <strong>in</strong> order to be worthwhile, must reckon<br />

with, <strong>and</strong> remedy the conundrums, which have been discussed <strong>in</strong><br />

this work.<br />

At the end <strong>of</strong> the day, terroristic abuse <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> status<br />

can be controlled neither by mov<strong>in</strong>g demonstrations away from<br />

embassies nor by try<strong>in</strong>g to amend the Vienna Convention. What is<br />

needed is close coord<strong>in</strong>ation between the various parts <strong>of</strong><br />

Government, <strong>and</strong> <strong>in</strong>ternational security cooperation.<br />

Governments must keep themselves more fully <strong>in</strong>formed than they<br />

have sometimes appeared to be <strong>in</strong> the past, <strong>and</strong> should not, for the<br />

sake <strong>of</strong> promot<strong>in</strong>g trade or other reasons, seek to accommodate<br />

those who are reluctant to conform to the requirements <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Vienna Convention. Above all, those remedies available for abuse <strong>in</strong><br />

the Convention especially the power to limit the size <strong>of</strong> the mission,<br />

34 McClanahan, G. V. op. cit p.144


394<br />

to declare a diplomat persona non grata-should be used with<br />

firmness <strong>and</strong> vigor, <strong>and</strong> not just reserved for matters related to<br />

espionage.<br />

As is so <strong>of</strong>ten the case, legal means are at h<strong>and</strong>; but they<br />

need to be matched by political will.<br />

Encourag<strong>in</strong>gly, <strong>contemporary</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong><br />

<strong>practice</strong> no longer allows protected persons to live under the cloak<br />

<strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> or <strong>consular</strong> immunity <strong>and</strong> perform acts that are<br />

<strong>of</strong>fensive to the <strong>in</strong>ternational community. Hostage tak<strong>in</strong>g, torture,<br />

genocide, murder, traffick<strong>in</strong>g <strong>in</strong> narcotics, etc are some <strong>of</strong> these<br />

acts. Any member <strong>of</strong> the <strong>in</strong>ternational community who has custody<br />

<strong>of</strong> the <strong>of</strong>fender can prosecute anyone connected to any <strong>of</strong> these<br />

acts, based on the universality pr<strong>in</strong>ciple <strong>of</strong> exercis<strong>in</strong>g jurisdiction.<br />

The on-go<strong>in</strong>g United Nations War crime trials where some<br />

<strong>in</strong>ternationally protected persons are also be<strong>in</strong>g tried expla<strong>in</strong> this<br />

po<strong>in</strong>t further.<br />

The work recommends a review <strong>of</strong> Article 27 <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations, to <strong>in</strong>corporate a<br />

def<strong>in</strong>ition <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag. This will make it easier to<br />

determ<strong>in</strong>e by the size <strong>of</strong> the bag if it carries items that appear<br />

suspicious. This suspicion should be basis for the scann<strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> the


395<br />

bag us<strong>in</strong>g electronic means, <strong>and</strong> sniff<strong>in</strong>g by dogs, to determ<strong>in</strong>e the<br />

legality <strong>of</strong> the items the bag is carry<strong>in</strong>g.<br />

8.2 CONTRIBUTION TO KNOWLEDGE<br />

This work has identified certa<strong>in</strong> gaps, loose ends or<br />

conundrums <strong>in</strong> the law regulat<strong>in</strong>g <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong><br />

<strong>practice</strong> <strong>in</strong> our world today. These gaps or conundrums <strong>in</strong>clude<br />

some ambiguous provisions <strong>of</strong> these conventions such as the<br />

privileges <strong>and</strong> immunities <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> agents. A diplomat enjoys<br />

absolute immunity from the crim<strong>in</strong>al jurisdiction <strong>of</strong> the receiv<strong>in</strong>g<br />

state as provided for <strong>in</strong> Article 31 <strong>of</strong> the Vienna Convention on<br />

Diplomatic Relations 1961, without tak<strong>in</strong>g cognizance <strong>of</strong> emergency<br />

situations, such as when a diplomat threatens the life <strong>of</strong> a national<br />

<strong>of</strong> a receiv<strong>in</strong>g state with a gun, should he still enjoy this immunity?<br />

Also, <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises cannot be entered <strong>in</strong>to by authorities <strong>of</strong><br />

the receiv<strong>in</strong>g state except with the consent <strong>of</strong> the head <strong>of</strong> the<br />

mission. This aga<strong>in</strong> fails to look at such emergency situations such<br />

as the outbreak <strong>of</strong> fire where such consent cannot be promptly<br />

given.<br />

The 1961 convention on Diplomatic Relations also provides<br />

that the <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises should not be used <strong>in</strong> any manner


396<br />

<strong>in</strong>compatible with the functions <strong>of</strong> the mission. This however<br />

suffers <strong>in</strong>consistency as Article 27 <strong>of</strong> the same convention prohibits<br />

the open<strong>in</strong>g or deta<strong>in</strong><strong>in</strong>g <strong>of</strong> a <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag, one <strong>of</strong> the ways even<br />

fire – arms can be brought <strong>in</strong>to mission premises <strong>and</strong> used <strong>in</strong> a<br />

manner <strong>in</strong>consistent with the functions <strong>of</strong> the mission.<br />

These gaps are responsible for abuse <strong>of</strong> privileges <strong>and</strong><br />

immunities. This work has specifically been able to fill these gaps<br />

<strong>and</strong> has shown that the <strong>diplomatic</strong> bag, one <strong>of</strong> the easiest ways to<br />

<strong>in</strong>troduce even fire arms <strong>in</strong> the <strong>diplomatic</strong> premises, <strong>and</strong> <strong>of</strong>ten has<br />

been, needs to have its size def<strong>in</strong>ed. This work has shown that this<br />

def<strong>in</strong>ition helps to check abuse which has become prevalent <strong>in</strong> our<br />

world today. This effort no doubt contributes to knowledge.<br />

8.3 AREAS FOR FURTHER RESEARCH<br />

As earlier discussed, this research work has succeeded <strong>in</strong><br />

identify<strong>in</strong>g the exist<strong>in</strong>g gaps <strong>in</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law <strong>and</strong><br />

has attempted to fill them. The reactions <strong>of</strong> other scholars aris<strong>in</strong>g<br />

from f<strong>in</strong>d<strong>in</strong>gs <strong>in</strong> this work are other areas that require further<br />

research.<br />

Aga<strong>in</strong>, the problems <strong>of</strong> the smaller nations <strong>of</strong> the world<br />

especially those <strong>of</strong> Africa, serve as a h<strong>in</strong>drance to Africa‟s


397<br />

efficiency <strong>in</strong> world affairs. Most <strong>of</strong> these problems are domestic<br />

but no doubt caused by Africa‟s peculiar colonial experience.<br />

Some <strong>of</strong> the provisions <strong>of</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> law have not<br />

taken cognizance <strong>of</strong> Africa‟s reality <strong>and</strong> by so do<strong>in</strong>g places<br />

obligations on Africa that are not achievable. To make Africa<br />

more relevant <strong>in</strong> <strong>diplomatic</strong> <strong>and</strong> <strong>consular</strong> <strong>practice</strong>, the rest <strong>of</strong> the<br />

world must s<strong>in</strong>cerely see the urgency to contribute to the socio-<br />

economic development <strong>of</strong> this cont<strong>in</strong>ent. This is without a shadow<br />

<strong>of</strong> doubt an area for further research.


Journals:<br />

398<br />

References<br />

Higg<strong>in</strong>s, R. Violations <strong>in</strong> Diplomatic <strong>and</strong> Consular Law <strong>in</strong> the<br />

American Journal <strong>of</strong> International Law, Vol. 79, 1985. pp16-<br />

50.<br />

Miller, P.D. In the Absence <strong>of</strong> War Employ<strong>in</strong>g Military Capability <strong>in</strong><br />

the ‘90s, <strong>in</strong> The Fletcher Forum, Volume 198, Number 1,<br />

W<strong>in</strong>ter/Spr<strong>in</strong>g, 1994. pp 1-40.<br />

Howe, J.T. Will America Lead a New World Order?” <strong>in</strong> The Fletcher<br />

Forum, Volume 198, Number 1, W<strong>in</strong>ter/Spr<strong>in</strong>g, 1994. pp 15-<br />

32.<br />

Books<br />

Anger B. <strong>and</strong> J<strong>and</strong>e G. Basic Pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> International Law<br />

Makurdi: Bencos Pr<strong>in</strong>t<strong>in</strong>g <strong>and</strong> Publish<strong>in</strong>g Company; 2002.<br />

210p.<br />

Bloomfield, L.M <strong>and</strong> Fitzgerald, G.F. Crimes Aga<strong>in</strong>st Internationally<br />

Protected Persons: Prevention <strong>and</strong> Punishment: An Analysis<br />

<strong>of</strong> the U.N. Convention London: Praeger Publishers;1975.<br />

262p.<br />

Bowett, D.M. The law <strong>of</strong> International Institutions<br />

London: Stevens & Sons Ltd.; 1975. 610p.<br />

Brierly, J.L Law <strong>of</strong> Nations London: Clarendon Press;<br />

1963. 311p.<br />

Brownlie, I. Pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> Public International Law London: Oxford;<br />

1979. 217p.<br />

Cariton, D. <strong>and</strong> Schaerf. C. eds. International Terrorism <strong>and</strong> world<br />

Security London: Goom Helon; 1975. 320p.<br />

Chhabra, H.K. Relations <strong>of</strong> Nations Delhi: India: subject<br />

Publications; 1981. 273p.


399<br />

Denza, E. Diplomatic Law New York: Oceana Publications Inc.;<br />

1976. 348p.<br />

Feltham, R.G. Diplomatic H<strong>and</strong>book London: Longman Group;<br />

1988. 179p.<br />

Gasiokwu, M. U. <strong>and</strong> Dakas, C. J. Contemporary Issues <strong>and</strong><br />

Basic Documents on Diplomatic <strong>and</strong> Consular Law. Nigeria:<br />

Mono Expressions Ltd.; 1997. 354p.<br />

Gerhard, V. G. Law Among Nations New York: Macmillan<br />

Publishers Co. Inc; 1979. 291p.<br />

Gilp<strong>in</strong>, The Political Economy <strong>of</strong> International Relations Pr<strong>in</strong>ceton:<br />

Pr<strong>in</strong>ceton <strong>University</strong> Press; 1987. 382p.<br />

Hardy, M. Modern Diplomatic Law USA: Oceania<br />

Publication Inc.; 1968. 143p.<br />

Hamilton, K. <strong>and</strong> Langhorne, R. The <strong>practice</strong> <strong>of</strong> Diplomacy: Its<br />

evolution, theory <strong>and</strong> adm<strong>in</strong>istration London: Po<strong>in</strong>t<strong>in</strong>g-Green<br />

Publish<strong>in</strong>g Services; 1995. 278p.<br />

Harris, D. J. Cases <strong>and</strong> Materials on International Law (6 th ed.)<br />

London: Sweet <strong>and</strong> Maxwell; 2004. 1152p.<br />

Harris D.J. Cases <strong>and</strong> Materials <strong>in</strong> International Law<br />

London: Sweet <strong>and</strong> Maxwell; 1998. 1127p.<br />

Johnson, E.A.J. The Dimension <strong>of</strong> Diplomacy Baltimore: John<br />

Hopk<strong>in</strong>s Press;1967. 169p.<br />

Lawrence, T.J. The Pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> International Law New York:<br />

Health <strong>and</strong> Co.; 1923. 365p.<br />

Lee, T. Vienna Convention on Consular Relations A.W Sijth<strong>of</strong>fleydon<br />

: Rule <strong>of</strong> law press; 1972. 263p.<br />

Lawrence, T.J. The Pr<strong>in</strong>ciples <strong>of</strong> International Law<br />

New York: Health <strong>and</strong> Co; 1923. 273p.


400<br />

Lee, L.T. Vienna Convention on Guide to Consular<br />

Relations A.W.Wijth<strong>of</strong>f Leyden: Rule <strong>of</strong> Law Press;<br />

1972. 263p.<br />

Lord Gore-Booth Satow‟s Guide to Diplomatic Practice<br />

London <strong>and</strong> New York Longman Group Limited;<br />

1979. 322p.<br />

Maclean, R. Public International law (15 th edition) The<br />

Commonwealth Law Book Programme; 1993-94. 341p.<br />

McClanahan, G. V. Diplomatic Immunity Pr<strong>in</strong>ciples, Practices,<br />

Problems London: C. Hurts <strong>and</strong> Co: Publishers Ltd.; 1989.<br />

263p.<br />

Nascimento do e Silva Diplomacy <strong>in</strong> International Law<br />

A.W. Wijth<strong>of</strong>f Leyden: Rule <strong>of</strong> Law Press; 1972. 215p.<br />

Nicolson, H. Diplomacy London: Oxford; 1969. 149p.<br />

O‟Connell, D. P. International Law for Students London: Stevens<br />

<strong>and</strong> Sons Ltd.; 1971. 261p.<br />

Ojo, O. <strong>and</strong> Cessary, A. Concepts <strong>in</strong> International<br />

Relations Ile Ife: J.A.D. Publishers; 1988. 213p.<br />

Okeke, CN The Theory <strong>and</strong> Practice <strong>of</strong> International<br />

Law <strong>in</strong> Nigeria Enugu: Fourth Dimension<br />

Publishers; 1969. 190p.<br />

Olatunde, O; Oruwa, D.K; Utete, M.B. African<br />

International Relations New York: Longman;<br />

1985. 250p.<br />

Palmer, N. D. <strong>and</strong> Perc<strong>in</strong>s, H. C. International<br />

Relations 3 rd ed, New Delhi: CBS Publishers <strong>and</strong><br />

Distributors; 1985. 312p.<br />

Przetacznik, F. Protection <strong>of</strong> Officials <strong>of</strong> Foreign States Accord<strong>in</strong>g to<br />

International Law London: Nijh<strong>of</strong>f Publishers; 1983, 282p.<br />

Ray, J. The Concept <strong>of</strong> a Legal System O.U.P; 1970. 169p.


401<br />

Regala, R. The Trends <strong>in</strong> Modern Diplomatic Practice Italy: Multa<br />

Publishers; 1959. 209p.<br />

Rostter, C. The Diplomatic Art London: Sidwick <strong>and</strong><br />

Jackson Ltd; 1965. 214p.<br />

Satow, E. Guide to Diplomatic Practice London: Longman Group<br />

Limited; 1959. 544p.<br />

Schermers, H.G. International law London: A.W. Clarendon Press;<br />

1972. 192p.<br />

Sen, B. A Diplomatic H<strong>and</strong>book <strong>of</strong> Intentional Law <strong>and</strong><br />

Practice London: NIJHOFF Pub., 1979. 525p.<br />

Shaw, M.N. International Law (4 thed.) Cambridge:<br />

Cambridge <strong>University</strong> Press; 2002. 1288p.<br />

Sorensen, M. Manual <strong>of</strong> Public International Law New<br />

York: St. Mart<strong>in</strong>‟s Press; 1968. 452p.<br />

Starke, J.G. Introduction to International Law London:<br />

Butterworths; 1977. 318p.<br />

Tunk<strong>in</strong>, G. I. Theory <strong>of</strong> International law London:<br />

George Allen & Unw<strong>in</strong> Ltd.; 1972, 215p.<br />

Vernon, R Mult<strong>in</strong>ational Bus<strong>in</strong>ess <strong>and</strong> National<br />

Economic Goals Hamonds worth Middlesex:<br />

Pengu<strong>in</strong> Books; 1975. 323p.<br />

Walker, D.M. Oxford Companion to Law London: Clarendon Press;<br />

1980. 263p.<br />

Wallace, R.M. International Law London: Sweet <strong>and</strong> Maxwell; 1986.<br />

286p.<br />

Wilson, C.E. Diplomatic Privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunities Arizona: The<br />

<strong>University</strong> <strong>of</strong> Arizona Press; 1967. 216p.


402<br />

Laws/statutes/legal <strong>in</strong>struments<br />

Charter <strong>of</strong> the United Nations 1945<br />

Convention on Privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunities <strong>of</strong> the United<br />

Nations 1946.<br />

Convention on the Prevention <strong>and</strong> punishment <strong>of</strong> Crimes aga<strong>in</strong>st<br />

Internationally Protected persons, Includ<strong>in</strong>g Diplomatic Agents<br />

1973.<br />

Convention on Special Missions 1969.<br />

Diplomatic Privileges <strong>and</strong> Immunity Act, CAP 99, Laws <strong>of</strong> the<br />

Federation <strong>of</strong> Nigeria, 1990.<br />

Draft Declaration on the Rights <strong>and</strong> Duties <strong>of</strong> States, 1949.<br />

European Convention on Immunity <strong>and</strong> Protocol, 1972.<br />

The British State Immunity Act, 1978.<br />

The S<strong>in</strong>gapore State Immunity Act, 1981.<br />

The South African Foreign State Immunity Act, 1982.<br />

The U.S. Foreign Sovereign Immunity Act, 1976.<br />

The Department <strong>of</strong> State Bullet<strong>in</strong>, 1952.<br />

The Nigerian Constitution, 1999.<br />

Universal Declaration <strong>of</strong> Human Rights, 1948.<br />

Covenant on Economic, Social <strong>and</strong> Cultural Rights, 1966.<br />

Vienna Convention on the Law <strong>of</strong> Treaties, 1969.


403<br />

Vienna Convention on Consular Relations 1963.<br />

Vienna Convention on Diplomatic Relations 1961.<br />

Vienna Convention on the Law <strong>of</strong> Treaties, 1969.

Hooray! Your file is uploaded and ready to be published.

Saved successfully!

Ooh no, something went wrong!